contradiction_n not_o to_o appear_v i_o wrong_v they_o either_o wilful_o which_o be_v in_o i_o wickedness_n or_o if_o of_o ignorance_n it_o be_v much_o weakness_n and_o more_o but_o 1._o as_o mr_n hooker_n bring_v citation_n from_o mr_n answorth_n mr_n robinson_n why_o do_v he_o not_o from_o his_o own_o write_n bring_v the_o way_n like_a for_o i_o allege_v the_o same_o against_o his_o own_o way_n for_o the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o new_a england_n sâct_n 3._o ch_n 3._o pag._n 56_o 57_o faith_n more_o than_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o separation_n eveâ_n do_v say_v the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n euân_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n jesus_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 12._o the_o habitation_n of_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n ephes._n 2._o 22._o the_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o espouse_v to_o christ_n as_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 2._o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n almighty_a 2_o cor._n 6._o 18._o how_o can_v they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o body_n or_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n ex_fw-la cept_v they_o in_o charitable_a disorâtion_n be_v ãâã_d indeed_o the_o holy_a ghost_n describe_v they_o to_o be_v saint_n by_o call_v 1_o cor._n 1._o 2._o and_o faithful_a brethren_n gal._n 1._o 2._o and_o that_o not_o by_o external_a profession_n for_o these_o be_v too_o high_a style_n for_o hypocrite_n but_o in_o some_o measure_n of_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n let_v that_o be_v answer_v these_o who_o not_o only_o in_o point_n of_o charity_n and_o not_o only_o in_o external_a profession_n but_o in_o some_o measure_n of_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n must_v be_v the_o habitation_n of_o god_n by_o the_o spirit_n the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n or_o then_o they_o can_v be_v admit_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n must_v be_v internal_o justify_v sanctify_a and_o choose_v before_o they_o can_v be_v member_n of_o 49._o the_o church_n visible_a but_o such_o must_v all_o admit_a member_n be_v by_o these_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o church_n of_o n._n england_n m._n h._n or_o his_o defendant_n choose_v what_o they_o please_v and_o answer_v and_o i_o shall_v be_v clear_v 2._o from_o this_o passage_n by_o the_o way_n observe_v another_o argument_n of_o the_o church_n of_o n._n england_n ibid._n such_o shall_v be_v member_n admit_v to_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o be_v exhort_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o paul_n as_o dear_a child_n ephes._n 4._o 1._o so_o must_v the_o argument_n be_v i_o assume_v but_o all_o visible_a convert_n or_o non_fw-la convert_v all_o know_a drunkard_n harlot_n atheist_n etc._n etc._n be_v exhort_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o paul_n yea_o that_o exhortation_n oblige_v all_o the_o know_a enemy_n of_o god_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o their_o mind_n to_o be_v convert_v from_o dumb_a idol_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n for_o all_o be_v exhort_v to_o obey_v the_o whole_a gospel_n hear_v it_o even_o the_o scoff_a athenian_n act._n 17._o 2._o i_o argue_v from_o the_o five_o argument_n these_o can_v be_v judge_v fit_a matter_n for_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o conââiâuting_v and_o edify_v thereof_o who_o be_v more_o fit_a for_o the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n thereof_o such_o as_o all_o hypocrite_n who_o will_v leave_v their_o first_o love_n and_o destroy_v the_o church_n i_o assume_v but_o all_o latent_fw-la hypocrite_n such_o as_o judas_n and_o magus_n as_o well_o as_o open_a hypocrite_n be_v more_o fit_a for_o the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o will_v leave_v their_o first_o love_n if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o latent_fw-la hypocrite_n appear_v to_o we_o to_o be_v godly_a and_o convert_v may_v be_v judge_v mistake_o and_o erroneous_o to_o be_v fit_a material_n for_o the_o constitute_n and_o edify_v of_o the_o church_n be_v man_n 1_o make_v member_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o christ_n make_v the_o head_n of_o magus_n iu_n as_o not_o by_o christ_n command_n so_o much_o as_o by_o man_n erroneous_a judgement_n 2_o then_z the_o visible_a church_n have_v all_o its_o essââ¦nce_n and_o nature_n found_v upon_o judgement_n that_o may_v err_v and_o upon_o no_o certain_a rule_n of_o the_o word_n 3_o then_o shall_v the_o apostle_n have_v take_v more_o time_n and_o advise_v more_o mature_o before_o they_o make_v magus_n ananias_n member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n 3._o all_o the_o argument_n bring_v by_o m._n hooker_n and_o the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o n._n england_n and_o separatist_n do_v conclude_v they_o must_v be_v real_o and_o internal_o sanctify_v before_o they_o can_v be_v such_o member_n as_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ephesus_n etc._n etc._n and_o m._n hooker_n put_v not_o a_o finger_n to_o they_o to_o answer_v these_o that_o i_o allege_v 4._o let_v he_o answer_v that_o which_o m._n robinson_n have_v pag._n 97._o all_o separate_a the_o church_n that_o ever_o the_o lord_n plant_v consist_v of_o only_o good_a as_o the_o church_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n and_o of_o mankind_n in_o paradise_n god_n have_v also_o the_o same_o end_n in_o create_v and_o restore_v his_o church_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o person_n notorious_o wicked_a shall_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n god_n shall_v direct_o cross_v himself_o and_o his_o own_o end_n and_o shall_v receive_v into_o the_o visible_a covenant_n of_o grace_n such_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o visible_a state_n of_o grace_n and_o shall_v plant_v such_o in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n as_o serve_v for_o no_o other_o use_n then_o to_o cause_v his_o name_n to_o be_v blaspheme_v pag._n 98._o in_o plant_v of_o the_o first_o church_n in_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n there_o be_v only_a saint_n without_o any_o mixture_n now_o all_o church_n be_v of_o one_o nature_n and_o essential_a constitution_n and_o the_o first_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o rest_n ans._n i_o now_o perceive_v that_o m._n hooker_n and_o his_o follower_n in_o this_o point_n defend_v m._n robinsin_n and_o the_o separatist_n as_o m._n hooker_n chap._n 2._o pag._n 20_o 21._o but_o i_o must_v say_v these_o word_n thus_o we_o have_v clear_v the_o expression_n of_o our_o brethren_n of_o the_o separation_n must_v be_v a_o own_n of_o their_o cause_n this_o ans._n but_o m._n hooker_n shall_v also_o clear_v m._n hooker_n and_o his_o own_o from_o contradiction_n as_o well_o as_o m._n robinson_n for_o m._n robinson_n argument_n must_v be_v thus_o or_o nothing_o such_o as_o be_v the_o essential_a constitution_n of_o the_o first_o church_n in_o paradise_n in_o adam_n and_o evah_n not_o yet_o fall_v in_o sin_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n before_o their_o fall_n such_o must_v be_v the_o constitution_n of_o all_o our_o visible_a church_n now_o for_o all_o church_n be_v of_o one_o nature_n and_o essential_a constitution_n say_v he_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o church_n in_o paradise_n and_o of_o angel_n before_o either_o of_o they_o fall_v consist_v of_o only_a such_o as_o be_v inward_o and_o effectual_o sanctify_v ergo_fw-la such_o must_v be_v the_o constitution_n of_o all_o our_o visible_a church_n now_o to_o wit_n they_o must_v consist_v of_o only_o inward_o and_o effectual_o sanctify_v and_o free_a of_o all_o sin_n but_o the_o conclusion_n be_v absurd_a for_o if_o so_o our_o visible_a church_n must_v be_v as_o clean_a from_o sin_n as_o the_o church_n of_o angel_n and_o of_o our_o first_o parent_n be_v when_o they_o be_v first_o create_v and_o yet_o m._n robinson_n say_v pag._n 112._o for_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o pure_a church_n upon_o earth_n may_v consist_v of_o good_a and_o bad_a in_o god_n eye_n of_o such_o as_o be_v true_o sanctify_v and_o faithful_a and_o of_o such_o who_o only_o for_o a_o time_n put_v on_o the_o outside_n and_o vizard_n of_o sanctity_n so_o m._n robinson_n the_o wit_n of_o man_n shall_v not_o clear_v these_o expression_n from_o contradiction_n 2._o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o approve_v and_o command_a will_n of_o god_n for_o of_o that_o will_v give_v to_o man_n who_o plant_v church_n he_o must_v speak_v or_o he_o speak_v nothing_o that_o the_o wicked_a be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n than_o it_o be_v not_o god_n will_n that_o magus_n demas_n be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n but_o this_o latter_a be_v absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o both_o mr._n robinson_n justif._n of_o separate_a pag._n 12._o and_o to_o mr._n hooker_n survey_v par_fw-fr 1._o ch_n 2._o pag._n 23_o 24._o and_o contrary_n to_o the_o scripture_n act._n 2._o 38_o 39_o 41_o
42_o 43_o 44_o 45_o 46._o compare_v with_o act._n 5._o 1_o 2._o act._n 8._o 12_o 13_o 14._o mat._n 22._o 8_o 9_o 10_o 12._o how_o be_v mr._n robinson_n now_o clear_v if_o it_o be_v say_v ay_o but_o mr._n robinson_n say_v it_o be_v not_o god_n will_v that_o person_n notorious_o or_o visible_o wicked_a shall_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n he_o say_v not_o as_o you_o repeat_v his_o word_n leave_v out_o notorious_o it_o be_v not_o god_n will_v that_o person_n etc._n wicked_a shall_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v it_o but_o this_o he_o must_v say_v or_o he_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o 1._o if_o it_o be_v god_n will_v that_o wicked_a person_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o church_n then_o shall_v he_o cross_v himself_o and_o his_o own_o end_n because_o wicked_a person_n do_v no_o less_o cross_a god_n and_o his_o end_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n than_o the_o notorious_o and_o visible_o wicked_a for_o both_o cause_n his_o name_n to_o be_v blaspheme_v and_o the_o force_n of_o his_o argument_n can_v lie_v in_o the_o notoriety_n or_o visibility_n of_o cross_v of_o god_n end_n but_o in_o the_o very_o cross_v of_o it_o in_o itself_o see_v mr._n ball._n 3_o god_n create_v of_o the_o first_o visible_a church_n of_o angel_n and_o man_n without_o sin_n be_v not_o a_o bind_n and_o command_a rule_n to_o pastor_n and_o to_o the_o church_n to_o admit_v none_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o such_o as_o god_n create_v member_n of_o the_o first_o visible_a church_n free_a of_o all_o sin_n or_o because_o there_o be_v a_o stand_a oblige_a rule_n to_o pastor_n and_o the_o church_n such_o as_o this_o admit_v not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n profess_v pagan_n as_o member_n thereof_o but_o to_o god_n there_o be_v no_o rule_n but_o his_o free_a will_n by_o which_o he_o create_v the_o first_o visible_a church_n of_o only_a saint_n without_o any_o mixture_n mr._n robinson_n and_o mr._n hooker_n both_o do_v wild_o misconceive_v to_o say_v no_o more_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o lord_n his_o discern_a will_n 325._o or_o his_o eternal_a purpose_n and_o his_o command_a and_o reveal_v will_n if_o they_o suppose_v as_o their_o reason_n do_v necessary_o argue_v their_o mind_n to_o the_o judicious_a reader_n with_o socinian_n and_o arminian_n that_o every_o sin_n be_v a_o cross_v of_o the_o lord_n end_n and_o purpose_n and_o that_o 2._o god_n decrce_v and_o intend_v many_o thing_n that_o shall_v never_o be_v 3._o that_o god_n may_v be_v frustrate_v of_o his_o end_n and_o purpose_n and_o miss_v the_o mark_n in_o his_o decree_n though_o they_o i_o judge_v be_v innocent_a of_o any_o such_o heresy_n 4._o if_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v here_o understand_v the_o command_a will_n of_o god_n which_o forbid_v sin_n and_o enjoin_v what_o be_v right_a as_o mr._n hooker_n and_o his_o who_o approve_v of_o this_o constitution_n of_o the_o separatist_n with_o mr._n robinson_n must_v do_v then_o must_v the_o lord_n in_o command_v his_o pastor_n and_o church_n to_o receive_v judas_n magus_n as_o fit_a material_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o mr._n hocker_n teach_v pag._n 23._o express_o command_v sin_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n because_o the_o holy_a lord_n must_v command_v to_o receive_v into_o the_o visible_a covenant_n of_o grace_n such_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o visible-state_n of_o grace_n and_o such_o to_o be_v plant_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o name_n as_o serve_v for_o no_o other_o use_n then_o to_o cause_v his_o name_n to_o be_v blaspheme_v chap._n x._o what_o mr_n hooker_n fartherbringe_v to_o prove_v that_o visible_a church_n consist_v of_o visible_a saint_n master_n hooker_n pag._n 20._o the_o pinch_n of_o the_o difference_n lie_v in_o this_o whether_o such_o as_o walk_v in_o a_o way_n of_o profaneness_n or_o remain_v pertinacious_o obstinate_a in_o some_o wickedness_n though_o otherways_o profess_v and_o practise_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v any_o allowance_n from_o christ_n or_o may_v be_v account_v fit_a matter_n according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o constitute_v a_o church_n this_o be_v that_o which_o be_v controvert_v answ_n this_o be_v a_o disorderly_a state_v the_o question_n after_o battl_n 53._o give_v 2._o this_o pinch_n of_o a_o difference_n of_o man_n walk_v in_o pagan_a profaneness_n for_o of_o such_o the_o question_n must_v be_v whether_o they_o shall_v be_v count_v fit_a matter_n to_o constitute_v a_o visible_a church_n though_o otherwise_o they_o profess_v and_o practice_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o this_o whether_o walker_n profess_o after_o their_o idol-god_n and_o yet_o profess_v and_o practise_v the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v count_v fit_a matter_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n we_o answer_v such_o be_v not_o the_o fit_a matter_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v sudden_o and_o whole_o debar_v from_o be_v ordinary_a hearer_n so_o they_o profess_v their_o willingness_n to_o hear_v 2._o if_o the_o question_n be_v of_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v and_o live_v within_o the_o church_n as_o ordinary_a hearer_n who_o practice_n and_o profess_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o say_v these_o be_v already_o within_o the_o church_n by_o their_o baptism_n and_o profession_n and_o in_o regard_n they_o remain_v pertinacious_o wicked_a though_o baptize_v and_o so_o profess_v they_o shall_v be_v unchurch_v and_o cast_v out_o 3._o that_o any_o such_o as_o obstinate_o remain_v wicked_a have_v allowance_n from_o christ_n that_o be_v a_o command_n to_o constitute_v a_o visible_a church_n as_o member_n be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o say_v whether_o command_v christ_n man_n to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v also_o pertinacious_o wicked_a which_o be_v no_o plough_n question_n for_o it_o be_v whether_o do_v christ_n allow_v man_n to_o be_v hypocrite_n or_o if_o by_o allowance_n from_o christ_n mr_n hooker_n mean_v whether_o do_v christ_n allow_v and_o command_v the_o pastor_n to_o own_o obstinate_a wicked_a man_n as_o member_n because_o they_o profess_v and_o practice_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o answer_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o admit_v or_o baptise_v pagan_n of_o that_o sort_n and_o if_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o so_o wicked_o they_o profess_v they_o ought_v to_o cast_v they_o out_o chap._n xi_o other_o argument_n of_o mr_n hooker_n for_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o church_n of_o only_a visible_a saint_n master_n hooker_n par_fw-fr 1._o ch_n 2._o pag._n 25_o 26._o require_v q._n what_o be_v require_v of_o a_o man_n of_o year_n to_o fit_v he_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o baptism_n that_o and_o so_o much_o be_v require_v to_o make_v he_o a_o member_n but_o visible_a holiness_n be_v require_v to_o fit_v a_o man_n of_o year_n to_o be_v baptize_v the_o consequence_n admit_v no_o denial_n because_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o to_o be_v admit_v a_o member_n infer_v each_o other_o the_o assumption_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o john_n baptist_n matth._n 3._o 5_o 6._o where_o jerusalem_n judea_n scribe_n people_n and_o soldier_n come_v to_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o they_o confess_v their_o sin_n it_o be_v a_o confession_n that_o amount_v to_o repentance_n so_o john_n verse_n 7._o bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n luke_n 3._o 6._o what_o shall_v we_o do_v the_o apostle_n answer_v act_n 2._o 38._o repent_n and_o be_v baptize_v the_o work_n of_o repentance_n and_o the_o aim_n of_o baptism_n do_v import_v as_o much_o remission_n of_o sin_n call_v for_o such_o competent_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o may_v make_v way_n for_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o need_n of_o a_o saviour_n and_o also_o of_o a_o go_n to_o he_o answ._n this_o argument_n may_v pass_v current_n with_o these_o that_o deny_v 57_o infant-baptisme_n which_o mr_n h._n and_o he_o do_v not_o but_o if_o to_o be_v baptize_v say_v that_o the_o baptize_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n must_v not_o either_o the_o infant_n of_o church-member_n be_v not_o baptize_v with_o they_o and_o so_o no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v strange_a or_o may_v i_o not_o argue_v thus_o with_o anabaptist_n against_o mr_n hooker_n what_o be_v require_v of_o a_o man_n of_o year_n to_o fit_v he_o for_o baptism_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v also_o require_v to_o make_v he_o one_o within_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n but_o only_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o believe_a parent_n make_v a_o man_n of_o year_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v within_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n ergo_fw-la only_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o visible_a parent_n make_v a_o man_n of_o year_n fit_a to_o be_v baptize_v the_o
congregation_n when_o congregation_n that_o church_n be_v dissolve_v be_v no_o more_o baptize_v and_o as_o pastor_n can_v exercise_v pastoral_a act_n but_o to_o their_o own_o church_n neither_o can_v they_o act_v as_o baptize_v professor_n in_o another_o church_n baptise_v be_v a_o citizen_n solemn_a incorporation_n to_o the_o church_n and_o by_o this_o way_n to_o the_o church_n independent_a only_o as_o a_o man_n that_o be_v only_o a_o free_a citizen_n in_o norwich_n can_v for_o that_o be_v a_o free_a citizen_n in_o york_n or_o perform_v the_o act_n of_o a_o free_a citizen_n in_o all_o free_a city_n in_o england_n as_o he_o can_v perform_v they_o in_o norwich_n and_o suppose_v that_o norwich_n lose_v its_o freedom_n the_o man_n be_v a_o citizen_n of_o no_o free_a city_n of_o england_n for_o as_o he_o be_v make_v solemn_o by_o admittance_n into_o the_o church_n into_o which_o he_o be_v baptize_v a_o visible_a member_n incorporate_v by_o baptism_n as_o by_o his_o burges_n write_v or_o burges_n ticket_n when_o the_o city_n be_v dissolve_v and_o no_o free_a city_n either_o his_o burges_n ticket_n to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o city_n be_v null_a or_o then_o by_o baptize_v his_o burges_n ticket_n he_o be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o all_o other_o congregation_n john_n baptist_n and_o the_o apostle_n act._n 8._o joh._n 3._o after_o a_o confession_n never_o ask_v for_o their_o conversion_n but_o baptize_v for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d straightway_o without_o delay_n even_o in_o the_o night_n for_o so_o the_o word_n note_v matth._n 21._o 19_o luke_n 4_o 39_o &_o 5._o 25._o &_o 8._o 44._o the_o jailor_n and_o his_o house_n act._n 16._o cornelius_n and_o his_o house_n act._n 10._o the_o eunuch_n the_o multitude_n of_o john_n baptist_n hearer_n be_v baptize_v member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13._o where_o there_o be_v no_o particular_a congregation_n to_o receive_v &_o admit_v they_o as_o member_n as_o mr._n richard_n baxter_n solid_o observe_v nor_o be_v it_o worthy_a the_o refute_v that_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o extraordinary_a power_n may_v baptize_v they_o though_o to_o no_o certain_a church_n but_o pastor_n now_o have_v not_o that_o power_n for_o the_o apostle_n baptise_v and_o preach_v and_o administer_a the_o other_o seal_n differ_v not_o baptize_v in_o species_n and_o nature_n from_o the_o ordinary_a pastoral_a act_n of_o a_o ordinary_a minister_n they_o speak_v with_o tongue_n work_v miracle_n as_o apostle_n but_o they_o preach_v and_o baptize_v hic_fw-mi &_o nunc_fw-la as_o ordinary_a officer_n and_o as_o to_o the_o other_o part_n the_o call_z of_o a_o minister_n so_o must_v be_v up_o and_o down_o as_o he_o officiate_n to_o his_o own_o church_n he_o act_v as_o a_o pastor_n as_o to_o these_o of_o another_o flock_n he_o tender_v the_o lord_n supper_n as_o a_o gift_a man_n 5._o though_o a_o congregation_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n and_o paul_n be_v assign_v to_o teach_v the_o gentile_n peter_n the_o circumcision_n gal._n 2._o by_o a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o peter_n act_v not_o as_o a_o pastor_n when_o he_o baptise_n gentile_n or_o that_o paul_n act_v not_o as_o either_o apostle_n or_o pastor_n when_o he_o baptize_v the_o jew_n and_o that_o paul_n be_v ten_o hundred_o time_n a_o pastor_n and_o again_o no_o pastor_n as_o god_n call_v he_o to_o act_v pastoral_o in_o ten_o hundred_o congregation_n and_o go_v from_o they_o for_o the_o call_v of_o god_n divine_a lead_n where_o to_o preach_v and_o where_o not_o in_o macedonia_n not_o in_o bythinia_n act._n 16._o but_o the_o local_a division_n of_o congregation_n and_o province_n as_o the_o second_o general_n council_n define_v and_o that_o the_o province_n that_o belong_v to_o ephesus_n be_v add_v to_o constantinople_n as_o socrates_n providendo_fw-la say_v be_v from_o custom_n when_o the_o bishop_n of_o spalleto_n defend_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n say_v that_o he_o thus_o differ_v from_o other_o bishop_n that_o he_o be_v universal_a bishop_n of_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n but_o other_o bishop_n be_v pastor_n of_o their_o own_o particular_a diocese_n and_o chuches_a d._n joan._n crakanthorp_n chaplain_n to_o king_n james_n write_v a_o learned_a book_n in_o which_o he_o prove_v that_o all_o pastor_n be_v pastor_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a habitu_fw-la &_o actu_fw-la primo_fw-la as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n especial_o because_o in_o general_a counsel_n 2._o and_o without_o they_o they_o be_v to_o care_v for_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n 2._o that_o the_o particular_a designation_n of_o single_a congregation_n be_v by_o no_o divine_a right_n assign_v by_o christ_n but_o by_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o there_o can_v be_v no_o transport_v of_o minister_n from_o one_o church_n to_o another_o 2._o because_o church_n than_o can_v not_o be_v enlarge_v nor_o diminish_v nor_o change_v which_o we_o see_v may_v be_v do_v cyprian_n as_o most_o sound_a in_o many_o thing_n so_o in_o this_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v we_o be_v say_v debemus_fw-la he_o many_o pastor_n but_o we_o feed_v one_o flock_n we_o see_v how_o mr._n h._n be_v please_v to_o fall_v upon_o i_o because_o i_o say_v that_o every_o pastor_n be_v a_o pastor_n to_o the_o church-universal_a by_o exhort_v in_o word_n and_o writ_n yea_o by_o rule_v in_o counsel_n and_o be_v not_o tie_v as_o a_o pastor_n to_o employ_v his_o labour_n to_o one_o single_a flock_n only_o we_o therefore_o condemn_v in_o our_o brethren_n 1_o that_o the_o care_n pastoral_a of_o any_o church_n but_o of_o one_o congregation_n of_o which_o the_o man_n be_v pastor_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la quasi_fw-la globâ_n affixus_fw-la be_v perish_v since_o the_o apostle_n die_v 2._o that_o they_o distinguish_v not_o between_o a_o pastor_n as_o he_o be_v a_o pastor_n to_o all_o church_n as_o the_o lord_n in_o providence_n shall_v call_v and_o between_o the_o same_o pastor_n as_o tie_v to_o his_o single_a church_n rather_o than_o to_o another_o by_o no_o divine_a right_n but_o the_o prudence_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o infallible_a 3._o that_o it_o be_v utter_o unlawful_a to_o transplant_v pastor_n upon_o any_o necessity_n of_o the_o great_a good_a of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n mr._n h._n 2_o arg._n it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n and_o fraternity_n to_o admit_v member_n ergo_fw-la to_o cast_v they_o out_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o admit_v of_o officer_n ans._n 1._o observe_v the_o circular_a probation_n between_o this_o and_o the_o former_a argument_n as_o be_v say_v 2._o give_v we_o one_o scripture_n or_o jot_n where_o the_o fraternity_n be_v either_o call_v the_o redeem_a church_n for_o so_o woman_n be_v not_o redeem_a church_n or_o the_o govern_n church_n for_o the_o officer_n be_v not_o ruler_n or_o let_v mr._n h._n give_v we_o a_o three_o church_n 3._o that_o the_o fraternity_n only_o and_o no_o woman_n give_v their_o tacit_n consent_n to_o the_o choose_n of_o mathias_n act._n 1._o of_o the_o deacon_n act._n 6._o of_o the_o elder_n act._n 14._o 23._o since_o their_o conscience_n be_v concern_v and_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o feed_v and_o redeem_v church_n as_o well_o as_o man_n can_v never_o be_v prove_v and_o who_o can_v deny_v woman_n 56._o to_o be_v of_o the_o plebs_fw-la people_n and_o fraternity_n as_o cyprian_n speak_v and_o of_o the_o brethren_n that_o paul_n james_n and_o the_o apostle_n write_v unto_o do_v not_o cyprian_n divide_v the_o church_n in_o stantes_fw-la &_o la_fw-fr psos_fw-la be_v there_o not_o woman_n that_o both_o yield_v to_o the_o persecutor_n and_o deny_v the_o truth_n and_o stand_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o suffer_v read_v cyprian_n cite_v by_o mr._n cotton_n and_o in_o other_o place_n m._n h._n 3_o arg._n either_o the_o people_n have_v a_o causal_a virtue_n in_o judge_v or_o only_o a_o consent_n the_o latter_a can_v be_v to_o consent_v to_o evil_n be_v sin_n to_o dissent_v from_o a_o just_a sentence_n make_v they_o to_o hinder_v the_o execution_n of_o a_o just_a sentence_n ans._n this_o be_v already_o answer_v and_o have_v not_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o some_o of_o the_o water_n elder_n have_v either_o a_o causal_a virtue_n in_o judge_v or_o only_o a_o consent_n the_o former_a i_o see_v not_o how_o they_o have_v mr._n h._n mr._n tho_o goodwin_n and_o mr._n philip_n nye_n give_v they_o key_n only_o a_o authoritative_a direct_a power_n such_o as_o parent_n have_v in_o the_o marriage_n of_o their_o daughter_n which_o be_v a_o authority_n extrinsical_a which_o the_o magistrate_n and_o pastor_n in_o their_o kind_n have_v but_o the_o virgin_n have_v the_o only_a formal_a and_o intrinsical_v power_n to_o consent_n and_o so_o to_o make_v the_o marriage_n and_o to_o
pagan_n o_o scriptureless_a cruelty_n to_o make_v god_n to_o break_v the_o covenant_n first_o the_o parent_n continue_v in_o covenant-obedience_n and_o suffering_n for_o christ_n mr._n h._n man_n of_o approve_a piety_n in_o covenant_n with_o god_n visible_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o seal_n say_v mr._n r._n but_o say_v mr._n h._n gracious_a man_n be_v pertinacious_a ans._n pertinacy_n in_o a_o scandal_n mar_v approve_v piety_n but_o because_o they_o approve_v not_o your_o way_n be_v they_o therefore_o pertinacious_a mr._n h._n to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o general_n and_o 20._o have_v no_o particular_a existence_n of_o membership_n in_o any_o particular_a congregation_n be_v a_o fancy_n as_o to_o say_v there_o be_v a_o part_n of_o manhood_n not_o exist_v in_o john_n thomas_n or_o any_o individual_n ans._n mr._n h._n fancy_n there_o be_v a_o promise_n of_o continue_v on_o the_o rock_n make_v to_o the_o congregation_n in_o general_n and_o yet_o this_o or_o that_o congregation_n fall_v off_o the_o rock_n 2._o mr._n r._n his_o church-general_a be_v no_o abstract_a generick_a nature_n but_o a_o individual_a integral_a catholic_n body_n exist_v in_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o one_o be_v baptize_v a_o member_n to_o all_o congregation_n jure_v and_o exist_v and_o dwell_v in_o one_o only_a as_o a_o man_n may_v have_v right_a to_o all_o city-priviledge_n and_o yet_o may_v reside_v and_o actual_o enjoy_v only_o the_o city_n privilege_n of_o london_n mr._n h._n imagine_v that_o our_o catholic_n integral_n church_n be_v genus_fw-la and_o the_o congregation_n species_n and_o if_o so_o the_o church_n of_o boston_n shall_v be_v the_o whole_a integral_n catholic_n church_n and_o the_o little_a finger_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o john_n chap._n ix_o a_o new_a device_n of_o mr._n h._n his_o two_o sentence_n the_o official_a and_o dogmatical_a sentence_n of_o officer_n yet_o not_o concional_a nor_o juridical_a and_o another_o juridical_a of_o the_o male-church_n be_v examine_v mr._n h._n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o ruler_n dogmatical_o to_o discover_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n and_o the_o mind_n of_o christ_n in_o convince_a by_o witness_n 41._o the_o offender_n and_o prepare_v the_o cause_n and_o the_o brethren_n have_v no_o more_o power_n to_o oppose_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o censure_n thus_o prepare_v and_o propound_v by_o the_o elder_n than_o they_o have_v to_o oppose_v their_o doctrine_n for_o the_o elder_n may_v preach_v it_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o office_n ans._n 1._o scripture_n tell_v we_o nothing_o of_o two_o sentence_n 2._o two_o judicature_n which_o lead_v witness_n ãâã_d 3._o two_o sort_n of_o bind_a judge_n this_o then_o be_v will-worship_n 2._o no_o scripture_n tell_v we_o of_o lead_v of_o witness_n to_o convince_v delinquent_n concional_o by_o way_n of_o preach_v old_a or_o new_a testament_n not_o mr._n h._n must_v here_o speak_v rev._n 2._o 2_o 14_o 20._o act_n 15._o matth._n 18._o 1._o 1_o cor._n 5_o 1_o 2._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o and_o elsewhere_o we_o read_v of_o but_o one_o juridical_a censure_n by_o the_o whole_a court_n and_o of_o one_o sentence_n if_o he_o hâaâ_n not_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v not_o apostle_n but_o liar_n rev._n 2._o 2._o jezabel_n shall_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o teach_v who_o can_v dream_v that_o these_o wââ¦_n first_o conclude_v dogmatical_o or_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v so_o cââ¦ded_v by_o the_o officer_n in_o one_o court_n and_o then_o be_v conclude_v juridical_o by_o the_o male_a church_n 3._o these_o word_n tââl_v the_o church_n whether_o must_v they_o be_v then_o tââ¦ll_o the_o officer_n that_o they_o may_v dogmatical_o determine_v or_o tell_v the_o male-church_n that_o they_o may_v juridical_o determine_v and_o yet_o one_o of_o these_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n by_o our_o brethren_n way_n or_o 3_o tell_v the_o church_n of_o redeem_a one_o which_o be_v their_o only_a church_n the_o first_o be_v our_o church_n of_o ruler_n which_o they_o can_v endure_v the_o other_o two_o can_v subsist_v 4._o who_o give_v rule_v elder_n a_o joint_a power_n to_o preach_v juridical_a sentence_n which_o must_v bind_v the_o unofficed_a brethren_n as_o the_o preach_v word_n of_o god_n for_o they_o have_v no_o call_n to_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 17_o and_o how_o can_v they_o preach_v except_o they_o be_v send_v rom._n 10._o 14_o 15_o 5._o how_o can_v rude_a and_o unlettered_a man_n who_o labour_v not_o in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o office_n dogmatical_o resolve_v deep_a point_n of_o heresy_n more_o than_o unofficed_a brethren_n and_o predetermine_v their_o conscience_n shall_v the_o roll_a elder_n lip_n that_o way_n preserve_v knowledge_n and_o shall_v they_o as_o the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n with_o the_o pastor_n carry_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o bind_v other_o what_o they_o do_v in_o synod_n be_v a_o far_a other_o thing_n for_o there_o they_o act_n juridical_o rather_o than_o dogmatical_o and_o joint_o with_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n 6._o this_o sentence_n must_v lay_v band_n upon_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o male_a church_n so_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v to_o they_o but_o to_o obey_v and_o can_v obey_a and_o submit_v to_o the_o word_n leave_v any_o room_n to_o judge_v in_o a_o authoritative_a way_n sure_o by_o this_o they_o must_v either_o hear_v and_o believe_v after_o a_o popular_a judge_n or_o then_o reject_v and_o so_o must_v woman_n and_o child_n of_o age_n and_o what_o place_n then_o be_v leave_v to_o juridical_a sentence_n by_o the_o elder_n or_o brethren_n yea_o so_o the_o church_n freedom_n of_o judge_v be_v none_o at_o all_o when_o the_o church_n may_v no_o more_o oppose_v that_o dogmatic_a sentence_n than_o they_o may_v oppose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o their_o officer_n and_o what_o great_a power_n can_v be_v give_v to_o any_o than_o what_o be_v give_v to_o this_o independent_a eldership_n 7._o when_o there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n between_o the_o two_o sentence_n which_o of_o the_o judicature_n must_v be_v supreme_a if_o the_o dogmatic_a be_v supreme_a they_o may_v dogmatick_o determine_v that_o the_o fraternity_n ought_v to_o be_v excommunicate_v for_o oppose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o their_o sentence_n and_o who_o can_v excommunicate_v a_o independent_a church_n and_o again_o when_o the_o elder_n themselves_o turn_v wolf_n who_o then_o can_v give_v out_o a_o official_a and_o dogmatic_a sentence_n against_o they_o that_o must_v be_v want_v and_o have_v not_o the_o like_a of_o this_o bring_v forth_o among_o brownist_n reciprocal_a excommunication_n chap._n x._o of_o synod_n and_o their_o power_n mr._n h._n synod_n be_v necessary_a for_o union_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o counsellor_n there_o be_v safety_n act_v 15._o prov._n 16._o ans._n union_n in_o truth_n and_o peace_n among_o church_n say_v these_o church_n must_v make_v one_o visible_a body_n then_o rupture_n renting_n body_n scandal_n must_v say_v there_o be_v in_o this_o body_n visible_a a_o necessity_n of_o government_n and_o jurisdiction_n must_v be_v incident_a to_o that_o visible_a body_n which_o they_o deny_v for_o this_o union_n must_v be_v a_o profess_a union_n to_o speak_v and_o think_v the_o same_o thing_n phil._n 2_o 2._o c._n 4._o and_o this_o be_v visible_a union_n and_o so_o they_o must_v meet_v not_o in_o their_o member_n that_o be_v unpossible_a and_o here_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n meeting_n for_o civil_a it_o be_v not_o debate_v advise_v about_o matter_n of_o government_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n so_o strong_a be_v truth_n mr._n h._n there_o be_v association_n of_o divers_a sort_n classis_fw-la synod_n 6._o provincial_a national_a oecumenick_n ans._n 1._o a_o general_a council_n be_v before_o mock_v as_o a_o nothing_o and_o the_o brethren_n bring_v argument_n against_o the_o being_n and_o nature_n of_o synod_n commissioner_n representees_n the_o contrary_n be_v here_o assert_v mr._n h._n the_o act_n must_v it_o be_v say_v mr._n r._n ãâã_d ecclesiastic_a decree_n ans._n ambignity_n darkness_n to_o bind_v as_o a_o part_n of_o scripture_n be_v 1._o that_o which_o be_v contain_v and_o clear_o deduce_v from_o scripture_n or_o 2._o that_o this_o act_n of_o decree_a issue_v from_o the_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n make_v that_o which_o be_v decree_v to_o be_v scripture_n in_o the_o former_a sense_n act_v tie_v as_o good_a advice_n and_o counsel_n only_o in_o the_o latter_a they_o tie_v not_o as_o scripture_n ans._n no_o man_n i_o do_v not_o say_v its_o do_n consultò_fw-la more_o darken_v i_o bring_v three_o member_n to_o clear_v the_o matter_n mr._n h._n leave_v 25._o out_o the_o three_o and_o darken_v all_o for_o act_n of_o synod_n
of_o christ_n by_o faith_n make_v one_o body_n and_o that_o he_o exclude_v not_o but_o include_v the_o visible_a body_n he_o prove_v from_o 1_o cor._n 12._o you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o eph._n 4._o the_o body_n gather_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o apostle_n evangelist_n pastor_n etc._n etc._n which_o shall_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n so_o 255._o christ_n be_v the_o rock_n of_o life_n and_o the_o rock_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o church_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n which_o admit_v not_o magn_n who_o be_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n as_o joh._n hush_n refuse_v a_o wicked_a pope_n to_o be_v head_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n so_o build_v ibid._n hieronymus_n clear_o expound_v the_o port_n of_o hell_n to_o be_v viâia_fw-la atque_fw-la peccata_fw-la reâr_n uâl_fw-la certè_fw-la ãâã_d doctrinas_fw-la sin_n or_o heresy_n which_o be_v strong_a for_o the_o invisible_a church_n of_o true_a believer_n not_o for_o the_o visible_a congregation_n of_o which_o judas_n and_o magus_n be_v member_n to_o mr._n hooker_n and_o be_v never_o build_v on_o the_o rock_n and_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n who_o may_v not_o under_o that_o pretence_n condemn_v the_o innocent_a and_o hieron_n com._n mat._n 18._o 18._o si_fw-mi ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la audierit_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la alligaveritis_fw-la potestatem_fw-la tribuit_fw-la apostolis_n ut_fw-la sciant_fw-la qui_fw-la à _fw-la ãâã_d condeânantur_fw-la humanam_fw-la sententiam_fw-la divinâ_fw-la roborari_fw-la &_o quodcunque_fw-la ligatum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la ligari_fw-la pariter_fw-la &_o in_o coelâ_n see_v hieronym_n com._n ad_fw-la eph._n 4._o 11._o who_o expound_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o church_n until_o we_o all_o meet_v all_o the_o company_n of_o believer_n and_o episcopus_fw-la hâeron_n let_v the_o bishop_n hear_v who_o have_v power_n of_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n nor_o need_v our_o brethren_n suspect_v hieronymus_n to_o be_v prelatical_a his_o judgement_n be_v know_v to_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o see_v hieron_n in_o tit._n 1._o 5._o see_v he_o for_o the_o present_a purpose_n in_o opuscul_n in_o prover_n c._n 7_o p._n 217._o see_v ruffinus_n perfidiae_fw-la for_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n say_v with_o we_o that_o pure_a doctrine_n declare_v a_o pure_a church_n and_o so_o the_o church_n which_o martion_n valentinus_n ebion_n and_o manicheus_fw-la and_o other_o heretic_n gather_v be_v not_o true_a church_n 5._o chrysostom_n if_o the_o port_n of_o hell_n prevail_v not_o against_o the_o church_n far_o less_o shall_v they_o prevail_v against_o i_o therefore_o thou_o shall_v not_o be_v trouble_v peter_n when_o thou_o hear_v that_o i_o shall_v be_v crucify_v then_o by_o the_o mind_n of_o chrysostom_n christ_n speak_v here_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o peter_n as_o a_o sound_a believer_n and_o not_o as_o a_o external_a visible_a member_n of_o a_o congregation_n as_o say_v mr._n h._n and_o see_v ibid._n here_o a_o fisherman_n be_v make_v pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o it_o can_v not_o have_v be_v the_o mind_n of_o chrysostom_n that_o such_o a_o headship_n whatever_o it_o be_v or_o whether_o peculiar_a to_o peter_n or_o no_o be_v another_o question_n be_v give_v to_o the_o people_n 18._o chrysostom_n expound_v tell_v the_o church_n tell_v the_o ruler_n authoritate_fw-la chrysostom_n as_o a_o king_n send_v judge_n give_v they_o power_n to_o cast_v guilty_a man_n in_o prison_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o so_o send_v christ_n his_o disciple_n and_o arm_n they_o with_o authority_n will_v any_o dream_n that_o chrysostom_n judge_v that_o christ_n give_v this_o power_n to_o the_o people_n 14._o chrysostom_n say_v the_o apostle_n take_v to_o themselves_o to_o determine_v the_o number_n of_o the_o deacon_n and_o to_o ordain_v they_o but_o they_o give_v the_o election_n of_o the_o man_n to_o the_o people_n lest_o the_o apostle_n shall_v seem_v partial_a and_o to_o favour_v man_n mr._n h._n say_v the_o contrary_a valiant_a ãâã_d athanasius_n make_v the_o church_n build_v upon_o a_o rock_n to_o be_v a_o strong_a a_o unshaken_a promise_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o inseparable_a thing_n although_o hell_n itself_o be_v move_v and_o these_o that_o be_v in_o hell_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n shall_v rage_v sure_o this_o great_a witness_n never_o mean_v any_o such_o invincible_a promise_n to_o a_o external_a visible_a congregation_n and_o its_o member_n judas_n and_o simon_n magus_n peter_n himself_o who_o receive_v the_o heavenly_a key_n sin_v say_v 853._o athanasius_n 296._o hilarius_n commend_v the_o rock_n which_o break_v the_o port_n of_o hell_n ãâã_d and_o say_v that_o man_n be_v loose_v or_o bind_v in_o heaven_n by_o condition_n of_o the_o apostle_n sentence_n then_o do_v he_o not_o think_v it_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o people_n let_v the_o learned_a judge_n of_o the_o ancient_a write_n of_o clemens_n that_o epistle_n of_o he_o to_o the_o corinthian_n read_v sometime_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n will_v have_v mr._n hooker_n visible_a convert_v only_a church-matter_n though_o he_o write_v to_o they_o as_o the_o true_a church_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d yet_o he_o write_v of_o a_o sad_a change_n of_o their_o profession_n such_o as_o be_v in_o israel_n when_o they_o make_v defection_n to_o idolatry_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d it_o be_v hard_a to_o say_v such_o a_o company_n be_v all_o visible_a convert_n 2._o clemens_n seem_v to_o deny_v to_o the_o people_n power_n of_o command_v and_o to_o say_v that_o the_o preacher_n ordain_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n upon_o these_o word_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n he_o gift_v universal_o all_o the_o apostle_n with_o power_n over_o unclean_a spirit_n then_o neither_o the_o one_o power_n nor_o the_o other_o give_v he_o to_o the_o people_n cyril_n alexan._n in_o isa._n l._n 5._o pag._n 393._o &_o cyrillus_n tom_n 2_o dialog_n de_fw-fr trinitat_fw-la l._n 4._o pag._n 278._o peter_n be_v so_o call_v from_o his_o most_o firm_a and_o unshaken_a faith_n in_o qua_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la ita_fw-la fundata_fw-la ac_fw-la firmatt_fw-mi essât_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la laberetur_fw-la &_o esser_fw-it expugnabilis_fw-la inferorum_fw-la portis_fw-la aeterââ¦um_fw-la manens_fw-la on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v that_o it_o can_v fail_v but_o remain_v for_o ever_o can_v be_v overcome_v by_o the_o port_n of_o hell_n cyrillus_n well_o know_v single_a congregation_n be_v not_o invincible_a and_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o save_a faith_n as_o magus_n can_v have_v it_o come_v from_o the_o father_n teach_v ex_fw-la ineffabili_fw-la erudition_n superna_fw-la etc._n etc._n see_v what_o apostolic_a dignity_n he_o give_v to_o they_o which_o he_o give_v not_o to_o the_o people_n cyrill_n in_o joan._n l._n 12._o c._n 56._o page_n 699_o 700._o cyrill_n on_o isa._n 5._o c._n 60_o page_n 383._o august_n tom_fw-mi 10._o dom._n 11_o post_v epiphan_n sect_n 2_o page_n 235._o tertius_fw-la modus_fw-la est_fw-la quomodo_fw-la totus_fw-la christus_fw-la secundum_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o corpus_fw-la praediceturâ_n etenim_fw-la caput_fw-la &_o corpus_fw-la unus_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la quia_fw-la sine_fw-la corpore_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la integer_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o nobiscum_fw-la integer_fw-la esse_fw-la dignatus_fw-la est_fw-la membra_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o corpus_fw-la sumus_fw-la omnes_fw-la simul_fw-la non_fw-la qui_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la sumus_fw-la tantum_fw-la feed_v &_o per_fw-la universam_fw-la terram_fw-la nee_n qui_fw-la tantum_fw-la hoc_fw-la tempore_fw-la sed_fw-la qui_fw-la dicam_fw-la ex_fw-la abelââ¦sto_fw-la usque_fw-la in_o finem_fw-la seculi_fw-la quandiu_fw-la generant_fw-la &_o generantur_fw-la hominis_fw-la it_o be_v needless_a to_o prove_v a_o visible_a integral_a catholic_a church_n all_o the_o world_n over_o not_o in_o asia_n only_o from_o augustine_n 2._o or_o to_o prove_v a_o mixture_n of_o tare_n and_o wheat_n of_o good_a and_o bad_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o visible_a convert_n that_o be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n 3._o how_o far_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o sacrament_n mali_fw-la maculent_fw-la &_o contaminent_fw-la bonos_fw-es see_v august-cont_a frumenââs_fw-la epist._n parmen_fw-la mr._n h._n devise_v a_o way_n for_o this_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o a_o man_n free_a choice_n without_o any_o compulsion_n of_o any_o to_o what_o congregation_n he_o shall_v join_v himself_o or_o not_o and_o though_o the_o doctrine_n and_o ordinance_n be_v most_o pure_a yet_o he_o may_v keep_v within_o himself_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o not_o join_v think_v such_o be_v profane_a and_o so_o there_o be_v little_a or_o nothing_o of_o christ_n presence_n in_o this_o church_n but_o the_o formal_a cause_n of_o join_v to_o a_o church_n in_o which_o one_o shall_v boni_fw-la reside_v be_v not_o the_o holiness_n of_o member_n but_o the_o soundness_n and_o purity_n of_o
the_o power_n intrinsical_a of_o a_o congregation_n to_o rule_v the_o associate_v church_n if_o they_o be_v page_n 126._o the_o add_v of_o associate_v church_n to_o a_o wilderness-church_n do_v strengthen_v &_o perfect_v and_o not_o nullify_v the_o intrinsical_v power_n of_o the_o wilderness-church_n pag._n 117._o when_o scandal_n fall_v out_o far_o off_o or_o near_a hand_n how_o association_n of_o church_n remove_v they_o the_o limit_v of_o church-edifying_a and_o church-comforting_a to_o one_o only_a congretien_n whereof_o the_o man_n only_o be_v a_o swear_a member_n be_v a_o unwarrantable_a and_o comfortless_a way_n the_o way_n of_o church_n of_o n._n e._n c._n 1._o sec._n 1._o p._n 1._o c._n 4._o sec._n 3._o sec._n 4._o p_o 70_o 71._o mr._n h._n survey_v pa._n 3._o c._n 2._o p._n 10._o m._n cotton_n key_n of_o the_o kingd_a c._n 7._o p._n 39_o 40_o 4â_n mr._n h._n par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 9_o p._n 127_o 128._o sec._n 4._o 3_o ground_n one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n agree_v to_o the_o congregational_a presbyterial_a church_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 127._o 128._o the_o congregational_a presbyterial_a national_a oecumenick_n church_n be_v species_n specialissimae_fw-la how_o a_o congregation_n be_v a_o entire_a church_n tertul._n in_o apolog_n though_o the_o church_n of_o believer_n man_n and_o woman_n be_v before_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n pastor_n presbytery_n synod_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o must_v apostle_n pastor_n synod_n have_v their_o call_n and_o authority_n from_o those_o church_n sect._n 4._o p._n 128._o mr._n hooker_n acknowledge_v that_o divers_a meeting_n and_o church_n convention_n may_v may_v be_v all_o under_o one_o presbyterial_a government_n only_o he_o will_v not_o call_v they_o church_n way_n of_o the_o church_n c._n 1._o sect_n par_fw-fr 1._o survey_v par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 9_o p._n 110_o 111_o etc._n etc._n mr._n h._n must_v be_v force_v by_o his_o own_o principle_n to_o grant_v there_o be_v one_o visible_a church_n which_o can_v meet_v convenient_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o yet_o under_o the_o same_o eldership_n mr._n h._n yield_v to_o we_o a_o presbyterian_a church_n at_o jerusalem_n page_n 51._o fixedness_n or_o no_o fixedness_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o their_o own_o proper_a congregation_n be_v altogether_o accidental_a to_o the_o church_n presbyterial_a the_o apostle_n fix_v feed_v at_o rome_n at_o corinth_n be_v not_o opposite_a unto_o but_o of_o that_o same_o nature_n with_o his_o feed_n pastoral_a all_o the_o world_n over_o all_o the_o incongruity_n that_o be_v the_o only_a argument_n of_o mr._n h._n against_o a_o presbyterial_a church_n be_v militant_a against_o the_o presbyterial_a church_n which_o mr._n h._n grant_v be_v at_o jerusalem_n mr._n h._n well_o near_o also_o yield_v that_o there_o be_v a_o presbyterian_a church_n at_o antioch_n ephesus_n rome_n there_o be_v the_o like_a reason_n that_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n at_o rome_n antioch_n ephesus_n corinth_n samaria_n thessalonica_n can_v not_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n and_o so_o there_o must_v be_v in_o these_o huge_a city_n many_o congregation_n under_o one_o presbyterial_a government_n as_o for_o the_o multitude_n at_o jerusalem_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o church_n act._n 2._o be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n mr._n h._n incline_v to_o expââ¦_n the_o word_n cââ¦h_v of_o the_o âââthful_a saul_n make_v havoc_n of_o the_o cââ¦_n eââ¦_n there_o be_v ãâã_d presbytery_n a_o church_n how_o watery_a be_v this_o logic_n par._n 1._o c._n 10._o p._n 130._o mr._n r._n argument_n mat._n 18._o from_o allusion_n unto_o the_o jewish_a sanhedrim_n abuse_v not_o answer_v m_o r._n be_v not_o for_o all_o appeal_n whatsoever_o justor_n unjust_a but_o for_o such_o as_o be_v edify_v and_o necessary_a and_o relieve_v from_o tyrannical_a oppression_n the_o plaintiff_n pag._n 131._o the_o remove_n of_o scandal_n mat._n 18._o can_v be_v of_o only_a scandal_n between_o brother_n and_o brother_n of_o the_o same_o congregation_n except_o i_o must_v not_o own_v as_o brethren_n to_o be_v gain_v those_o of_o another_o church_n beside_o i_o christ_n will_v every_o little_a congregation_n to_o exercise_v discipline_n upon_o a_o offender_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o discipline_n to_o be_v exercise_v in_o a_o great_a church_n so_o mr._n h._n but_o the_o contrary_a rather_o strong_o follow_v the_o sanhedrim_n be_v not_o mix_v by_o institution_n paul_n presbyt_fw-la c_o 8._o p._n 88_o the_o church_n mat._n 18._o be_v to_o be_v obey_v in_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o people_n but_o the_o church_n of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v in_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o people_n woman_n be_v as_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o believe_a church_n as_o man_n and_o womân_n must_v no_o more_o blind_o believe_v what_o the_o church_n believe_v than_o man_n nor_o must_v their_o faith_n in_o discern_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o pastor_n not_o in_o this_o be_v blind_o include_v in_o the_o male_n discern_v and_o so_o woman_n must_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o bind_n and_o lose_v church_n mat._n 18._o survey_v par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 10._o p._n 133._o the_o church_n principal_o mean_v mat._n 18._o must_v be_v the_o bind_n and_o lose_v brethren_n which_o be_v the_o church_n first_o the_o officer_n be_v only_o separable_a adjunct_n thereof_o say_v m._n h._n par._n 1._o c._n 11._o p._n 198._o when_o all_o the_o officer_n turn_v wolf_n the_o people_n must_v complain_v to_o the_o people_n &_o when_o the_o people_n turn_v familist_n socinian_o &c._n &c._n to_o who_o sâaâl_v the_o officer_n complain_v accord_v to_o m._n h._n mind_n the_o officer_n can_v bind_v potestate_fw-la officii_fw-la since_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o the_o male-church_n before_o the_o officer_n have_v be_v as_o m_o h_n say_v we_o can_v tell_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n or_o galatia_n by_o m._n h._n woman_n have_v no_o less_o a_o tacit_n consent_n a_o faith_n of_o practice_n in_o eschew_v the_o society_n of_o the_o excommunicate_v in_o admit_v of_o he_o again_o and_o of_o all_o member_n &_o in_o election_n of_o officer_n than_o man_n and_o in_o other_o duty_n recommend_v to_o church-member_n let_v m._n h._n show_v how_o woman_n be_v all_o exclude_v from_o church_n duty_n in_o their_o way_n more_o than_o man_n so_o cypr._n juban_n epist._n 73._o pag._n 22._o nam_fw-la petro_n primum_fw-la dominus_fw-la super_fw-la quem_fw-la adificavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la mat._n 16._o istaem_n potestatem_fw-la clavium_fw-la dedit_fw-la &_o post_fw-la resurrectionem_fw-la sicut_fw-la i_o misit_fw-la pater_fw-la etc._n etc._n firmilian_a ad_fw-la cypr._n epist._n 75._o cypr._n pag._n 239._o n._n 14._o hinc_fw-la intelligi_fw-la potest_fw-la quod_fw-la soli_fw-la petro_n christus_fw-la dixerit_fw-la quemcunque_fw-la ligaveritis_fw-la matth._n 16_o etc._n etc._n quando_fw-la in_o solos_fw-la apostolos_fw-la insufflavit_fw-la christus_fw-la dicens_fw-la accipite_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o word_n church_n can_v signify_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roll_a church_n mat._n 18._o and_o the_o notation_n of_o the_o word_n church_n in_o our_o brethrenssense_n be_v neither_o mat._n 18._o nor_o elsewhere_o see_v how_o bilson_n perpetual_a g_o ve_fw-la n._n c._n 4._o mistake_n in_o this_o though_o woman_n child_n of_o age_n and_o servant_n be_v exclude_v from_o govern_v yet_o the_o question_n now_o be_v a_o far_a other_o thing_n whether_o the_o word_n church_n mat._n 18._o if_o it_o be_v the_o church_n of_o redeem_a one_o meeting_n to_o and_o for_o public_a ordinance_n in_o the_o same_o place_n include_v not_o woman_n etc._n etc._n the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d church_n be_v ever_o take_v in_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o subject_a matter_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o place_n and_o so_o must_v the_o bind_n and_o lose_v or_o excommunicate_v church_n matth._n 18._o be_v take_v and_o can_v note_v a_o company_n of_o redeem_a one_o man_n woman_n servants_z child_n of_o ripe_a age_n come_v together_o in_o one_o to_o partake_v of_o word_n seal_n censure_n the_o only_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n church_n that_o our_o brethren_n can_v give_v we_o from_o scripture_n the_o church_n matth._n 18._o &_o 1_o cor._n 5._o include_v all_o who_o meet_v for_o the_o public_a worship_n elder_n man_n woman_n servants_z age_a child_n every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o place_n according_a as_o paul_n rebuke_n comfort_n teach_v in_o his_o epistle_n 1_o cor._n 1._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d rom._n 16._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o woman_n in_o their_o daily_a practice_n be_v concern_v in_o conscience_n to_o censent_fw-la unto_fw-la or_o dissent_v from_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n or_o forgive_a and_o re-admiting_a again_o and_o that_o upon_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o well_o as_o man_n caelv_n inst._n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o sec._n 12._o instit_n l._n 4._o c._n 1._o sec._n 2._o instit._fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 12._o
pass_v any_o judicial_a sentence_n of_o magus_n as_o a_o real_a convert_n nor_o yet_o as_o any_o non-reall_a convert_n and_o therefore_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n and_o charity_n which_o need_v not_o to_o be_v pluck_v out_o but_o have_v their_o own_o use_n magus_n when_o he_o be_v admit_v a_o visible_a member_n be_v neither_o a_o real_a member_n of_o the_o devil_n nor_o a_o real_a member_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o professor_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v abstract_v both_o from_o the_o eternal_a election_n and_o the_o eternal_a reprobation_n of_o magus_n and_o from_o the_o real_a conversion_n or_o the_o real_a non-conversion_n of_o magus_n and_o we_o desire_v one_o jot_n or_o word_n of_o scripture_n where_o the_o servant_n matth._n 22._o be_v thus_o limit_v as_o m._n h._n suppose_v invite_v none_o to_o come_v to_o the_o wedding_n of_o the_o king_n son_n but_o such_o only_a as_o you_o judge_v to_o be_v real_o convert_v and_o clothe_v with_o the_o wedding_n garment_n the_o parable_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o the_o contrary_a verse_n 9_o as_o many_o as_o you_o find_v bid_v to_o the_o marriage_n yea_o v._n 14._o say_v the_o inviter_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v whether_o they_o be_v choose_v or_o effectual_o call_v or_o not_o choose_v or_o non-effectual_o call_v though_o one_o of_o they_o in_o themselves_o they_o must_v be_v and_o when_o the_o maid_n of_o wisdom_n prov._n 9_o be_v send_v out_o reads_z m._n h._n of_o such_o a_o limit_v commission_n see_v you_o call_v in_o and_o admit_v none_o within_o the_o door_n of_o wisdom_n house_n but_o only_o such_o as_o you_o judge_v to_o be_v the_o spiritual_a new_a bear_v child_n of_o wisdom_n yea_o the_o maid_n express_o call_v in_o the_o fool_n and_o the_o simple_a one_o to_o be_v make_v wise_a v_o 4_o whereas_o m._n h_n supââ¦oses_v they_o have_v eat_v the_o dainty_n of_o wisdom_n before_o ever_o they_o come_v in_o aâ_n wisdom_n door_n and_o so_o against_o common_a sense_n in_o lieu_n of_o a_o argument_n he_o beg_v the_o question_n so_o if_o m._n hooker_n visible_a saint_n only_o be_v not_o member_n prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o visible_a saint_n first_o otherwise_o the_o papist_n may_v say_v if_o our_o visible_a bishop_n be_v not_o the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n then_o our_o non-visible_a bishop_n may_v be_v head_n we_o grant_v all_o and_o then_o m._n h._n bid_v we_o yield_v to_o what_o he_o say_v without_o probation_n and_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o his_o non-visible_a saint_n be_v member_n and_o so_o his_o visible_a saint_n be_v man_n in_o the_o moon_n to_o we_o and_o in_o reality_n of_o truth_n no_o such_o thing_n chap._n four_o the_o place_n psal._n 50._o 16._o what_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v to_o declare_v my_o statute_n be_v discuss_v and_o say_v nothing_o for_o m._n h._n his_o visible_a member_n master_n hooker_n his_o four_o reason_n they_o these_o who_o be_v exclude_v from_o his_o covenant_n and_o meddle_v with_o that_o as_o unfit_a they_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n for_o to_o that_o all_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n do_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n appertain_v it_o be_v god_n house_n and_o there_o all_o his_o treasure_n lie_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v give_v to_o they_o to_o they_o all_o the_o oracle_n ordinance_n and_o privilege_n âo_o belong_v but_o these_o who_o hate_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o cast_v away_o his_o command_n they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v to_o take_v his_o covenant_n in_o their_o mouth_n psal._n 50._o 16._o answer_v it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o m._n h._n leave_v the_o conclusion_n to_o the_o reader_n and_o set_v down_o a_o proposition_n and_o a_o assumption_n all_o along_o such_o as_o they_o be_v 2._o he_o never_o conclude_v what_o be_v deny_v ergo_fw-la only_o such_o visible_a saint_n be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n 3._o he_o speak_v most_o ambiguous_o such_o hypocrite_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n what_o church_n he_o know_v the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n only_o for_o he_o grant_v part_n 1._o c._n 2._o conclus_fw-la â3_n pag._n 27._o 28._o that_o such_o as_o be_v find_v to_o be_v corrupt_v and_o gross_a hypocrite_n be_v now_o receive_v member_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o when_o first_o admit_v be_v so_o far_o fit_a to_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n visible_a as_o they_o must_v be_v tolerate_v and_o remain_v member_n until_o they_o be_v judicial_o examine_v convince_a and_o censune_n apply_v for_o reformation_n 4_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o prove_v that_o open_a hypocrite_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o it_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o so_o know_v admitter_n for_o which_o m._n r._n now_o dispute_v and_o a_o far_o other_o thing_n which_o m._n h._n prove_v to_o wit_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a that_o hypocrite_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n what_o a_o lax_n dispute_v be_v this_o they_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o 1_o cor._n 11._o 28._o 29._o and_o eat_v thing_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 21._o shall_v not_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n in_o the_o holy_a ordinance_n will_v paul_n therefore_o infer_v such_o though_o convert_v be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a yea_o it_o be_v sin_n that_o either_o profess_a non-converts_a or_o latent_fw-la non-converts_a have_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n for_o their_o very_a profession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n when_o there_o be_v no_o reality_n in_o the_o thing_n be_v a_o most_o sinful_a unfitnesse_n in_o magus_n in_o judas_n will_v it_o follow_v ergo_fw-la the_o church_n sin_n in_o admit_v magus_n and_o judas_n 5._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n be_v overturn_v for_o the_o scope_n of_o psal._n 50._o 16_o 17._o as_o calvin_n musculus_fw-la marlorat_n diodati_n english_a divine_v observe_v well_o be_v to_o press_v a_o sincere_a reality_n in_o profession_n and_o to_o condemn_v outward_a sacrifice_v and_o cry_v we_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o god_n not_o only_o without_o repentance_n and_o pray_v and_o praise_v in_o faith_n 12._o 13._o 14._o 15._o 16._o but_o when_o the_o so_o profess_v hypocrite_n be_v compartner_n with_o thief_n adulterer_n etc._n etc._n v._n 18._o 19_o 20._o but_o the_o place_n speak_v not_o one_o jot_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v admit_v such_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n 6._o let_v it_o be_v remember_v that_o m._n h._n here_o make_v the_o jewish_a church_n a_o sampler_n of_o the_o visible_a single_a congregation_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n 7._o and_o since_o all_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n rom._n 31._o 2._o rom._n 9_o 4_o 15_o psal._n 147._o 19_o 20._o deut._n 29._o 10_o 11._o if_o the_o people_n lord_n call_v they_o not_o nor_o plant_v they_o into_o a_o church-frame_n nor_o admit_v they_o member_n until_o first_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o these_o hypocrite_n psal._n 50_o 16._o 17._o and_o until_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o profess_a willingness_n to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n i_o speak_v the_o language_n of_o m._n h._n 16_o pag._n 28._o but_o a_o practical_a reformation_n in_o their_o profession_n survey_v part_n 1._o cap._n pag._n 14._o 15._o that_o they_o savour_v so_o much_o as_o they_o have_v be_v with_o jesus_n and_o if_o so_o be_v they_o must_v have_v be_v the_o true_a israel_n in_o man_n esteem_n before_o the_o lord_n call_v and_o choose_v they_o to_o be_v his_o people_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o god_n choose_v not_o israel_n to_o be_v his_o church_n of_o free_a mouth_n grace_n and_o love_n but_o when_o they_o be_v now_o professor_n and_o practical_o reform_v and_o a_o people_n call_v upon_o god_n in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n offer_v thanksgiving_n pay_v vow_n love_a instruction_n contrary_a to_o these_o hypocrite_n psal._n 50_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o which_o be_v gross_a pelagianism_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2_o chron._n 2._o 11._o deut._n 7_o 6_o 7_o 8._o psal_n 47_o 4._o psal._n 78_o 68_o 8._o nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o all_o oracle_n ordinance_n and_o privilege_n de_fw-mi belong_v to_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o visible_a in_o m._n h._n sense_n i._n e._n to_o every_o single_a congregation_n for_o there_o be_v there_o may_v be_v a_o single_a congregation_n which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o choose_v of_o god_n but_o all_o make_v up_o of_o such_o stuff_n as_o magus_n and_o judas_n yea_o and_o the_o promise_n of_o a_o everlasting_a covenant_n and_o the_o privilege_n of_o election_n effectual_a calling_n perseverance_n glorification_n
be_v not_o make_v to_o single_a church_n or_o kingdom_n province_n since_o the_o famous_a church_n of_o rome_n ephesus_n thessalonica_n of_o asia_n be_v horrible_o fall_v these_o previledge_n belong_v first_o and_o principal_o to_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n as_o mystical_a and_o invisible_a both_o subjectiuè_n and_o finaliter_fw-la or_o objective_o especial_o as_o they_o be_v god_n treasure_n m._n h._n pag._n 18._o m._n r._n yield_v the_o cause_n while_o he_o grant_v the_o wicked_a be_v forbid_v what_o to_o be_v church_n member_n no_o but_o to_o take_v the_o covenant_n of_o god_n in_o their_o mouth_n for_o if_o they_o come_v to_o see_v their_o sin_n reform_v their_o evil_a way_n they_o be_v non-visible_a saint_n therefore_o while_o they_o remain_v hater_n of_o reformation_n they_o be_v not_o visible_a saint_n and_o have_v no_o title_n to_o be_v church-member_n answ._n the_o cause_n be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o yield_v because_o of_o m._n h._n his_o mistake_n in_o prove_v one_o thing_n for_o another_o the_o lord_n psal._n 50._o 16_o forbid_v hypocrite_n remain_v hypocrite_n to_o take_v the_o lord_n covenant_n in_o their_o mouth_n but_o i_o say_v not_o therefore_o he_o forbid_v the_o church_n to_o take_v in_o any_o as_o member_n but_o these_o only_a to_o come_v to_o see_v thâir_a sin_n and_o to_o reform_v their_o evil_a way_n as_o m_n h._n say_v which_o be_v indeed_o to_o yield_v the_o cause_n for_o if_o they_o who_o leave_v the_o way_n of_o paganism_n judaism_n popery_n and_o the_o way_n of_o sin_n profess_v they_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n if_o the_o profession_n be_v not_o gross_o and_o known_o hypocritical_a and_o their_o come_n in_o be_v not_o for_o by-end_n and_o to_o betray_v the_o cause_n but_o moral_o ingenuous_a and_o negative_o sincere_a the_o church_n be_v to_o receive_v such_o and_o be_v not_o forbid_v to_o admit_v they_o as_o member_n whether_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v real_a convert_n or_o not_o real_a convert_n i_o grant_v it_o be_v another_o thing_n if_o they_o refuse_v to_o come_v and_o to_o be_v baptize_v luk._n 7._o 29_o 30._o luk._n 14._o 17_o 18._o sure_a no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o church-member_n against_o his_o will_n 2._o the_o lord_n may_v well_o rebuke_v magus_n and_o judas_n while_o they_o be_v church-member_n the_o same_o way_n that_o he_o rebuke_n the_o hypocrite_n psal._n 50._o 16_o 17._o and_o say_v what_o have_v you_o to_o do_v to_o declare_v my_o statute_n etc._n etc._n for_o i_o know_v your_o heart_n how_o you_o hate_v instruction_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o the_o church_n sin_n not_o in_o admit_v they_o 3._o m._n h._n confound_v these_o two_o to_o wit_n the_o see_v of_o sin_n and_o reform_v of_o their_o evil_a way_n which_o be_v real_a and_o sincere_a repentance_n if_o it_o be_v a_o save_a sight_n of_o sin_n they_o sincere_o repent_v if_o it_o be_v counterfeit_a to_o wit_n the_o give_a evidence_n of_o godly_a sorrow_n and_o repentance_n the_o church_n may_v see_v the_o latter_a and_o yet_o magus_n and_o judas_n remain_v under_o the_o same_o reproof_n for_o they_o may_v in_o their_o heart_n hate_v instruction_n and_o act_v these_o sin_n of_o partake_v with_o thief_n secret_o and_o be_v secret_a adulterer_n and_o the_o word_n may_v reprove_v they_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o blame_n in_o the_o church_n in_o either_o admit_v they_o or_o in_o bestow_v church-priviledge_n upon_o they_o chap._n v._n of_o the_o call_n of_o god_n to_o make_v a_o church_n 2._o there_o may_v be_v a_o true_a visible_a church_n and_o member_n thereof_o before_o there_o be_v any_o seal_n in_o that_o church_n whether_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n be_v a_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n master_n hooker_n pag_n 18._o m._n rutherfurd_n such_o as_o internal_o hate_v to_o be_v reform_v may_v be_v ordinary_a hearer_n and_o so_o member_n m._n h._n if_o ordinary_a hear_v make_v a_o member_n then_o excommunicate_a person_n shall_v be_v member_n for_o they_o be_v ordinary_a hearer_n ans._n if_o m._n r._n make_v every_o ordinary_a hear_n to_o make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n ordinary_a and_o entire_a he_o say_v something_o 2._o this_o twitch_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o essential_a note_n and_o mark_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n before_o i_o speak_v how_o far_o person_n excommunicate_a be_v member_n or_o not_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n hence_o 1._o any_o sort_n of_o profession_n not_o whether_o by_o a_o avow_n of_o that_o gospel_n to_o one_o another_o or_o suffer_v for_o it_o even_o when_o the_o shepherd_n be_v smite_v and_o the_o flock_n scatter_v be_v a_o practical_a and_o very_a speak_a mark_n that_o such_o a_o company_n be_v a_o true_a church_n 2._o a_o pastoral_a publish_n of_o the_o word_n be_v a_o special_a mark_n and_o a_o great-half_a of_o a_o note_n of_o a_o ministerial_a politic_a church_n though_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o seal_n to_o those_o capable_a of_o they_o add_v thereunto_o make_v a_o more_o complete_a mark_n of_o a_o more_o complete_a ministerial_a church_n 3._o the_o active_a call_n of_o god_n by_o the_o preach_v word_n may_v be_v transient_a and_o occasional_a to_o mock_a athenian_n act._n 17._o and_o yet_o intend_v to_o save_v some_o and_o to_o be_v a_o seed_n to_o some_o church_n v_o 34._o certain_a be_v lead_n this_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o some_o church_n like_o some_o corn_n of_o wheat_n scattered_o fall_v in_o a_o field_n that_o may_v have_v a_o harvest_n 4._o this_o active_a call_n may_v be_v refuse_v and_o the_o refuser_n never_o be_v the_o church_n luk._n 14_o 16_o 17._o not_o visible_a member_n they_o visible_o refuse_v the_o call_n and_o counsel_n of_o god_n and_o neglect_v obstinate_o to_o be_v baptize_v luk._n 7â_n 30._o 5._o but_o we_o mean_v beside_o this_o active_a call_v some_o passive_a profess_v and_o receive_v of_o and_o yielââ¦g_v to_o the_o offer_a gospel_n so_o as_o they_o come_v to_o the_o marriage-supper_n whether_o they_o have_v or_o want_v a_o wedding_n garment_n mat._n 22._o and_o receive_v the_o seed_n whether_o they_o be_v thorny_a rocky_a or_o a_o way-side_n ground_n or_o they_o be_v good_a soil_n and_o may_v yield_v some_o external_a obedience_n in_o this_o consideration_n pagan_n and_o turk_n be_v not_o passive_o seal_n the_o call_v of_o god_n nor_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n though_o they_o be_v hearer_n but_o that_o they_o be_v ordinary_a fix_a hearer_n and_o yet_o in_o no_o sort_n external_a professor_n but_o remain_v without_o and_o be_v pagan_n be_v not_o conceivable_a except_o they_o profess_o hear_v for_o curiosity_n or_o to_o mock_v or_o to_o undermine_v the_o gospel_n and_o church_n and_o so_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v hearer_n or_o church_n member_n except_o by_o violence_n they_o thrust_v themselves_o in_o among_o hearer_n 1._o abraham_n call_v with_o his_o house_n to_o leave_v idolatry_n obey_v the_o call_n build_v a_o altar_n to_o the_o lord_n gen._n 12._o 1_o 2_o etc._n etc._n 18._o profess_v and_o teach_v as_o a_o prophet_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o god_n appear_v reveal_v the_o gospel_n to_o he_o genes_n 12._o v._n 2_o 3_o genis_n 15._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o he_o believe_v and_o so_o he_o and_o his_o house_n be_v a_o visible_a church_n when_o not_o while_o many_o year_n after_o and_o until_o he_o be_v ninety_o year_n and_o nine_o the_o seal_n of_o circumcision_n be_v ordain_v and_o give_v to_o he_o and_o his_o house_n genes_n 17._o 1_o 2_o 3._o and_o the_o church_n be_v a_o true_a visible_a church_n in_o the_o wilderness_n in_o which_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o covenant_n who_o speak_v to_o moses_n in_o mount_n sina_n act._n 7._o 38._o which_o be_v a_o note_n and_o mark_v of_o a_o true_a visible_a church_n revel_v 1._o 20._o rev._n 2._o 1._o which_o yet_o want_v circumcision_n and_o the_o passover_n forty_o year_n in_o the_o wilderness_n josh._n 5._o 5_o 6_o 7._o this_o prove_n that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a visible_a church_n where_o christ_n be_v and_o yet_o want_v the_o ordinary_a seal_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n 2._o when_o the_o apostle_n first_o plant_v church_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n that_o they_o baptize_v preach_v to_o ephesus_n to_o galathia_fw-la to_o philippi_n to_o corinth_n where_o god_n have_v much_o people_n as_o the_o lord_n before_o have_v tell_v paul_n act._n 16._o 6_o 7_o 10_o 11_o 12_o 13._o act._n 18._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o and_o that_o they_o frame_v they_o not_o into_o church_n until_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o be_v convert_n and_o so_o to_o they_o all_o choose_v to_o eternal_a life_n and_o until_o they_o do_v
first_o be_v a_o number_n of_o visible_a convert_n choose_v paul_n and_o other_o planter_n of_o the_o church_n for_o their_o pastor_n whereas_o they_o preach_v to_o they_o for_o their_o conversion_n as_o no_o pastor_n at_o all_o before_o that_o choose_n but_o as_o gift_a man_n for_o that_o have_v not_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o word_n so_o also_o they_o do_v first_o hear_v the_o gospel_n as_o disciple_n and_o visible_a professor_n before_o they_o can_v be_v baptize_v or_o receive_v to_o the_o other_o seal_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o eunuch_n profess_v read_v and_o ask_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o which_o he_o read_v isai._n 53._o act._n 8._o 29_o 30_o 31._o and_o his_o profess_a seek_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o the_o jailor_n profess_v hear_v and_o ask_v what_o he_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v aââ_n 16._o 30_o 31_o 32._o and_o by_o the_o hear_n and_o pofess_v of_o all_o his_o house_n before_o they_o be_v baptize_v and_o the_o corinthian_n hear_v and_o believe_v act._n 18._o 8._o and_o lydia_n and_o her_o house_n hear_v act._n 16_o 14_o 15._o and_o the_o gentile_n reverend_a profess_v hear_v the_o word_n act._n 10._o 33_o 44_o 45_o 46._o and_o the_o three_o thousand_o act._n 52._o hearing_n and_o say_v which_o be_v a_o fair_a visible_a profession_n man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v before_o any_o of_o they_o be_v baptize_v act._n 2._o v._n 37_o 41_o 42_o 43._o which_o prove_v that_o both_o active_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o profess_a receive_v thereof_o go_v before_o man_n be_v inchurch_v and_o yet_o if_o these_o may_v be_v to_o wit_n hear_v and_o profess_a receive_v here_o be_v a_o essential_a mark_n by_o which_o person_n before_o they_o receive_v the_o seal_n be_v make_v member_n visible_a and_o disciple_n and_o society_n visible_a and_o church_n essential_o difference_v 1._o from_o all_o the_o false_a church_n visible_a on_o earth_n who_o have_v not_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o profess_o hear_v and_o visible_o receive_v and_o 2._o from_o all_o civil_a society_n 3._o from_o all_o pagan_a and_o heathen_a society_n on_o earth_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v a_o distinct_a christian_a society_n difference_v essential_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v all_o die_v before_o they_o have_v be_v baptize_v or_o have_v receive_v the_o seal_n they_o have_v be_v true_a visible_a church-member_n and_o if_o kill_v for_o the_o truth_n they_o have_v die_v visible_a profess_v martyr_n and_o the_o call_v church_n of_o christ._n 3._o the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o thing_n who_o be_v be_v in_o succession_n inchurch_v and_o daily_o grow_v and_o be_v a_o society_n daily_o more_o state_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o churchway_n according_a as_o the_o active_a call_n on_o the_o lord_n part_n and_o his_o people_n yield_v thereunto_o in_o a_o daily_a profession_n go_v on_o as_o isai_n 65._o 2._o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n long_o call_v and_o to_o speak_v so_o inchurch_v daily_o people_n by_o the_o preach_v word_n math._n 23._o 37._o how_o often_o will_v i_o have_v gather_v you_o jer._n 7._o 25._o he_o send_v his_o prophet_n early_o in_o the_o morning_n and_o late_o at_o night_n to_o call_v hence_o if_o that_o which_o be_v the_o essential_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a to_o wit_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o only_a instrument_n and_o the_o draw-net_n of_o pull_v out_o and_o call_n of_o man_n into_o fellowship_n with_o christ_n by_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o if_o the_o seal_n do_v only_o confirm_v convert_n as_o discipline_n keep_v the_o visible_a kingdom_n clean_o from_o visible_a scandal_n then_o be_v these_o who_o profess_o in_o that_o society_n partake_v and_o receive_v that_o essential_a mark_n and_o yield_v external_o thereunto_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o a_o society_n make_v up_o of_o such_o a_o true_a visible_a church_n though_o they_o receive_v not_o yet_o all_o the_o ordinance_n and_o be_v as_o the_o outer_a court_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o active_a call_n of_o god_n by_o the_o preach_v word_n and_o the_o people_n profess_a yield_a thereunto_o and_o their_o ordinary_a profess_a hearing_n be_v such_o a_o mark_n both_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o all_o our_o protestant_a divine_n calvin_n beza_n bâl._n p._n martyr_n bucanus_n tilenus_n piscator_fw-la musculus_fw-la gualther_n junius_n pareus_n zanchius_n professor_n of_o leideu_n willet_n jewel_n reynald_n trelcatius_n sadeel_v polanus_fw-la etc._n etc._n father_n counsel_n old_a and_o late_a and_o our_o brethren_n can_v build_v their_o new_a church_n but_o by_o lose_v the_o foundation-stone_n lay_v by_o these_o worthy_a builder_n and_o the_o scripture_n make_v feed_v of_o the_o flock_n &_o set_v up_o the_o shepherd_n tent_n cant._n 1._o 7_o 8._o jer._n 3._o 15._o feed_v of_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o feed_v flock_n act._n 20._o 28._o 1_o pet._n 6._o 1._o the_o golden_a candlestick_n in_o the_o preach_v word_n and_o these_o in_o the_o house_n to_o who_o it_o give_v light_a the_o only_a mark_n of_o a_o true_a visible_a church_n so_o be_v it_o prophesy_v it_o shall_v be_v under_o the_o new_a testament_n isai._n 2._o 3._o many_o people_n and_o nation_n shall_v go_v and_o say_v come_v and_o let_v we_o go_v up_o to_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n house_n how_o shall_v the_o visible_a mountain_n be_v know_v and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n and_o we_o will_v walk_v in_o his_o path_n for_o out_o of_o zion_n the_o visible_a church_n shall_v go_v 2â2_n forth_o the_o law_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o jerusalem_n so_o isai._n 62._o 6._o the_o visible_a city_n be_v know_v i_o have_v set_v watchman_n upon_o thy_o wall_n o_o jerusalem_n which_o shall_v never_o hold_v their_o peace_n but_o preach_v and_o pray_v day_n nor_o night_n psal._n 147._o 19_o he_o show_v his_o word_n unto_o jacob_n his_o statute_n and_o his_o judgement_n to_o israel_n and_o that_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v a_o church_n difference_v from_o other_o society_n v_o 20._o he_o have_v not_o deal_v so_o with_o any_o nation_n i_o grant_v statute_n and_o judgement_n include_v seal_n sacrifice_n as_o all_o the_o privilege_n rom._n 6._o 4_o 5._o to_o who_o pertain_v the_o adoption_n and_o the_o glory_n and_o the_o covenant_n and_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n yet_o by_o the_o word_n sound_o preach_v be_v faith_n beget_v rom._n 10._o 14_o 15_o and_o the_o flock_n feed_v and_o the_o disciple_n make_v matthew_n 28._o 19_o 20_o it_o be_v teach_v that_o sacrament_n do_v but_o confirm_v faith_n now_o a_o ministerial_a beget_n of_o child_n be_v to_o speak_v so_o more_o essential_a to_o the_o visible_a church_n then_o to_o confirm_v they_o 2._o that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v which_o teach_v we_o no_o way_n of_o certain_a know_v by_o faith_n what_o be_v the_o true_a visible_a church_n to_o which_o we_o may_v adjoyne_v ourselves_o and_o what_o not_o but_o teach_v we_o a_o conjectural_a way_n only_o of_o find_v the_o true_a visible_a church_n as_o socinian_o and_o arminian_n who_o tell_v we_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v 2._o there_o be_v no_o certain_a way_n of_o know_v the_o true_a visible_a church_n now_o our_o way_n that_o make_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o sound_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n hold_v out_o a_o way_n of_o know_v by_o certainty_n by_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n as_o we_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n but_o sociniant_fw-la not_o say_v two_o or_o three_o fundamental_o be_v all_o and_o they_o give_v we_o a_o church_n so_o wide_a as_o take_v in_o all_o church_n papist_n socinian_o libertine_n etc._n etc._n and_o anabaptist_n and_o those_o that_o be_v for_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n yea_o and_o for_o all_o error_n not_o fundamental_o since_o they_o know_v not_o well_o what_o be_v fundamental_o what_o not_o shall_v give_v but_o conjecture_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o sound_a church_n and_o m_o h._n refer_v all_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n which_o be_v a_o mere_a doubt_v uncertain_a way_n of_o find_v the_o true_a church_n as_o to_o the_o argument_n if_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n be_v a_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n than_o be_v excommunicate_a person_n member_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o hear_v the_o word_n i_o answer_v 1._o such_o as_o be_v excommunicate_a for_o apostasy_n from_o the_o truth_n 2._o such_o as_o be_v strike_v with_o the_o great_a excommunication_n anathema_n maranatha_n 1_o cor._n 16._o 22._o be_v not_o to_o be_v ordinary_a hearer_n of_o the_o word_n and_o so_o the_o argument_n hold_v not_o of_o they_o for_o they_o be_v simple_o rot_a member_n
they_o speak_v not_o feeble_o but_o rational_o who_o say_v that_o rational_a discourse_v as_o fix_v in_o a_o man_n be_v a_o essential_a mark_n of_o a_o man_n m._n h._n par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 2._o pag._n 19_o m._n rutherfurd_n say_v the_o argument_n be_v nothing_o against_o we_o such_o adulterer_n psal._n 50._o as_o be_v not_o to_o take_v the_o law_n in_o their_o mouth_n be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o if_o they_o be_v not_o cast_v out_o the_o church_n for_o that_o be_v no_o true_a church_n m._n h._n answer_v the_o first_o part_n yield_v the_o cause_n again_o for_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n they_o shall_v be_v receive_v or_o take_v in_o nor_o have_v they_o any_o right_n thereunto_o nor_o be_v they_o fit_a matter_n answ._n m._n rutherfurd_n be_v not_o such_o a_o yielder_n of_o truth_n as_o so_o for_o member_n m._n hooker_n argument_n yield_v more_o thus_o these_o who_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v casten_z out_o have_v never_o right_a to_o be_v receive_v in_o as_o church_n member_n so_o m._n h._n but_o adulterer_n who_o take_v the_o law_n in_o their_o mouth_n know_v adulterer_n so_o m._n rutherfurd_n yield_v and_o no_o otherways_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v casten_z out_o ergo_fw-la adulterer_n who_o take_v the_o law_n in_o their_o mouth_n have_v never_o right_a to_o be_v receive_v in_o as_o church-member_n 1._o m._n hooker_n proposition_n be_v most_o false_a for_o thousand_o as_o magus_n and_o other_o worthy_a to_o be_v casten_z out_o have_v right_a church_n right_a of_o that_o only_o we_o speak_v such_o as_o pastor_n can_v give_v they_o to_o be_v admit_v member_n so_o the_o scripture_n so_o m._n h._n part_n 1._o chap._n 2._o conclus_fw-la 3._o pag._n 27_o when_o then_o both_o the_o proposition_n and_o assumption_n be_v teach_v in_o scripture_n grant_v by_o m_n h_n see_v now_o who_o yield_v the_o cause_n 2._o to_o say_v if_o they_o shall_v be_v casten_z out_o ergo_fw-la they_o have_v never_o right_a to_o come_v in_o be_v as_o if_o he_o wouâd_v say_v such_o a_o woman_n have_v commit_v harlotry_n with_o many_o man_n beside_o her_o husband_n ergo_fw-la she_o have_v never_o right_a to_o be_v a_o marry_a wife_n and_o be_v never_o lawful_o marry_v and_o so_o have_v neither_o commit_a adultery_n nor_o deserve_v a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n 3_o no_o more_o can_v follow_v from_o this_o that_o adulterer_n once_o admit_v to_o membership_n fall_v into_o scandal_n ought_v to_o be_v casten_z out_o ergo_fw-la if_o they_o have_v be_v under_o the_o same_o scandal_n visible_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v take_v in_o but_o this_o suppose_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n that_o there_o be_v in_o scripture_n a_o gather_n of_o church_n of_o visible_a convert_v out_o of_o church_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n bear_v and_o baptize_v in_o their_o infancy_n within_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o yet_o i_o say_v be_v never_o dream_v of_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o though_o it_o be_v so_o whether_o we_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o gather_v or_o of_o gather_v of_o church_n out_o of_o pagan_n person_n not_o capable_a of_o gospel-scandal_n before_o their_o admission_n which_o may_v hold_v they_o out_o as_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o gospel-scandal_n after_o they_o profess_v the_o gospel_n for_o then_o a_o unmarried_a woman_n may_v be_v capable_a of_o adultery_n with_o her_o own_o husband_n before_o she_o be_v marry_v upon_o he_o 2._o as_o to_o that_o which_o m._n rutherfurd_n say_v that_o suppose_v they_o be_v not_o cast_v out_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o church_n for_o that_o be_v no_o church_n m._n h._n say_v that_o whole_o miss_v the_o mark_n again_o for_o the_o question_n be_v twitch_a the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n of_o what_o matter_n it_o shall_v be_v make_v it_o be_v not_o twitch_a separation_n from_o the_o church_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v because_o i_o dispute_v against_o both_o these_o of_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o separatist_n our_o brethren_n have_v no_o argument_n but_o such_o brethren_n as_o separatist_n and_o anabaptist_n have_v and_o with_o more_o vigour_n prosecute_v then_o they_o because_o i_o conclude_v against_o separation_n as_o well_o as_o against_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o two_o adversary_n and_o give_v one_o answer_n to_o the_o one_o which_o yet_o be_v not_o take_v off_o and_o another_o answer_n to_o the_o other_o it_o be_v not_o equal_a deal_n to_o say_v the_o answer_n to_o the_o separatist_n whole_o miss_v the_o mark_n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o congregational_a way_n 2._o m._n h._n decline_v a_o answer_n to_o that_o which_o i_o say_v against_o the_o separation_n that_o if_o any_o be_v not_o casten_z out_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o church_n leave_v off_o to_o be_v a_o church_n and_o must_v be_v separate_v from_o but_o our_o brethren_n practice_n in_o new_a england_n be_v if_o any_o church_n do_v not_o cast_v out_o such_o as_o deserve_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o to_o non-communion_n they_o and_o declare_v they_o to_o be_v no_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o they_o must_v be_v separate_v from_o which_o can_v be_v upon_o no_o ground_n but_o because_o they_o maintain_v a_o church_n to_o be_v no_o true_a church_n consist_v of_o false_a matter_n and_o visible_o unregenerate_a church_n and_o will_v m._n h._n have_v church-communion_n keep_v with_o such_o yea_o his_o argument_n first_o and_o second_o which_o be_v both_o but_o one_o though_o he_o find_v out_o four_o where_o there_o be_v scarce_o three_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v no_o visible_a church_n for_o he_o must_v stand_v by_o this_o as_o his_o own_o these_o to_o who_o christ_n be_v head_n and_o king_n by_o the_o influence_n of_o politic_a guidance_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o head_n as_o liege_n subject_n be_v the_o only_a fit_a matter_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o only_a true_a visible_a church_n but_o such_o as_o deserve_v to_o be_v casten_z out_o and_o be_v not_o casten_z out_o yea_o be_v own_v still_o as_o church-member_n be_v not_o such_o to_o who_o christ_n be_v head_n and_o king_n ergo_fw-la such_o leave_n off_o to_o be_v member_n and_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a church_n the_o proposition_n and_o assumption_n both_o be_v m._n hooker_n i_o confess_v when_o a_o answer_n can_v be_v take_v away_o it_o be_v a_o compendious_a way_n to_o say_v not_o one_o word_n to_o it_o but_o simple_o the_o answer_n do_v whole_o miss_v the_o mark_n m._n h._n must_v say_v a_o church_n of_o false_a matter_n be_v no_o church_n or_o then_o with_o we_o a_o society_n profess_v the_o pure_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n though_o the_o member_n be_v wicked_a be_v a_o true_a church_n chap._n vii_o m._n hooker_n reason_n why_o he_o pass_v in_o silence_n the_o argument_n of_o his_o own_o book_n of_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n of_o new_a england_n for_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n and_o defend_v they_o not_o a_o scan_n of_o these_o argument_n master_n hooker_n part_n 1._o ch_n 2._o pag._n 19_o pass_v in_o silence_n the_o argument_n of_o the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o new_a england_n 1645._o except_o a_o gentle_a hint_n he_o have_v at_o the_o first_o but_o he_o omit_v the_o nerve_n thereof_o only_o he_o bring_v four_o argument_n of_o his_o own_o in_o my_o apprehension_n inferior_a not_o a_o little_a to_o the_o argument_n of_o learned_a m._n cotton_n it_o be_v wisdom_n so_o to_o do_v only_o in_o the_o place_n pag._n 15._o he_o give_v we_o a_o short_a list_n of_o his_o visible_a saint_n we_o be_v say_v he_o from_o rational_a charity_n to_o say_v and_o hope_n and_o so_o be_v bind_v to_o conceive_v they_o be_v saint_n convert_v and_o internal_o justify_v so_o judas_n magus_n ananias_n etc._n etc._n though_o hide_a hypocrite_n be_v such_o and_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n proceed_v with_o such_o not_o as_o god_n who_o know_v the_o heart_n but_o in_o a_o church_n way_n as_o these_o who_o judge_n saint_n the_o tree_n by_o the_o fruit_n the_o church_n can_v judge_v of_o bid_v thing_n nor_o censure_v they_o answ._n 1._o then_o the_o saint_n faithful_a brethren_n temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o rome_n ephesus_z must_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v visible_a saint_n from_o the_o scripture_n from_o such_o a_o visible_a saintship_n as_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n see_v in_o these_o goodly_a ungodly_a saint_n judas_n magus_n etc._n etc._n for_o if_o these_o title_n conclude_v that_o they_o be_v internal_o convert_v and_o choose_v to_o grace_n and_o glory_n etc._n etc._n as_o ephs._n 1._o 3._o 1_o thess._n 5._o 10._o 2_o thess._n 13._o 14._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o as_o they_o do_v then_o must_v all_o and_o every_o visible_a member_n of_o these_o church_n be_v visible_a elect_v
and_o predestinate_a to_o glory_n which_o if_o our_o brethren_n say_v of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o all_o these_o visible_a church_n suppose_v magus_n and_o judas_n have_v be_v among_o they_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o any_o to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n 2._o but_o if_o so_o be_v that_o these_o title_n prove_v they_o be_v all_o internal_o convert_v and_o that_o our_o visible_a church_n must_v be_v such_o or_o else_o they_o be_v false_o constitute_v then_o how_o shall_v demas_n magus_n find_v room_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o true_a member_n since_o they_o be_v not_o such_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o argument_n which_o prove_v that_o they_o weremore_n may_v well_o prove_v the_o less_o and_o that_o they_o have_v all_o the_o visible_a saintship_n that_o magus_n judas_n have_v we_o shall_v grant_v that_o but_o than_o you_o must_v stand_v by_o this_o argument_n such_o as_o be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n rome_n ephesus_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n by_o these_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o discipline-book_n of_o new_a england_n chap._n 3._o sect_n 3._o pag._n 56._o 57_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 27._o ephs._n 2._o 22._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16_o 17._o 2_o cor._n 11._o 2._o 1_o cor._n 1._o 2._o galat._n 1._o 2._o math._n 16._o 16._o to_o 19_o such_o aught_o the_o member_n of_o our_o church_n visible_a to_o be_v or_o then_o they_o be_v constitute_v of_o false_a matter_n visible_a but_o the_o member_n of_o these_o church_n by_o these_o place_n be_v real_o and_o internal_o convert_v and_o justify_v ergo_fw-la our_o church_n visible_a must_v also_o consist_v of_o these_o that_o be_v real_o and_o internal_o convert_v and_o justify_v or_o then_o they_o be_v constitute_v of_o false_a matter_n but_o the_o conclusion_n be_v false_a and_o absurd_a for_o so_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n err_v even_o proceed_v in_o a_o church_n way_n in_o admit_v judas_n magus_n to_o be_v member_n for_o sure_o they_o be_v not_o internal_o and_o real_o convert_v and_o justify_v and_o yet_o m_n h._n make_v they_o true_a member_n and_o his_o visible_a saint_n it_o be_v wisdom_n therefore_o to_o m._n h._n to_o bury_v these_o argument_n and_o to_o contradict_v his_o own_o book_n of_o discipline_n which_o page_n 57_o say_v that_o christ_n tax_v the_o pastor_n by_o who_o connivencei_n the_o man_n want_v the_o wedle_a garment_n come_v in_o friend_n how_o come_v thou_o hither_o m._n h._n say_v nay_o they_o be_v not_o tax_v that_o man_n convey_v it_o so_o cunning_o that_o only_o the_o master_n of_o the_o feast_n pe_z ââived_v it_o other_o do_v not_o discover_v it_o page_z 29._o but_o all_o depend_v on_o the_o make_n good_a the_o assumption_n that_o these_o place_n prove_v that_o they_o be_v inward_o and_o real_o convert_v which_o i_o make_v good_a by_o these_o reason_n 1._o the_o holy_a ghost_n express_o say_v they_o be_v the_o habitation_n of_o god_n through_o the_o spirit_n temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n espouse_v to_o christ_n as_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v real_o such_o to_o say_v that_o paul_n speak_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n only_o and_o in_o a_o church_n way_n be_v to_o beg_v the_o question_n there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o any_o such_o judgement_n of_o charity_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o our_o brethren_n have_v no_o law_n to_o add_v to_o the_o scripture_n to_o help_v their_o own_o cause_n 2._o if_o you_o adhere_v to_o this_o argument_n you_o must_v say_v with_o m._n h._n that_o christ_n hope_v and_o be_v bind_v to_o conceive_v by_o the_o fruit_n of_o judas_n his_o life_n that_o judas_n be_v a_o saint_n and_o may_v have_v some_o seed_n of_o some_o spiritual_a word_n work_n of_o god_n in_o his_o soul_n and_o yet_o christ_n say_v have_v not_o i_o choose_v you_o twelve_o and_o one_o of_o you_o have_v a_o devil_n and_o this_o he_o know_v from_o the_o beginning_n john_n 13._o 11_o 18._o because_o jesus_n not_o as_o god_n but_o in_o a_o churchway_n deal_v with_o judas_n and_o such_o i_o remit_v it_o to_o any_o man_n if_o christ_n fail_v against_o charity_n except_o he_o believe_v judas_n to_o be_v a_o convert_n before_o he_o betray_v his_o hypocrisy_n what_o warrant_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o this_o 3._o what_o ground_n that_o the_o apostle_n in_o charity_n believe_v and_o say_v that_o demas_n magus_n be_v convert_n temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n choose_v to_o life_n as_o the_o ephesian_n 1._o 3._o and_o thessalonian_n 2_o thâs_n 2._o 13._o or_o then_o they_o have_v sin_v in_o admit_v they_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o baptise_v they_o 4._o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o church_n judge_v not_o of_o thing_n hide_v whether_o the_o church_n of_o new_a england_n do_v not_o judge_v and_o heavy_o censure_v though_o they_o will_v not_o give_v it_o that_o name_n all_o the_o baptize_v in_o their_o church_n who_o they_o exclude_v from_o church-membership_a and_o the_o lord_n supper_n all_o their_o life_n as_o if_o they_o be_v pagan_n because_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o charity_n as_o to_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v visible_a convert_n judge_v reader_n but_o say_v they_o this_o will_v not_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v internal_o and_o real_o convert_v because_o paul_n say_v so_o of_o they_o to_o which_o i_o say_v then_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n must_v we_o expone_fw-la these_o place_n ephes._n 2._o 4._o god_n rich_a in_o mercy_n have_v love_v we_o and_o when_o we_o paul_n and_o convert_v jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v dead_a in_o sin_n have_v quicken_v we_o together_o in_o christ_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n and_o in_o a_o church_n way_n only_o 6._o and_o have_v raise_v we_o up_o together_o and_o have_v make_v we_o fit_a together_o in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o a_o churchway_n verse_n 10_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v unto_o good_a work_n and_o we_o who_o verse_n 12._o be_v sometime_o without_o christ_n stranger_n to_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n 13._o be_v now_o make_v near_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o verse_n 18._o we_o who_o be_v stranger_n have_v access_n by_o christ_n through_o one_o spirit_n unto_o the_o father_n only_o in_o a_o churchway_n by_o politic_a guidance_n of_o our_o head_n christ_n and_o the_o like_a must_v be_v say_v of_o all_o the_o real_a internal_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n upon_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n at_o ephesus_n colosse_n corinth_n thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n so_o they_o be_v by_o this_o reason_n light_n in_o the_o lord_n quicken_v have_v christ_n dwell_v in_o they_o by_o faith_n be_v seal_v translate_v from_o death_n to_o life_n etc._n etc._n in_o a_o church_n way_n and_o from_o none_o of_o these_o place_n can_v we_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v real_o and_o internal_o convert_v for_o all_o these_o place_n and_o real_a work_n of_o grace_n must_v agree_v to_o judas_n magus_n and_o to_o all_o such_o visible_a saint_n because_o all_o church_n visible_a right_o constitute_v must_v be_v make_v up_o by_o this_o argument_n of_o such_o visible_a saint_n else_o they_o be_v false_a in_o the_o matter_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o pattern_n of_o apostolic_a church_n 3._o the_o assumption_n be_v make_v out_o also_o thus_o as_o the_o apostle_n call_v they_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o habitation_n of_o god_n temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o also_o he_o bless_v god_n and_o render_v thanks_o to_o he_o that_o have_v choose_v to_o life_n the_o ephesian_n bless_v they_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o christ_n bestow_v on_o they_o adoption_n redemption_n forgiyenesse_n saint_n of_o sin_n the_o inheritance_n of_o glory_n ephes._n 2._o 13_o 4._o etc._n etc._n ordain_v the_o thessalonian_n not_o to_o wrath_n but_o to_o obtain_v salvation_n by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 1_o thess._n 5._o 9_o 4._o have_v choose_v they_o to_o salvation_n through_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n 2_o thess._n 2._o 13._o and_o upon_o this_o build_v their_o comfort_n and_o faith_n ay_o thes._n 54._o 9_o 10._o 11._o so_o coloss._n 1._o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12_o 13_o 14._o now_o what_o joy_n comfort_n faith_n thanksgiving_n can_v have_v place_n if_o these_o place_n be_v not_o understand_v of_o such_o real_a internal_a grace_n as_o election_n conversion_n etc._n etc._n as_o judas_n and_o magus_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v otherways_o all_o the_o hypocrite_n as_o magus_n and_o judas_n have_v a_o like_a lively_a consolation_n with_o all_o the_o choose_v of_o god_n and_o paul_n must_v bless_v god_n because_o he_o have_v choose_v call_v justify_v etc._n etc._n such_o as_o magus_n and_o judas_n 4._o i_o wonder_v the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v mistake_v cite_v 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o for_o visible_a saintship_n which_o depend_v on_o
the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n for_o the_o place_n be_v evident_o of_o real_a convert_n know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirir_fw-fr of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o be_v this_o i_o pray_v you_o the_o knowledge_n of_o charity_n which_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v mistake_v nay_o this_o and_o the_o like_a place_n 2_o cor._n 13._o 5._o and_o the_o 1_o john_n 2._o 3._o 1_o john_n 3._o 14._o know_v you_o uâââ_n not_o that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o you_o etc._n etc._n by_o this_o we_o know_v that_o we_o know_v he_o etc._n etc._n be_v bring_v by_o our_o divine_n to_o prove_v against_o papist_n that_o we_o may_v be_v infallible_o persuade_v that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o know_v ourselves_o to_o be_v temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o by_o the_o fallible_a and_o err_a judgement_n of_o charity_n which_o we_o never_o extend_v but_o to_o other_o than_o ourselves_o but_o by_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n though_o not_o of_o faith_n yet_o of_o supernatural_a sense_n and_o divine_a persuasion_n by_o which_o we_o know_v infallible_o ourselves_o to_o be_v in_o christ_n 2._o as_o to_o that_o argument_n such_o shall_v our_o church_n be_v in_o their_o member_n constituent_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n corinth_n ephesus_n be_v when_o paul_n write_v to_o they_o and_o after_o they_o be_v now_o constitute_v and_o grow_v it_o be_v most_o false_a it_o be_v just_a as_o if_o aristotle_n will_v say_v and_o write_v to_o some_o of_o his_o disciple_n that_o have_v study_v some_o year_n plant_v under_o he_o you_o be_v excellent_o skill_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o first_o matter_n of_o motion_n and_o time_n and_o another_o shall_v infer_v ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o academy_n on_o earth_n right_o constitute_v where_o the_o scholar_n be_v not_o excellent_o skill_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o first_o matter_n of_o motion_n of_o tâme_n before_o they_o be_v admit_v member_n of_o the_o academy_n now_o the_o argument_n shall_v be_v thus_o such_o as_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n corinth_n ephesus_n etc._n etc._n as_o to_o their_o member_n constituent_v before_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o church_n membership_n such_o shall_v our_o visible_a church_n be_v according_a to_o their_o member_n constituent_v before_o the_o member_n be_v admit_v to_o church_n membership_n true_a but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n corinth_n ephesus_n etc._n etc._n as_o to_o their_o member_n constituent_v be_v before_o they_o be_v admit_v to_o church_n membership_n visible_a convert_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o planter_n it_o be_v most_o false_a and_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v and_o to_o argue_v from_o grow_v and_o plant_v church_n after_o paul_n have_v beget_v the_o corinthian_n as_o a_o father_n 1_o cor._n 4._o 15._o to_o prove_v that_o our_o church_n shall_v be_v such_o in_o their_o constitution_n be_v to_o say_v such_o be_v a_o tall-tree_n now_o ergo_fw-la also_o before_o it_o be_v sow_v it_o be_v not_o a_o seed_n but_o a_o tall-tree_n so_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o be_v content_a we_o shall_v argue_v thus_o such_o as_o be_v the_o church_n of_o sardis_n in_o its_o constitution_n after_o it_o be_v now_o fall_v such_o shall_v we_o be_v in_o its_o member_n constituent_v before_o they_o be_v admit_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n for_o the_o most_o part_n consist_v of_o such_o member_n as_o have_v a_o name_n they_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a and_o have_v visible_o defile_v their_o garment_n a_o few_o only_o remain_v visible_a convert_n as_o verse_n 1._o compare_v with_o verse_n 4._o ergo_fw-la our_o church_n shall_v be_v such_o as_o to_o the_o member_n constituent_v such_o argue_v be_v as_o good_a as_o that_o of_o new_a england_n and_o yet_o christ_n have_v a_o golden_a candlestick_n in_o sardis_n and_o walk_v among_o they_o and_o hold_v they_o as_o star_n in_o his_o right_a hand_n rev._n 1._o 20._o now_o the_o conclusion_n shall_v be_v against_o they_o and_o the_o chief_a basis_n of_o all_o be_v that_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o such_o mat._n 16._o 16._o to_o 19_o as_o be_v bless_v and_o enlighten_v as_o believe_v peter_n be_v who_o be_v not_o bless_v for_o the_o profession_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n for_o judas_n be_v that_o way_n bless_v who_o hold_v out_o but_o a_o verbal_a profession_n chap._n viii_o mr._n hooker_n first_o inference_n that_o church-fellowship_n do_v presuppose_v man_n to_o be_v visible_a saint_n but_o do_v not_o make_v they_o such_o discuss_v that_o man_n be_v first_o convert_v visible_o before_o they_o be_v church-member_n be_v a_o gross_a mistake_n it_o lean_v on_o this_o that_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n have_v in_o his_o gospel_n institute_v to_o which_o he_o have_v commit_v the_o key_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v the_o table_n and_o seal_n be_v a_o company_n of_o saint_n a_o combination_n of_o godly_a faithful_a man_n so_o the_o church_n of_o n._n england_n from_o this_o it_o 1._o must_v follow_v that_o there_o be_v a_o institute_v visible_a church_n void_a of_o pastor_n which_o convert_v soul_n before_o there_o be_v pastor_n and_o so_o there_o must_v be_v son_n and_o daughter_n before_o there_o be_v father_n and_o pastor_n to_o beget_v they_o to_o god_n as_o ministerial_a father_n and_o they_o they_o must_v be_v feed_v before_o they_o have_v pastor_n to_o feed_v they_o and_o if_o they_o be_v convert_v before_o they_o be_v in_o church-fellowship_n and_o pastor_n must_v be_v nurse-fathers_n to_o feed_n and_o confirm_v these_o who_o be_v bear_v before_o their_o father_n have_v be_v the_o contrary_a whereof_o paul_n of_o the_o form_a church_n of_o the_o galatian_n that_o he_o do_v travel_n in_o birth_n till_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o they_o gal._n 4._o 15._o and_o when_o he_o write_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n they_o be_v frame_v a_o visible_a church_n and_o many_o not_o yet_o reconcile_v to_o god_n and_o yet_o in_o that_o case_n he_o say_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 15._o though_o you_o have_v ten_o thousand_o instructer_n in_o christ_n yââ_n have_v you_o not_o many_o father_n for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n have_v i_o beget_v you_o through_o the_o gospel_n now_o that_o he_o beget_v they_o all_o and_o every_o one_o and_o make_v they_o visible_a convert_n before_o he_o be_v their_o church-father_n or_o they_o in_o church-fellowship_n teacher_n where_o be_v it_o say_v or_o dream_v by_o any_o colour_n of_o truth_n yea_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 20_o now_o than_o we_o be_v ambassador_n for_o christ_n at_o though_o god_n do_v beseech_v you_o by_o we_o we_o pray_v you_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n ergo_fw-la this_o suppose_v some_o state_n of_o non-reconciliation_n in_o many_o church_n member_n rom._n 12._o 2._o be_v not_o conform_v to_o this_o world_n but_o be_v you_o transform_v by_o the_o renew_n of_o your_o mind_n ephes._n 4._o 22._o that_o you_o put_v off_o concern_v the_o former_a conversation_n the_o old_a man_n which_o be_v corrupt_a according_a to_o the_o deceitful_a lust_n and_o be_v renew_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o mind_n coloss._n 3._o 8._o now_o lay_v you_o aside_o all_o these_o 16._o put_v on_o the_o new_a man_n all_o which_o and_o the_o like_a place_n direct_v to_o visible_a convert_n must_v all_o be_v expon_v without_o exception_n of_o second_o conversion_n and_o of_o reiterate_v of_o conversion_n and_o reconciliation_n of_o these_o that_o be_v already_o convert_v and_o reconcile_v which_o no_o scripture_n can_v persuade_v and_o by_o the_o like_a order_n the_o child_n must_v be_v bear_v and_o usible_o convert_v before_o they_o be_v in_o the_o womb_n of_o their_o visible_a mother_n who_o conceive_v and_o bear_v they_o contrary_a to_o 1_o cor._n 3._o 15._o nor_o can_v the_o mother_n be_v any_o thing_n but_o a_o nurse_n nor_o any_o other_o in_o regard_n of_o bring_v forth_o but_o a_o 15._o barren_a mother_n which_o bring_v not_o forth_o twin_n contrary_a to_o cant._n 4._o 2._o isai._n 54._o 1_o 2_o 3._o 2._o the_o scripture_n hold_v forth_o their_o pastor_n as_o pastor_n be_v send_v to_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o blind_a to_o turn_v they_o from_o darkness_n to_o light_n and_o from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n unto_o god_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n act._n 26._o 18._o yea_o and_o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o we_o receive_v the_o spirit_n by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n from_o pastor_n as_o send_v and_o in_o office_n such_o as_o be_v the_o office_a prophet_n who_o foot_n be_v pleasant_a upon_o the_o mountain_n as_o be_v clear_a rome_n 10._o 14_o 15._o compare_v with_o isai._n 52._o 7._o nah._n 1._o 15._o 3._o if_o many_o be_v bring_v in_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o
the_o house_n of_o wisdom_n who_o be_v fool_n and_o serve_v the_o world_n as_o math._n 22._o 8_o 9_o prov._n 9_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o upon_o god_n reveal_v intention_n and_o the_o aim_n and_o design_n of_o pastor_n that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v and_o perfect_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n then_o be_v they_o not_o suppose_v to_o be_v convert_v before_o they_o be_v bring_v in_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n for_o god_n can_v intend_v that_o they_o be_v convert_v and_o regenerate_v of_o new_a if_o their_o conversion_n and_o regeneration_n go_v before_o any_o such_o intention_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a 1._o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o office-house_n of_o wisdom_n in_o which_o god_n intend_v to_o make_v fool_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n 2._o from_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n the_o only_a mean_n of_o conversion_n whereas_o if_o all_o be_v presuppose_v to_o be_v convert_v before_o thereof_o they_o come_v into_o the_o house_n of_o wisdom_n and_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o king_n they_o shall_v from_o pastor_n hear_v no_o doctrine_n of_o law_n humiliation_n to_o fit_v they_o for_o christ_n but_o pastor_n shall_v speak_v to_o they_o all_o as_o to_o convert_n as_o to_o break_a reed_n and_o to_o sheep_n that_o discernt_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n as_o to_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o to_z person_n regenerate_v justify_v predestinate_v to_o life_n and_o to_o gloââ¦_n ry_o yea_o and_o if_o a_o pastor_n preach_v to_o any_o of_o the_o flock_n as_o know_v now_o to_o be_v yet_o in_o thâ_n state_n of_o nature_n that_o preach_v be_v not_o by_o any_o command_n of_o god_n give_v to_o he_o as_o a_o pastor_n nor._n 3._o from_o the_o reveal_v intention_n and_o command_n of_o god_n lay_v upon_o the_o pastor_n and_o minister_n who_o aim_n be_v to_o endeavour_v the_o conversion_n of_o all_o to_o espouse_v they_o to_o christ_n to_o have_v they_o put_v off_o the_o old_a man_n to_o have_v they_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o hide_v to_o they_o nor_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n as_o it_o be_v to_o many_o in_o the_o visible_a church_n 2_o cor._n 4._o 3_o 4._o 2_o cor._n 2._o 14_o 15_o 16._o joh._n 12._o 37_o 38_o 39_o by_o m._n h._n his_o way_n m._n hookeer_n par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 2_o p._n 31._o answer_v the_o proposition_n fail_v these_o who_o be_v convert_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n may_v yet_o in_o god_n intention_n be_v bring_v in_o to_o the_o church_n that_o they_o may_v be_v true_o convert_v ans._n m._n hooker_n leave_v out_o the_o chief_a word_n wherein_o stand_v he_o the_o force_n of_o my_o argument_n he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o god_n reveal_v intention_n and_o command_n to_o call_v in_o fool_n that_o they_o may_v be_v make_v wise_a and_o he_o frame_v his_o answer_n as_o if_o i_o have_v argue_v from_o the_o bare_a intention_n and_o hide_a decree_n of_o god_n but_o i_o find_v that_o m._n hooker_n utter_o mistake_v the_o distinction_n of_o god_n decree_n and_o of_o his_o approve_v will_n and_o therefore_o he_o take_v for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o the_o decree_n or_o intention_n of_o god_n from_o which_o i_o bring_v not_o my_o argument_n and_o the_o reveal_v intention_n of_o god_n or_o his_o command_a will_n the_o ignorance_n of_o which_o be_v a_o stumble_n to_o arminian_n and_o socinian_o and_o to_o m._n hooker_n who_o as_o we_o shall_v hâar_v go_v on_o with_o they_o but_o i_o judge_v it_o one_o mistake_v in_o judgement_n in_o that_o godly_a man_n but_o no_o heretical_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o his_o defender_n and_o follower_n will_v take_v heed_n to_o it_o for_o i_o grant_v all_o that_o m._n hooker_n answer_v but_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n and_o quite_o beside_o the_o mark_n and_o leave_v the_o argument_n untuitch_v which_o be_v too_o ordinary_a to_o that_o pious_a man_n for_o no_o doubt_n god_n in_o his_o decree_n and_o secret_a intention_n may_v intend_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o servant_n the_o true_a and_o real_a conversion_n of_o many_o hypocrite_n such_o as_o be_v no_o less_o unconvert_v than_o magus_n and_o demas_n for_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v rom._n 9_o 17._o but_o according_a to_o this_o way_n these_o who_o be_v convert_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n he_o shall_v say_v only_o convert_v in_o that_o judgement_n be_v not_o according_a to_o god_n reveal_v intenâion_n and_o approve_v will_n or_o command_v take_v in_o by_o pastor_n that_o they_o may_v be_v real_o convert_v for_o god_n give_v in_o no_o sort_n this_o command_n to_o pastor_n in_o his_o reveal_v intention_n see_v that_o you_o admit_v no_o fool_n to_o wisdom_n table_n or_o within_o wisdom_n house_n but_o such_o only_a as_o you_o believe_v in_o charity_n be_v real_a convert_n and_o both_o call_v and_o choose_v contrary_a to_o prov._n 9_o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o math._n 22._o 8_o 9_o 14._o ergo_fw-la by_o my_o reveal_v intention_n and_o command_v you_o be_v not_o to_o intend_v their_o conversion_n but_o to_o presuppose_v that_o they_o be_v already_o convert_v otherways_o if_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o reveal_v intention_n and_o command_n will_v have_v such_o hypocrite_n who_o be_v but_o nominal_a saint_n bring_v in_o that_o they_o may_v be_v true_o convert_v there_o must_v follow_v two_o contradictory_n intention_n reveal_v in_o god_n for_o the_o lord_n command_v to_o pastor_n be_v i_o command_v you_o to_o preach_v to_o these_o who_o be_v convert_n in_o way_n the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n that_o upon_o my_o intention_n they_o may_v be_v true_o convert_v and_o also_o i_o command_v you_o my_o pastor_n preach_v to_o no_o church_n member_n that_o upon_o my_o intention_n they_o may_v be_v convert_v because_o you_o be_v not_o to_o preach_v to_o any_o as_o pastor_n but_o to_o such_o as_o you_o know_v be_v already_o convert_v according_a to_o my_o reveal_v intention_n and_o will_n m._n hooker_n see_v this_o add_v but_o if_o m._n rutherfurd_n mean_v that_o the_o church_n do_v of_o purpose_n ibid._n receive_v they_o into_o the_o church_n to_o be_v convert_v than_o it_o be_v cross_v to_o his_o own_o tenet_n and_o a_o person_n may_v be_v receive_v to_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n who_o do_v not_o notify_v that_o he_o have_v faith_n nay_o the_o church_n may_v receive_v they_o to_o the_o seal_n who_o she_o know_v have_v no_o right_a to_o the_o seal_n for_o she_o know_v they_o be_v not_o invisible_a member_n which_o in_o m._n rutherfurd_n judgement_n only_o give_v they_o right_o ans._n it_o be_v not_o cross_v to_o my_o tenet_n that_o a_o person_n such_o as_o demas_n and_o magus_n may_v be_v receive_v to_o the_o seal_n and_o yet_o they_o do_v not_o notify_v they_o have_v save_v faith_n and_o internal_a conversion_n for_o my_o tenet_n be_v that_o the_o church_n can_v only_o judge_v of_o visible_a walk_n and_o profession_n in_o point_n of_o admission_n or_o not_o admission_n to_o seal_n and_o in_o that_o point_n the_o church_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v whether_o they_o have_v faith_n save_v or_o not_o none_o can_v partake_v save_o of_o the_o seal_n for_o their_o own_o personal_a salvation_n and_o without_o sin_n but_o these_o only_a who_o have_v save_v faith_n but_o the_o church_n may_v admit_v without_o sin_n multitude_n who_o eat_v and_o drink_v their_o own_o damnation_n 1_o cor._n 11._o 26_o 27._o and_o yet_o pass_v no_o sentence_n of_o sign_n notife_v faith_n or_o no_o faith_n internal_a conversion_n or_o no_o internal_a conversion_n upon_o they_o 2_o m._n hooker_n know_v that_o m._n r._n difference_v between_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o to_o the_o seal_n and_o yet_o be_v repeat_v my_o tenet_n as_o if_o i_o confound_v these_o because_o he_o confound_v they_o himself_o whereas_o m._n h._n say_v ergo_fw-la 3_o the_o church_n may_v receive_v to_o the_o seal_n who_o she_o know_v have_v no_o right_a ecclesiastical_a to_o they_o it_o follow_v not_o for_o upon_o the_o church_n part_n the_o right_n be_v good_a to_o confer_v the_o seal_n upon_o the_o knowledge_n of_o notify_a sign_n but_o of_o sign_n in_o order_n to_o conversion_n or_o not_o conversion_n that_o be_v the_o place_n of_o the_o master_n christ_n to_o judge_n not_o of_o servant_n in_o this_o case_n before_o they_o be_v admit_v member_n but_o that_o the_o church_n may_v admit_v to_o the_o seal_n who_o she_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o have_v right_a internal_a for_o their_o own_o personal_a salvation_n that_o i_o teach_v and_o can_v make_v good_a from_o scripture_n act._n 8._o 13_o math._n 22._o 12._o 1_o cor._n 11._o 26_o 27_o 30._o now_o i_o say_v that_o its_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o servant_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o
assumption_n be_v clear_a because_o that_o god_n be_v our_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o our_o seed_n gen._n 17._o make_v both_o parent_n and_o child_n within_o the_o covenant_n yea_o also_o within_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o the_o church_n of_o new_a england_n true_o teach_v and_o give_v they_o right_o 20._o to_o baptism_n and_o when_o egypt_n shall_v be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n as_o be_v foretell_v isai._n 19_o 25._o egypt_n be_v the_o church_n visible_a and_o all_o their_o seed_n when_o they_o so_o profess_v except_o these_o two_o be_v different_a to_o be_v profess_o god_n be_v people_n and_o to_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n which_o can_v be_v say_v and_o therefore_o the_o argument_n presuppose_v a_o falsehood_n and_o beg_v the_o question_n that_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n require_v of_o a_o man_n of_o year_n bear_v within_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o fit_v he_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o baptism_n and_o church-membership_a and_o another_o to_o fit_v a_o infant_n for_o baptism_n and_o church-member-ship_n when_o a_o infant_n bear_v within_o the_o visible_a church_n by_o his_o birth_n be_v fit_v both_o for_o church-membership_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n and_o for_o baptism_n and_o so_o the_o argument_n prove_v that_o the_o child_n of_o believe_a parent_n must_v have_v some_o new_a qualification_n before_o they_o can_v be_v receive_v member_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a and_o yet_o it_o be_v grant_v their_o birth_n make_v they_o member_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a so_o they_o be_v member_n and_o not_o 210._o member_n 2._o if_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o to_o be_v admitteed_o member_n infer_v each_o other_o to_o mr_n hooker_n say_v ergo_fw-la all_o that_o be_v baptize_v be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o all_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n must_v be_v baptize_v how_o then_o do_v the_o church_n of_o new_a england_n refuse_v multitude_n who_o they_o know_v to_o be_v baptize_v and_o come_v from_o england_n to_o be_v church-member_n 3._o see_v how_o mr_n hooker_n make_v out_o the_o assumption_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o constant_a course_n and_o practice_v of_o john_n baptist_n math._n 3._o 5_o 6._o in_o which_o he_o lay_v this_o as_o a_o ground_n that_o in_o all_o judea_n and_o jerusalem_n for_o john_n baptize_v they_o all_o mark_v 10._o 5._o there_o be_v no_o visible_a church_n no_o visible_a saint_n no_o convert_n till_o john_n make_v they_o such_o by_o baptism_n i_o hold_v that_o christ_n be_v bear_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o that_o simon_n anna_n zachariah_n elizabeth_n and_o many_o other_o be_v visible_a church-member_n before_o john_n baptize_v they_o and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o baptize_v christian_n be_v both_o the_o same_o visible_a church_n the_o one_o believe_v profess_o in_o he_o who_o be_v to_o come_v the_o other_o in_o he_o who_o be_v already_o come_v 2._o he_o presume_v that_o by_o johns_n baptise_v these_o be_v frame_v up_o in_o particular_a independent_a congregation_n by_o a_o church-covenant_n for_o this_o be_v bring_v to_o prove_v the_o frame_n of_o visible_a church_n of_o new_a england_n by_o mr_n hooker_n but_o how_o the_o text_n speak_v this_o who_o can_v see_v except_o mr_n hooker_n himself_o for_o all_o judea_n and_o jerusalem_n be_v baptize_v mark_v 1._o 5._o 4_o how_o prove_v he_o that_o all_o the_o baptize_v be_v visible_a convert_n that_o come_v to_o john_n those_o that_o confess_v their_o sin_n by_o such_o a_o confession_n as_o john_n require_v to_o wit_n which_o amount_v to_o repentance_n and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o amendment_n these_o be_v visible_a convert_n before_o they_o be_v baptize_v yea_o say_v i_o if_o the_o confession_n amount_v so_o high_a in_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o judea_n as_o the_o precept_n and_o command_n of_o john_n require_v than_o all_o the_o land_n of_o judea_n jerusalem_n and_o all_o the_o region_n round_o about_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v all_o baptize_v matth._n 3._o 5_o 6._o mark_v 1._o 4_o 5._o all_o the_o people_n luke_n 4._o 21._o be_v not_o only_o visible_a saint_n but_o do_v all_o real_o repent_v and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a amendment_n of_o life_n for_o mr._n hooker_n his_o argument_n be_v not_o from_o the_o people_n practice_n but_o from_o johns_n command_n bring_v forth_o fruit_n &c._n &c._n so_o mr._n hooker_n they_o confess_v their_o sin_n v_o 6._o it_o be_v such_o a_o confession_n as_o amount_v to_o repentance_n that_o i_o confess_v be_v a_o sea_n of_o charity_n to_o all_o the_o visible_a saint_n now_o hear_v how_o m._n hooker_n expon_v their_o practise_a confession_n the_o baptist_n so_o interpret_v be_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o repentance_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n now_o sure_a john_n command_v never_o such_o a_o confession_n as_o magus_n the_o witch_n make_v act._n 8._o nor_o a_o visible_a repentance_n such_o as_o make_v a_o visible_a saint_n but_o he_o command_v a_o real_a internal_a repentance_n otherwise_o say_v he_o if_o you_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n matth._n 3._o ver_fw-la 10._o see_v your_o doom_n every_o tree_n that_o bring_v not_o forth_o good_a fruit_n be_v hew_v down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o fire_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o argument_n stand_v thus_o such_o a_o confession_n ãâã_d john_n baptist_n command_v matth._n 3._o 6_o 7._o such_o must_v be_v in_o all_o before_o john_n baptist_n and_o the_o church_n can_v lawful_o baptize_v they_o or_o admit_v they_o to_o the_o visible_a church_n otherwise_o they_o sin_v who_o baptise_v and_o receive_v into_o the_o visible_a church_n visible_a hypocrite_n but_o john_n baptist_n require_v real_a and_o internal_a repentance_n without_o which_o the_o baptize_v shall_v be_v cast_v into_o hell_n fire_n mat._n 3._o 10._o but_o the_o conclusion_n be_v so_o gross_a that_o mr._n hooker_n can_v not_o dream_v of_o it_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o precept_n of_o repentance_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o jew_n so_o as_o obedience_n thereunto_o must_v be_v necessary_o require_v before_o john_n baptist_n can_v lawful_o and_o without_o sin_n admit_v they_o to_o baptism_n and_o into_o the_o christian_a visible_a church_n but_o for_o their_o either_o more_o personal_a and_o fruitful_a receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o far_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v matth._n 3._o 10._o luk._n 3._o 7_o 8._o 5._o and_o as_o to_o that_o act._n 2._o 38._o what_o shall_v we_o do_v if_o it_o conclude_v any_o thing_n it_o must_v have_v this_o meaning_n man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v before_o you_o can_v own_v we_o as_o visible_a saint_n and_o baptize_v we_o without_o your_o hazard_n of_o cast_v pearl_n before_o swine_n this_o be_v to_o do_v violence_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o these_o word_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v must_v be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o like_a of_o saul_n act._n 9_o 6._o and_o of_o the_o jailor_n act._n 16._o 30._o what_o shall_v we_o do_v to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o obtain_v life_n everlasting_a and_o a_o due_a room_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o grace_n here_o and_o at_o length_n of_o glory_n and_o it_o be_v clear_v that_o repentance_n which_o the_o apostle_n command_n be_v the_o course_n of_o repentance_n all_o their_o life_n to_o be_v perform_v both_o before_o and_o after_o baptism_n ver_fw-la 40._o and_o with_o many_o other_o word_n do_v he_o testify_v and_o exhort_v say_v save_v yourselves_o from_o this_o untoward_a generation_n which_o be_v walk_v not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o this_o people_n and_o do_v peter_n advise_v no_o repentance_n but_o such_o visible_a repentance_n as_o be_v to_o go_v before_o their_o baptism_n certain_a he_o advise_v repentance_n new_a obedience_n and_o perseverance_n therein_o to_o their_o life_n end_v after_o they_o shall_v be_v baptize_v 6._o as_o to_o the_o aim_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n it_o import_v a_o confession_n such_o as_o amount_v to_o repentance_n real_a and_o true_a yea_o constant_a and_o endure_a to_o the_o end_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v repentance_n justify_v and_o effectual_o redeem_v in_o christ_n and_o persevere_v therein_o to_o the_o end_n before_o john_n can_v baptise_v they_o without_o sin_n how_o weak_a be_v these_o and_o so_o these_o huge_a multitude_n be_v never_o baptize_v until_o they_o all_o die_v real_a convert_n and_o that_o be_v never_o at_o all_o for_o the_o baptist_n so_o require_v before_o they_o be_v baptize_v 7._o who_o shall_v believe_v that_o when_o john_n baptize_v mark_v 5._o all_o the_o land_n of_o judea_n and_o all_o jerusalem_n and_o matth._n 3_o 5._o all_o judea_n 11._o and_o all_o the_o region_n round_o about_o jordan_n and_o luk._n 4._o 21._o and_o all_o the_o people_n that_o they_o be_v all_o in_o john_n baptist_n his_o
judgement_n of_o charity_n sound_a believer_n and_o that_o all_o these_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o amendment_n of_o life_n and_o that_o all_o these_o be_v pardon_v and_o justify_v in_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o be_v the_o habitation_n of_o god_n through_o the_o spirit_n as_o ephes._n 2._o 22._o when_o john_n preach_v to_o they_o even_o to_o the_o multitude_n that_o come_v forth_o to_o be_v baptize_v luk._n 3._o 7._o and_o to_o many_o of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n as_o to_o a_o generation_n of_o viper_n matth._n 3._o 7._o 2._o as_o to_o hypocrite_n that_o glory_v they_o be_v abraham_n son_n and_o will_v think_v they_o be_v more_o than_o god_n son_n when_o they_o be_v now_o washen_v by_o baptism_n the_o new_a seal_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 3._o as_o to_o fruitless_a tree_n ready_a to_o be_v burn_v in_o hell_n fire_n ver_fw-la 10._o 4._o as_o to_o these_o washen_n with_o water_n by_o a_o man_n not_o inward_o baptize_v by_o christ_n ver_fw-la 11._o 5._o to_o a_o visible_a company_n in_o which_o there_o be_v wheat_n and_o chaff_n certain_o john_n shall_v break_v the_o bruise_a reed_n if_o he_o preach_v not_o to_o they_o as_o to_o real_a son_n of_o abraham_n inward_o baptize_v fruitful_a tree_n and_o wheat_n into_o the_o lord_n barn_n 8._o nor_o be_v there_o any_o warrant_n to_o think_v that_o they_o all_o ask_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v and_o do_v all_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n worthy_a amendment_n and_o that_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadducee_n who_o come_v to_o be_v baptize_v matth._n 3._o 7._o do_v bring_v forth_o such_o fruit_n before_o john_n can_v baptise_v they_o act._n 2._o they_o be_v baptize_v the_o same_o day_n neither_o must_v that_o pass_v which_o our_o brethren_n say_v that_o john_n repel_v not_o only_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n matth._n 3._o 7._o but_o also_o the_o profane_a people_n from_o baptism_n as_o those_o who_o be_v a_o generation_n of_o viper_n and_o have_v not_o yet_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n meet_v for_o repentance_n ver_fw-la 7_o 8._o ans._n let_v the_o text_n speak_v mark_v 1._o 5._o and_o there_o go_v out_o unto_o he_o all_o the_o land_n of_o judea_n and_o they_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o they_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v all_o baptize_v matthew_n say_v chap._n 3._o v._n 7._o and_o see_v many_o of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o sadduoe_n come_v to_o his_o baptism_n he_o say_v generation_n of_o viper_n who_o have_v forewarn_v you_o to_o flee_v from_o the_o wrath_n to_o come_v which_o argue_v rather_o that_o he_o admit_v they_o but_o as_o calvin_n well_o say_v he_o cit_v they_o before_o the_o inner_a tribunal_n of_o their_o consci_fw-la nce_n that_o they_o may_v severe_o examine_v themselves_o luk._n 3._o 7._o he_o say_v the_o same_o to_o all_o the_o multitude_n that_o come_v to_o be_v baptize_v but_o especial_o to_o he_o pharisee_n but_o that_o john_n refuse_v to_o baptize_v they_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n in_o the_o text_n but_o the_o contrary_a mark_v 1._o 5._o luk_n 3._o 2._o matth._n 3._o 3_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o beza_n pareus_n piscator_fw-la on_o matth._n 4._o say_v that_o john_n admit_v none_o to_o baptism_n but_o such_o as_o they_o judge_v worthy_a but_o that_o such_o worthiness_n be_v real_a regeneration_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o john_n no_o divine_a say_v but_o withal_o piscator_fw-la say_v on_o mark_n that_o bellarmine_n have_v no_o ground_n for_o auricular_a confession_n it_o be_v not_o probable_a that_o john_n seek_v a_o public_a confession_n of_o secret_a sin_n now_o it_o be_v know_v mr._n hooker_n the_o book_n of_o discipline_n of_o n._n england_n require_v far_o beyond_o auricular_a confession_n the_o rhemist_n speak_v just_a almost_o in_o the_o language_n of_o m._n h._n confess_v their_o sin_n not_o acknowledge_v themselves_o in_o general_a to_o be_v sinner_n but_o also_o utter_v every_o man_n his_o sin_n m._n h._n they_o confess_v their_o sin_n ver_fw-la 6._o it_o be_v such_o a_o confession_n as_o amount_v to_o repentance_n and_o their_o own_o word_n evidence_n as_o much_o luk._n 3._o 5_o 6._o what_o shall_v we_o do_v if_o it_o be_v such_o a_o repentance_n as_o john_n command_v and_o such_o it_o be_v say_v m._n h._n then_o it_o be_v real_a and_o constant_a endure_v to_o the_o end_n and_o this_o be_v more_o charity_n bestow_v upon_o judea_n than_o the_o jesuit_n of_o rheims_n give_v they_o for_o they_o be_v content_a to_o stay_v within_o a_o precept_n m._n h._n say_v all_o judea_n repent_v he_o preach_v repentance_n say_v they_o by_o do_v worthy_a fruit_n or_o work_n of_o penance_n now_o m._n h._n must_v make_v this_o confession_n if_o it_o amount_v to_o repentance_n most_o particular_a of_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o which_o d._n fulke_n say_v be_v impossible_a and_o cartwright_n that_o it_o be_v common_a not_o full_a and_o prove_v it_o by_o many_o argument_n and_o sure_a that_o multitude_n must_v have_v live_v upon_o locust_n and_o wild_a honey_n that_o john_n may_v have_v be_v satisfy_v with_o their_o spiritual_a good_a estate_n as_o lively_a stone_n as_o our_o brethren_n speak_v our_o brethren_n confession_n must_v have_v as_o long_o a_o space_n to_o wit_n seven_o year_n as_o d._n fulke_n say_v anricular_a confession_n will_v have_v take_v some_o bring_v the_o place_n luk._n 7._o 29._o to_o prove_v that_o john_n refuse_v eunuch_n to_o admit_v the_o pharisee_n to_o baptism_n but_o that_o place_n say_v it_o be_v their_o sin_n who_o will_v not_o be_v baptize_v and_o so_o despise_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n whereas_o the_o publican_n glorify_v god_n be_v baptize_v with_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n ver_fw-la 29_o 30._o as_o calvin_n well_o observe_v compare_v the_o publican_n and_o pharisee_n together_o see_v diodâti_n and_o the_o english_a divine_v for_o it_o be_v not_o hold_v forth_o as_o their_o punishment_n that_o john_n debar_v they_o as_o unworthy_a yea_o all_o that_o come_v to_o be_v baptize_v mat._n 3._o mark_v 1_o luk._n 3._o be_v baptize_v nor_o be_v it_o of_o weight_n that_o philip_n say_v act._n 8._o thou_o may_v be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v baptize_v if_o thou_o will_v so_o the_o word_n note_v matth._n 12._o 24._o ver_fw-la 10._o 12._o matth._n 14._o 4._o matth._n 19_o matth._n 20._o 15._o matth._n 22._o 17._o matth._n 27._o 6._o mark_n 2._o 24._o ver_fw-la 26._o luk._n 6._o 2._o joh._n 6._o 9_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d joh._n 5._o 10._o joh._n 18_o 31._o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n in_o the_o text_n that_o the_o lawfulness_n be_v refer_v to_o philip_n his_o act_n of_o baptise_v as_o if_o philip_n may_v without_o sin_n baptize_v as_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v i_o philip_n can_v lawful_o baptize_v thou_o except_v they_o believe_v with_o all_o the_o heart_n but_o it_o be_v clear_o refer_v to_o the_o eunuch_n believe_v for_o 1._o philip_n have_v more_o ground_n of_o the_o soundness_n of_o the_o eunuch_n profession_n so_o as_o he_o may_v lawful_o have_v baptize_v he_o than_o he_o have_v to_o baptize_v magus_n find_v the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v direct_v philip_n to_o go_v to_o he_o act._n 8._o 29_o 30._o 2._o he_o find_v he_o read_v scripture_n and_o desirous_a to_o know_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o 36._o and_o desirous_a to_o be_v baptize_v 3_o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n of_o reason_n in_o the_o text_n that_o it_o be_v a_o case_n of_o conscience_n to_o the_o ennuch_n whether_o it_o be_v philip_n sin_n to_o baptize_v he_o except_o he_o know_v he_o have_v true_a faith_n but_o clear_o he_o himself_o doubt_v whether_o he_o may_v be_v baptize_v or_o not_o 3._o philip_n require_v of_o the_o eunuch_n real_a believe_v with_o all_o the_o heart_n but_o visible_a believe_v as_o magus_n have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o philip_n to_o baptize_v without_o sin_n in_o the_o baptizer_n quest._n what_o ignorance_n exolude_v from_o church_n membership_n m._n h._n that_o ignorance_n which_o make_v person_n to_o be_v no_o church_n 26._o that_o will_v hinder_v a_o person_n from_o be_v a_o member_n but_o there_o be_v a_o simple_a ignorance_n of_o point_n fundamental_a that_o make_v papist_n that_o never_o hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o so_o have_v not_o wilful_o reject_v it_o say_v m._n r._n to_o be_v no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n aâsâ_n m._n h._n to_o be_v admit_v a_o member_n and_o to_o be_v baptize_v say_v church-membership_a he_o pag._n 20._o infer_v each_o one_o another_o but_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 5._o pag._n 59_o have_v receive_v true_a baptism_n let_v m._n h._n answer_n m._n h._n 2._o that_o ignorance_n that_o hinder_v person_n to_o be_v no_o church_n visible_o profess_v will_v hinder_v person_n to_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o visible_a profess_v church_n the_o proposition_n be_v deny_v for_o infant_n
say_v calvin_n baptize_v be_v so_o ignorant_a and_o they_o be_v admit_v member_n say_v our_o brethren_n in_o and_o with_o 20._o their_o parent_n 3._o m._n r._n speak_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o which_o papist_n ignorant_a of_o fundamental_n be_v not_o member_n chap._n xii_o how_o profession_n do_v notify_v conversion_n mr._n h._n that_o profession_n which_o must_v notify_v to_o the_o church_n that_o a_o person_n be_v a_o true_a believer_n that_o must_v notify_v that_o he_o have_v 26527._o true_a grace_n but_o the_o profession_n that_o m._n r_o require_v must_v notify_v to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v a_o true_a believer_n pag._n 196._o faith_n give_v right_a to_o the_o seal_n profession_n to_o speak_v acuâately_o do_v only_o notify_v to_o the_o church_n that_o the_o man_n have_v right_a to_o the_o seal_n so_o m._n r._n ans._n what_o be_v in_o question_n to_o m._n r._n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v a_o he_o church-member_n as_o infant_n and_o fix_a hearer_n be_v and_o another_o thing_n to_o be_v by_o profession_n capable_a of_o both_o the_o seal_n the_o latter_a be_v such_o determinate_a church-member_n or_o church-member_n in_o special_a but_o all_o member_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o both_o seal_n 2._o the_o profession_n that_o m._n r._n require_v do_v notify_v m._n r._n say_v not_o faith_n must_v notify_v to_o the_o church_n that_o a_o person_n be_v a_o true_a believer_n before_o he_o can_v be_v admit_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o church_n and_o that_o be_v the_o question_n now_o not_o what_o profession_n do_v notify_v simple_o but_o what_o it_o must_v notify_v to_o the_o church_n before_o the_o church_n can_v lawful_o admit_v they_o to_o be_v member_n m._n r._n never_o say_v that_o nor_o say_v m._n r._n that_o not_o every_o profession_n but_o that_o which_o be_v apparent_o true_a do_v notify_v so_o much_o and_o that_o which_o be_v only_o savoury_a to_o the_o godly_a 2._o as_o also_o m._n h._n add_v to_o my_o word_n the_o adjective_n true_a which_o be_v not_o in_o my_o word_n yea_o i_o teach_v that_o the_o profession_n of_o demas_n magus_n do_v not_o notify_v that_o they_o be_v true_a believer_n and_o though_o visible_a profession_n shall_v notify_v true_a faith_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o must_v offer_v to_o judicious_a charity_n such_o overweigh_a evidence_n as_o the_o church_n can_v lawful_o admit_v magus_n a_o member_n but_o they_o must_v first_o positive_o judge_v he_o a_o real_a convert_n and_o the_o like_a john_n must_v judge_v of_o all_o jury_n who_o he_o baptize_v 3._o since_o m._n h_n speak_v of_o admission_n to_o the_o seal_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n he_o must_v mean_v both_o the_o seal_n hence_o let_v this_o quaere_fw-la be_v answer_v by_o our_o brethren_n whether_o they_o think_v that_o profession_n do_v notify_v to_o a_o charitable_a convert_n judgement_n that_o all_o infant_n of_o church-member_n because_o bear_v of_o church-member_n be_v real_a convert_n if_o so_o birth_n must_v give_v conversion_n and_o david_n must_v give_v to_o absalon_n conversion_n by_o birth_n 2._o all_o infant_n so_o bear_v must_v be_v regenerate_v but_o experience_n and_o scripture_n teach_v that_o many_o so_o bear_v turn_v apostate_n and_o prove_v son_n of_o perdition_n how_o our_o brethren_n shall_v free_v themselves_o of_o some_o baptismal_a regeneration_n and_o of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o justify_v and_o true_o sanctify_v let_v they_o consider_v and_o the_o sound_a reader_n judge_v for_o our_o brethren_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o put_v the_o seal_n upon_o a_o blank_a chap._n xiii_o of_o degenerate_a member_n of_o the_o church_n a_o church_n constitute_v of_o fit_a matter_n may_v be_v corrupt_v by_o their_o break_n forth_o into_o scandal_n as_o be_v clear_a in_o corinth_n galatia_n sardis_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n threaten_v 27._o a_o bill_n of_o divorce_n hos._n 22._o and_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o toleration_n until_o by_o a_o judicial_a proceed_v the_o evil_n be_v try_v the_o party_n convince_v or_o out_o off_o ergo_fw-la the_o corrupt_a of_o a_o church_n constitute_v give_v no_o allowance_n to_o bring_v in_o corrupt_a member_n but_o by_o the_o contrary_a if_o a_o pentinacloââ_n member_n shall_v be_v remove_v than_o such_o a_o member_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v ans._n 1._o this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o mr._n robinson_n and_o most_o be_v borrow_v from_o separatist_n and_o anabaptist_n in_o this_o theme_n if_o such_o as_o be_v know_v to_o be_v no_o visible_a member_n must_v be_v tolerate_v until_o censure_n be_v apply_v and_o they_o convince_v or_o cut_v off_o in_o that_o interval_n the_o church_n must_v either_o give_v the_o seal_n to_o they_o and_o their_o seed_n or_o not_o if_o the_o former_a be_v say_v then_o must_v the_o church_n know_o profane_a the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n and_o so_o visible_a member_n as_o visible_a saint_n and_o under_o that_o formal_a reduplication_n as_o visible_a convert_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o the_o church_n but_o as_o tolerate_v scandalous_a person_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n bestow_v church-admission_n and_o seal_n until_o it_o be_v see_v they_o be_v convert_v visible_a which_o destroy_v a_o principal_a pillar_n of_o the_o brethren_n way_n if_o the_o latter_a be_v say_v that_o the_o seal_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v to_o they_o and_o to_o their_o seed_n in_o the_o interval_n than_o the_o visible_a saintship_n so_o judge_v be_v not_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o membership_n and_o church-priviledge_n convert_n to_o wit_n of_o seal_n for_o hence_o seal_n be_v deny_v to_o such_o member_n as_o be_v see_v to_o be_v scandalous_a but_o not_o casten_z out_o which_o again_o destroy_v the_o same_o principle_n 2._o the_o argument_n presuppose_v that_o none_o be_v excommunicate_a but_o under_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o visible_a non-converts_a ergo_fw-la david_n peter_n and_o such_o be_v undoubted_o visible_a convert_n can_v be_v excommunicate_a for_o adultery_n or_o murder_n though_o visible_a they_o remain_v as_o to_o all_o other_o thing_n save_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o uriah_n and_o the_o one_o particular_a scandal_n for_o which_o they_o be_v excommunicate_a sound_a and_o savoury_a saint_n but_o the_o church_n must_v judge_v david_n peter_n and_o all_o such_o non-converts_a who_o they_o excommunicate_v non-converts_a and_o unchosen_a to_o glory_n which_o be_v against_o the_o brethren_n way_n also_o for_o if_o none_o be_v admit_v church-member_n but_o such_o as_o according_a to_o the_o command_n and_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n be_v judge_v convert_v visible_a ergo_fw-la all_fw-mi casten_z out_o be_v no_o member_n and_o so_o non-converts_a and_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v admit_v but_o hold_v out_o though_o in_o other_o thing_n they_o be_v visible_a convert_n 3._o m._n h._n can_v produce_v any_o argument_n of_o m._n r._n wherein_o he_o argue_v simple_o from_o corrupt_a and_o degenerate_a member_n such_o as_o the_o jew_n be_v act._n 13._o who_o blaspheme_v contradict_v and_o open_o put_v away_o the_o gospel_n that_o such_o may_v be_v admit_v and_o plant_v in_o church_n but_o sardis_n for_o the_o few_o name_n therein_o be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o visible_a church_n and_o golden_a candlestick_n among_o which_o christ_n walk_v rev._n 3._o and_o m._n hooker_n yield_v the_o seal_n be_v due_a to_o these_o member_n and_o their_o feed_n though_o they_o have_v a_o name_n of_o live_a member_n and_o be_v dead_a so_o they_o be_v not_o visible_o scandalous_a but_o m._n r._n his_o argument_n be_v not_o bring_v but_o a_o new_a one_o for_o m._n r._n say_v that_o god_n make_v a_o covenant_n deu._n 29._o with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n for_o the_o elect_v sake_n say_v to_o be_v hard_a blind_a dââ_n 29._o 3._o stiff-necked_a deu._n 31._o 27._o aâ_n that_o time_n but_o profess_a repentance_n deu._n 29._o 3._o our_o saviour_n aim_n and_o decree_n or_o intention_n of_o save_v which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o and_o the_o lord_n deep_a dispensation_n in_o long_o bear_v with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o call_v they_o lo-ammi_a not_o my_o people_n hos._n 2._o for_o that_o he_o cite_v be_v no_o rule_n to_o we_o but_o the_o reveal_v will_n nor_o be_v the_o church_n to_o forbear_v to_o word_n censure_v so_o long_o as_o god_n punish_v not_o yea_o than_o shall_v the_o priest_n have_v admit_v into_o the_o temple_n the_o worshipper_n of_o baal_n such_o as_o offer_v in_o the_o high_a place_n to_o other_o strange_a god_n for_o god_n cast_v not_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n nor_o such_o idolater_n utter_o off_o at_o that_o time_n but_o he_o send_v prophet_n to_o they_o and_o there_o be_v a_o far_a other_o consideration_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n and_o of_o jezabel_n a_o single_a person_n he_o will_v not_o remove_v his_o candlestick_n from_o sardis_n
but_o he_o offend_v that_o jezabel_n be_v not_o casten_z out_z chap._n xiiii_o the_o answer_n of_o mr._n hooker_n to_o the_o argument_n of_o mr._n rutherfurd_n be_v discuss_v and_o disapproven_v the_o place_n act_n 2._o 37_o 38._o etc._n etc._n and_o magus_n his_o admission_n act._n 8._o 15._o consider_v first_o argument_n in_o the_o first_o receive_v of_o member_n by_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v but_o a_o profess_a willingness_n to_o receive_v the_o gospel_n howbeit_o seem_v receive_v it_o not_o from_o the_o heart_n m._n h._n answer_v there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o profess_a willingness_n but_o a_o practical_a reformation_n that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n give_v ground_n of_o hope_n that_o there_o be_v something_o real_a before_o the_o contrary_n appear_v therefore_o peter_n who_o receive_v magus_n upon_o his_o approbation_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o outward_a conformity_n thereunto_o in_o the_o course_n of_o his_o life_n reject_v he_o as_o one_o in_o the_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n who_o have_v no_o share_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o certain_o will_v not_o suffer_v he_o in_o the_o privilege_n of_o communion_n so_o persist_v without_o repentance_n ans._n 1._o not_o profess_v willingness_n but_o also_o practical_a reformation_n be_v require_v but_o be_v not_o profess_v willingness_n in_o murderer_n admit_v of_o christ_n who_o say_v what_o shall_v we_o do_v to_o be_v save_v some_o practical_a reformation_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o conjecture_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o admit_v all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o thousand_o until_o they_o have_v experience_n of_o their_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o judicial_o determine_v apostle_n so_o of_o they_o all_o 2._o this_o practical_a reformation_n be_v not_o a_o experience_n of_o their_o practice_n of_o savoury_a walk_n require_v by_o m._n h._n p._n 1._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 14_o 15._o in_o visible_a saint_n before_o admission_n except_o some_o four_o or_o five_o hour_n time_n may_v create_v a_o habitual_a experience_n for_o the_o same_o very_a day_n they_o be_v baptize_v act_v 2._o 41._o 3_o m._n h._n shall_v prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n find_v this_o practical_a reformation_n in_o all_o ananias_n saphira_n and_o the_o whole_a 3000_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n try_v and_o smell_v the_o savourinesse_n of_o save_a grace_n in_o all_o in_o saphira_n the_o text_n give_v not_o the_o least_o jot_n of_o this_o we_o muâ_n take_v it_o upon_o the_o naked_a assertion_n of_o m._n h._n 4_o that_o this_o practical_a reformation_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n judgement_n of_o charity_n ground_n of_o hope_n that_o there_o be_v something_o real_a that_o be_v the_o whole_a number_n about_o three_o thousand_o none_o except_v for_o all_o be_v make_v church-saint_n visible_a give_v ground_n of_o hope_n that_o they_o be_v all_o real_o otherwise_o their_o speak_n and_o hear_v the_o word_n be_v real_a that_o be_v not_o imaginary_a internal_o and_o effectual_o call_v and_o bear_v over_o again_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o so_o choose_v to_o life_n eternal_a from_o eternity_n before_o the_o apostle_n dare_v without_o the_o offend_n of_o god_n admit_v they_o to_o church-fellowship_n and_o visible_a communion_n those_o i_o say_v must_v be_v prove_v if_o i_o dare_v i_o be_o not_o far_o from_o judge_v the_o godly_a and_o judicious_a in_o cold_a blood_n free_a of_o heat_n of_o dispute_n dare_v not_o so_o judge_v of_o the_o text_n act_v 2._o or_o act_n 8._o 5_o there_o be_v no_o shadow_n act_v 8._o that_o peter_n m._n h._n shall_v say_v philip_n admit_v member_n not_o magus_n while_o he_o see_v such_o ground_n of_o the_o sorcerer_n real_a conversion_n and_o real_a predestination_n to_o glory_n 6_o peter_n say_v that_o magus_n have_v no_o share_n in_o christ._n true_a but_o say_v he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o unbaptised_a man_n who_o have_v no_o share_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n no._n 7_o but_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v magus_n to_o share_v in_o the_o privilege_n of_o communion_n he_o persist_v without_o repentance_n true_o but_o it_o be_v no_o answer_n to_o the_o argument_n from_o the_o manner_n of_o receive_v in_o this_o be_v something_o to_o the_o cast_v out_o 8_o that_o peter_n reprove_v he_o in_o the_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n 2._o exhort_v he_o to_o repent_v to_o pray_v for_o pardon_n be_v great_a privilege_n of_o church-communion_n church_n bestow_v upon_o magus_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o three_o case_n the_o 1._o case_n be_v 1._o when_o church_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o church_n for_o example_n out_o of_o galatia_n ephesus_n where_o infant_n be_v bear_v and_o baptise_a 20._o church-member_n within_o the_o visible_a church_n hence_o we_o seek_v a_o warrant_n why_o these_o who_o be_v once_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a censure_n church_n and_o baptize_v as_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o 32_o say_v and_o so_o clean_a and_o holy_a 1_o cor._n 7._o 14._o rom._n 11._o 16._o 2_o in_o covenant_n with_o god_n act_v 2._o 38_o 39_o act._n 15._o 14_o 15._o gen._n 17._o 7._o 2_o cor._n 6._o 16_o 17_o 18._o etc._n etc._n 3_o and_o so_o redeem_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o baptize_v into_o his_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o even_o unto_o christ_n gal._n 3._o 17._o act._n 2._o 38_o 39_o when_o they_o come_v to_o age_n be_v for_o no_o scandal_n unchurch_v and_o because_o they_o can_v give_v evidence_n of_o real_a conversion_n yet_o for_o 60._o or_o 80._o year_n and_o to_o their_o die_a day_n be_v no_o more_o church-member_n than_o pagan_n 2._o how_o can_v you_o baptize_v pagan_n they_o be_v so_o strait_v with_o this_o that_o many_o among_o they_o call_v for_o bishopping_n or_o confirmation_n again_o 3._o how_o be_v it_o that_o you_o once_o baptize_v they_o church-member_n and_o within_o the_o covenant_n and_o so_o baptize_v they_o but_o for_o the_o foresay_a want_n how_o be_v it_o now_o 1_o you_o teach_v exhort_v rebuke_n comfort_v they_o and_o you_o have_v no_o pastoral_n call_v to_o they_o more_o than_o to_o pagan_n 2_o how_o or_o what_o calling_n or_o what_o sort_n of_o officer_n be_v your_o pastor_n to_o they_o or_o who_o call_v you_o to_o take_v care_n and_o watch_v for_o their_o soul_n who_o be_v without_o and_o to_o you_o as_o pagan_n 3_o how_o can_v you_o offer_v christ_n all_o the_o day_n long_o to_o pagan_n 4._o if_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o gospel_n you_o can_v judge_v they_o for_o they_o be_v without_o 1_o cor._n 5._o 12._o to_o you_o and_o christian_a 15._o magistrate_n can_v compel_v they_o that_o be_v without_o to_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n by_o your_o way_n the_o second_o case_n be_v when_o the_o apostle_n come_v with_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o gentile_n act._n 14._o 47_o 48._o to_o lystra_n and_o derbe_n act._n 14._o 6_o 7._o to_o philippi_n act._n 16._o 12._o to_o corinth_n act._n 18._o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o to_o ephesus_n act._n 19_o 9_o 10._o etc._n etc._n our_o brethren_n must_v prove_v 1._o that_o the_o apostle_n first_o teach_v to_o they_o as_o no_o officer_n have_v no_o pastoral_a care_n of_o their_o soul_n until_o they_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n real_a convert_n and_o then_o they_o preach_v to_o they_o as_o church-member_n 2_o and_o until_o they_o be_v satisfy_v in_o conscience_n of_o the_o good_a spiritual_a estate_n one_o of_o another_o as_o lively_a stone_n to_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o spiritual_a building_n as_o their_o way_n teach_v and_o until_o they_o in_o their_o practice_n and_o profession_n if_o we_o look_v say_v m._n hooker_n in_o their_o course_n according_a to_o what_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n or_o receive_v by_o report_n and_o testimony_n from_o other_o or_o last_o look_v we_o at_o their_o expression_n favour_v so_o much_o as_o though_o they_o have_v be_v with_o jesus_n and_o 3._o the_o apostle_n know_v not_o any_o such_o thing_n in_o visible_a âconverts_n as_o that_o they_o shall_v form_v themselves_o from_o a_o intrinsical_a power_n in_o themselves_o into_o a_o organical_a body_n and_o ordain_v their_o own_o elder_n for_o to_o draw_v this_o out_o of_o any_o thing_n we_o find_v in_o scripture_n be_v do_v with_o as_o great_a difficulty_n as_o to_o extract_v water_n out_o of_o a_o stone_n all_o we_o find_v the_o apostle_n do_v be_v to_o preach_v christ_n to_o they_o and_o a_o interval_n of_o time_n as_o be_v clear_a after_o act._n 13._o 14_o they_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n act._n 14._o 6._o ver_fw-la 21._o they_o return_v to_o lystra_n and_o to_o baptise_v iconium_n and_o to_o antioch_n and_o ver_fw-la 23._o and_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o church_n all_o which_o time_n it_o appear_v they_o be_v visible_a church_n without_o seal_n and_o when_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o age_a and_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o a_o profession_n of_o faith_n sincere_a
of_o asa_n his_o continue_v obstinate_o in_o these_o evil_n be_v well_o know_v m._n h._n m._n ruthurfurd_n maintain_v that_o such_o as_o be_v admit_v must_v 1_o not_o be_v scandalous_a 2._o must_v be_v baptize_v after_o the_o order_n of_o christ_n 3._o they_o must_v by_o their_o profession_n notify_v that_o they_o be_v true_a believer_n ans._n how_o they_o be_v not_o scandalous_a how_o baptize_v in_o christ_n order_n and_o so_o must_v repent_v for_o their_o own_o personal_a comfort_n and_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v try_v ergo_fw-la they_o must_v be_v to_o we_o real_a convert_n before_o they_o be_v admit_v be_v a_o feeble_a consequence_n the_o three_o i_o never_o require_v before_o they_o be_v admit_v member_n m._n can_v read_v that_o in_o my_o write_n but_o forge_v it_o of_o his_o own_o as_o be_v answer_v by_o i_o mr._n h._n p._n 32_o 33._o if_o i_o must_v not_o enter_v willing_o into_o any_o unnecessary_a civil_a society_n with_o such_o as_o have_v a_o show_n of_o godliness_n and_o be_v deny_v the_o power_n thereof_o and_o such_o as_o be_v name_v brethren_n but_o be_v idolatrous_a far_o less_o shall_v i_o enter_v into_o a_o spiritual_a society_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o ans._n what_o this_o reason_n mean_v i_o know_v not_o but_o 1._o it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o you_o to_o enter_v yourself_o a_o visible_a marry_a member_n of_o that_o church_n where_o one_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v who_o be_v know_v to_o donatist_n be_v a_o scandalous_a hypocrite_n as_o he_o be_v describe_v 2_o tim._n 3_o 1_o 2_o 3._o yea_o suppose_v in_o all_o church_n you_o find_v some_o scandalous_a you_o be_v to_o join_v to_o some_o visible_a church_n on_o earth_n but_o this_o be_v 1._o unlawful_a for_o say_v that_o one_o will_v refuse_v to_o you_o marry_v any_o at_o all_o because_o no_o woman_n on_o earth_n can_v satisfy_v his_o mind_n hardly_o can_v that_o single_a life_n be_v lawful_a if_o god_n give_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o continency_n but_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o live_v single_a and_o to_o marry_v none_o because_o of_o such_o humorous_a impediment_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v lawful_a to_o live_v out_o of_o all_o church-fellowship_n without_o all_o church-ordinance_n suppose_v you_o be_v in_o a_o island_n where_o one_o only_a church_n be_v 2._o suppose_v one_o be_v marry_v and_o fix_o join_v to_o such_o a_o congregation_n and_o divers_a member_n turn_v like_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o sardis_n divers_a become_v such_o as_o be_v 2_o tim._n 3._o 2._o lover_n of_o their_o own_o self_n covetous_a boaster_n proud_a blasphemer_n disobedient_a to_o parent_n etc._n etc._n the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v to_o turn_v away_o from_o such_o now_o the_o elder_n and_o flock_n refuse_v to_o cââ¦_n they_o out_o if_o that_o turn_v away_o 2_o tim._n 3._o be_v mean_v of_o separate_n from_o the_o church_n we_o must_v not_o turn_v away_o from_o they_o except_o the_o church_n to_o which_o we_o be_v marry_v give_v we_o leave_v which_o be_v strange_a and_o it_o be_v like_o this_o be_v not_o mr._n hooker_n sense_n for_o he_o make_v it_o less_o free_a to_o turn_v away_o from_o a_o church_n to_o which_o you_o be_v marry_v than_o not_o to_o join_v to_o it_o as_o it_o be_v less_o free_a to_o the_o man_n to_o leave_v the_o wise_a to_o who_o he_o be_v once_o marry_v than_o not_o to_o marry_v and_o so_o he_o make_v the_o church_n a_o prison_n as_o for_o the_o place_n 1_o cor._n 5._o he_o forbid_v entire_a converse_v with_o the_o excommunicate_a bullinger_n he_o forbid_v intimate_a fellowship_n bibâbant_fw-la with_o they_o mayer_n say_v it_o be_v the_o argue_v of_o anabaptist_n which_o yet_o pious_a mr._n h._n here_o follow_v we_o shall_v not_o eat_v with_o they_o ergo_fw-la we_o shall_v not_o join_v in_o church_n duty_n with_o they_o but_o augustine_n cit_v cyprian_n because_o we_o see_v tare_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o let_v we_o not_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n for_o say_v augustine_n when_o the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a partake_v of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n neither_o the_o cause_n nor_o the_o person_n be_v hurt_v enter_v in_o church-fellowship_n some_o one_o or_o other_o though_o there_o be_v some_o scandalous_a person_n tolerate_v and_o desended_a in_o all_o the_o church_n be_v not_o voluntary_a as_o to_o marry_v or_o not_o to_o marry_v but_o a_o necessary_a ordinance_n of_o god_n for_o he_o live_v as_o a_o heathen_a in_o a_o condition_n of_o sin_v who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o no_o visible_a church_n mr._n h._n these_o be_v not_o sufficient_a requisite_n in_o one_o to_o be_v a_o member_n which_o may_v be_v in_o a_o drunkard_n who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o member_n but_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o ergo_fw-la to_o be_v keep_v out_o but_o these_o three_o assign_v by_o mr._n r._n 1._o to_o profess_v the_o faith_n 2._o eager_o to_o desire_v the_o seal_n 3._o to_o desire_v church-fellowship_n count_v it_o a_o disparagement_n not_o to_o be_v bear_v again_o if_o not_o admit_v to_o the_o sacrament_n may_v agree_v to_o a_o drunkard_n ans._n for_o the_o ordinary_a drunkard_n he_o be_v either_o bear_v and_o baptize_v in_o the_o church_n or_o he_o be_v a_o pagan_a and_o a_o ordinary_a drunkard_n have_v these_o three_o if_o the_o former_a be_v say_v he_o be_v bear_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v his_o cast_n out_o not_o concern_v his_o receive_n in_o i_o confess_v i_o know_v not_o how_o mr._n h._n can_v answer_v the_o question_n himself_o concern_v child_n bear_v in_o their_o church_n of_o parent_n father_n mother_n that_o be_v church_n member_n though_o such_o live_v 60_o or_o 70_o year_n never_o baptize_v and_o have_v these_o three_o requisite_n and_o be_v free_a of_o gross_a scandal_n they_o can_v not_o admit_v such_o to_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o minister_n shall_v have_v some_o extraordinary_a call_n of_o god_n to_o preach_v to_o such_o as_o paul_n have_v to_o go_v to_o preach_v in_o macedonia_n act._n 16._o for_o by_o our_o brethren_n way_n they_o have_v no_o right_n by_o way_n of_o covenant_n from_o the_o parent_n but_o only_o a_o providential_a right_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n which_o require_v a_o extraordinary_a apostolic_a cast_n as_o for_o the_o other_o if_o the_o man_n be_v a_o bear_v heathen_a and_o shall_v come_v to_o get_v these_o three_o requisite_n and_o profess_v as_o magus_n do_v he_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v a_o member_n but_o if_o he_o have_v not_o these_o three_o requisite_n for_o he_o live_v in_o sorcery_n as_o magus_n and_o elymas_n and_o oppose_v the_o gospel_n the_o open_o lie_v profession_n be_v scandalous_a such_o a_o profession_n mr._n r._n faith_n be_v not_o his_o requisite_n if_o he_o be_v a_o pagan_a and_o continue_v in_o habitual_a drunkenness_n he_o may_v be_v hold_v out_o while_o he_o give_v evidence_n to_o other_o of_o amendment_n and_o then_o he_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o outer_a court_n as_o a_o heater_n though_o a_o profession_n of_o faith_n if_o not_o belie_v with_o worship_v of_o false_a god_n can_v hardly_o consist_v with_o paganism_n chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o principal_a and_o prime_a subject_n of_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o special_a note_n bestow_v in_o the_o mediator_n christ_n upon_o the_o church_n mr._n h._n p._n 1._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 23._o 1._o whether_o the_o invisible_a church_n be_v the_o principal_a prime_a and_o only_o subject_a of_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n pa._n 3._o ans._n it_o be_v not_o such_o a_o subject_n by_o any_o argument_n that_o mr._n r._n bring_v but_o mr._n h._n frame_v a_o question_n of_o straw_n as_o if_o i_o have_v move_v it_o and_o dispute_v against_o mr._n r._n my_o word_n be_v the_o invisible_a not_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o 248._o principal_a prime_a and_o only_a subject_n with_o who_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v make_v to_o who_o all_o the_o promise_n do_v belong_v and_o to_o who_o all_o title_n style_n property_n and_o privilege_n of_o special_a note_n in_o the_o mediator_n de_fw-fr belong_v p._n 248._o the_o promise_n be_v preach_v to_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n but_o for_o the_o elect_v sake_n yet_o they_o belong_v in_o god_n intention_n and_o gracious_a purpose_n only_o to_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n and_o his_o redeem_a one_o to_o that_o invisible_a body_n spouse_n sister_n whereof_o christ_n alone_o be_v lord_n heâd_n husband_n i_o wonder_v then_o if_o mr._n h._n do_v read_v my_o book_n when_o he_o will_v dispute_v such_o a_o question_n with_o i_o 1._o whether_o the_o invisible_a church_n and_o the_o elect_n be_v the_o prime_a subject_n of_o the_o seal_n a_o question_n that_o have_v no_o sense_n nor_o any_o favour_n church_n from_o mr._n r._n for_o can_v the_o elect_n of_o which_o some_o be_v not_o bear_v eat_v and_o drink_v
redeem_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v call_v seek_v out_o a_o city_n not_o forsake_v mr._n h._n p._n 37._o that_o only_o the_o invisible_a church_n have_v right_a to_o the_o seal_n draw_v many_o absurdity_n the_o adversary_n of_o grace_n will_v hardly_o be_v gain_v ans._n true_a if_o you_o mean_v external_a sign_n and_o ecclesiastic_a right_n if_o all_o israel_n be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n within_o the_o way_n covenant_n we_o must_v indeed_o believe_v visible_a murmurer_n idolater_n fornicator_n backslider_n worshipper_n of_o heathen_a god_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 1_o 2_o 3._o exod._n 16._o 1_o 2._o psal._n 78._o 17_o 18_o 19_o 20._o such_o as_o slay_v their_o son_n and_o their_o daughter_n to_o molech_n open_o under_o every_o green_a tree_n psal._n 106._o 35_o 36_o 37_o 38_o 39_o jer._n 7._o 30_o 31._o hos_fw-la 4._o 13._o jer._n 3._o 2_o 3._o isa._n 57_o 8_o 9_o 10._o ezek._n 16._o 31_o 32_o 33_o 34._o to_o be_v real_a convert_n and_o all_o and_o many_o other_o absurdity_n follow_v 2._o we_o must_v believe_v that_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v save_v grace_n ergo_fw-la we_o must_v believe_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o life_n all_o the_o independent_a church_n on_o earth_n 3._o that_o god_n intend_v salvation_n and_o pardon_v and_o perseverance_n to_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o of_o the_o visible_a israel_n and_o that_o to_o be_v false_a rom._n 9_o 6._o they_o be_v not_o all_o israel_n which_o be_v of_o israel_n mr._n h._n p._n 38._o mr._n r._n compass_v we_o about_o with_o a_o crowd_n of_o accusation_n of_o the_o gross_a arminian_n popish_a socinian_n doctrine_n ans._n why_o do_v you_o not_o clear_v yourselves_o of_o conspire_v with_o papist_n in_o deny_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n to_o be_v a_o essential_a note_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o in_o other_o point_n also_o 2._o of_o conspire_v with_o socinian_o in_o set_v up_o independent_a congregation_n 3._o deny_v the_o power_n of_o synod_n 4._o the_o necessity_n of_o ordination_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o elder_n etc._n etc._n to_o such_o you_o say_v not_o any_o thing_n in_o leave_v the_o reform_a church_n and_o join_v with_o these_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o of_o this_o hereafter_o you_o have_v yet_o place_v to_o dismiss_v the_o crowd_n mr._n h._n p._n 38._o let_v mr._n r._n help_v we_o to_o answer_v the_o anabaptist_n upon_o his_o ground_n mr._n h._n those_o that_o i_o can_v know_v have_v any_o right_n to_o the_o seal_n to_o they_o i_o can_v give_v the_o seal_n in_o any_o faith_n but_o i_o can_v know_v that_o infant_n be_v of_o the_o invisible_a church_n which_o only_o give_v they_o right_o to_o the_o seal_n if_o mr._n r._n grant_v the_o proposition_n that_o they_o give_v the_o seal_n to_o such_o who_o they_o know_v not_o to_o have_v any_o right_n they_o triumph_v ans._n no_o anabaptist_n can_v object_v to_o i_o that_o to_o be_v of_o the_o invisible_a seal_n church_n only_o give_v right_o ecclesiastic_a to_o the_o outward_a seal_n which_o magus_n receive_v mr._n h._n call_v the_o dispense_n of_o the_o outward_a seal_n a_o special_a privilege_n but_o such_o as_o magus_n have_v no_o special_a or_o save_a privilege_n 2._o it_o pass_v the_o wit_n of_o man_n to_o defend_v independent_o against_o anabaptist_n for_o 1._o the_o anabaptist_n and_o independent_o both_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o constitution_n of_o visible_a church_n that_o they_o must_v be_v real_a convert_n as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v judge_v but_o that_o we_o can_v judge_v of_o no_o infant_n bear_v of_o believe_a parent_n except_o we_o pluck_v out_o the_o eye_n of_o charity_n and_o believe_v that_o cain_n ishmael_n esaâ_n and_o all_o and_o every_o one_o bear_v within_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v bear_v convert_v be_v impossible_a hence_o mr._n h._n those_o that_o i_o can_v know_v have_v any_o right_n to_o the_o seal_n to_o these_o i_o can_v give_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n in_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v faith_n so_o mr._n h._n but_o i_o can_v know_v that_o all_o the_o infant_n of_o believer_n have_v right_a to_o the_o seal_n because_o their_o parent_n be_v visible_a saint_n some_o of_o they_o elect_n some_o of_o they_o reprobate_n except_o i_o 1._o put_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n upon_o a_o blank_a contrary_a to_o our_o brethren_n doctrine_n 2._o except_o i_o profane_v the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n and_o admit_v heathen_n to_o the_o church_n of_o visible_a saint_n let_v mr._n h._n answer_v the_o anabaptist_n mr._n h._n mr._n r._n help_v the_o minor_a with_o a_o distinction_n so_o faith_n 39_o in_o christ_n true_o give_v right_a to_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o that_o in_o god_n intention_n and_o decree_n call_v voluntas_fw-la beneplaciti_fw-la but_o the_o orderly_a way_n of_o the_o church_n give_v the_o seal_n be_v because_o such_o a_o society_n be_v a_o profess_v and_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o orderly_o give_v of_o the_o seal_n according_a to_o god_n approve_v will_n call_v voluntas_fw-la signi_fw-la &_o revelata_fw-la belong_v to_o the_o visible_a church_n mr._n h._n answer_n this_o salve_n be_v too_o narrow_a for_o the_o sore_a for_o the_o distinction_n will_v either_o make_v god_n order_v the_o give_v of_o the_o seal_n to_o such_o who_o have_v no_o right_n and_o so_o impeach_v his_o wisdom_n to_o appoint_v the_o give_v of_o the_o seal_n to_o such_o to_o who_o he_o give_v no_o right_a to_o receive_v they_o or_o else_o it_o do_v involve_v a_o contradiction_n and_o the_o several_a expression_n contain_v apparent_a contradiction_n for_o this_o voluntas_fw-la signi_fw-la which_o allow_v the_o visible_a church_n to_o give_v the_o seal_n it_o tither_n give_v another_o right_n beside_o that_o which_o the_o invisible_a member_n have_v or_o else_o it_o give_v no_o right_a if_o it_o give_v another_o right_n than_o the_o invisible_a church_n have_v not_o only_o right_a which_o be_v here_o affirm_v if_o it_o give_v no_o right_n than_o the_o visible_a church_n do_v give_v the_o seal_n orderly_o to_o such_o who_o have_v no_o right_n to_o they_o i_o confess_v such_o be_v my_o feebleness_n that_o i_o see_v not_o how_o this_o can_v be_v avoid_v how_o have_v hypocritical_a professor_n right_a to_o the_o seal_n not_o as_o member_n visible_a for_o mr._n r._n say_v p._n 249._o the_o visible_a church_n as_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v no_o right_a unto_o the_o seal_n as_o invisible_a they_o can_v give_v none_o for_o they_o have_v none_o to_o give_v ans._n be_v it_o not_o conscience_n to_o the_o truth_n i_o will_v be_v silent_a of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o this_o pious_a man_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o good_a salve_n for_o it_o become_v not_o mr._n h._n with_o arminian_n and_o socinian_o to_o impeach_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o because_o he_o appoint_v the_o give_v of_o the_o seal_n baptism_n to_o judas_n and_o to_o magus_n who_o have_v no_o right_a true_a and_o real_a in_o foro_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o holy_a intention_n as_o i_o speak_v p._n 248_o 249._o to_o the_o seal_n and_o the_o grace_n seal_v nor_o to_o the_o engraven_a law_n and_o god_n teach_v of_o the_o heart_n and_o to_o perseverance_n and_o i_o divine_n cite_v pag._n 249._o jer._n 32._o 38_o 39_o &_o 31._o 33._o and_o pag._n 244_o 245._o par_fw-fr 1._o psal._n 89_o 33_o 34_o 35_o 36_o 37._o isa._n 54._o 10._o all_o which_o place_n mr._n h_n never_o look_v on_o the_o face_n but_o suppress_v they_o all_o then_o let_v mr._n h._n clear_a the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o appoint_v a_o ministerial_a and_o pastoral_a offer_n of_o covenant-mercy_n christ_n pardon_v the_o anoint_v the_o new_a heart_n life_n eternal_a to_o be_v make_v to_o such_o as_o magus_n and_o judas_n the_o traitor_n 2._o whereas_o he_o say_v the_o distinction_n of_o voluntas_fw-la beneplaciti_fw-la and_o voluntas_fw-la approbans_fw-la contain_v apparent_a contradiction_n it_o seem_v he_o never_o hear_v of_o this_o distinction_n allow_v by_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o that_o he_o join_v with_o the_o arminian_n who_o teach_v that_o this_o distinction_n place_v in_o god_n two_o contrary_a will_n and_o that_o he_o will_v and_o decree_n one_o thing_n from_o eternity_n and_o command_n and_o approve_v the_o contrary_a to_o his_o creature_n hence_o there_o must_v be_v guile_n and_o dissimulation_n and_o no_o serious_a deal_n in_o the_o lord_n command_n say_v arminius_n corvinus_n and_o the_o arminian_n at_o the_o conference_n at_o hague_n and_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n 3._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o mr._n h._n will_v have_v the_o same_o very_a right_n give_v by_o the_o approve_a will_n of_o god_n to_o member_n that_o be_v give_v by_o the_o decree_n just_o as_o vorstius_n will_v have_v the_o promise_n and_o threaten_n
every_o way_n conform_v to_o the_o decree_n and_o he_o and_o all_o the_o arminian_n say_v we_o may_v make_v they_o often_o contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n and_o make_v the_o holy_a lord_n to_o deal_v double_o and_o to_o will_v one_o thing_n within_o himself_o and_o command_v the_o contrary_n so_o mr._n h._n say_v we_o make_v god_n command_v to_o give_v one_o right_a external_a to_o the_o seal_n and_o his_o decree_n the_o contrary_a or_o no_o right_a at_o all_o to_o some_o hypocrite_n but_o we_o answer_v to_o both_o god_n by_o his_o decree_n ordain_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v or_o not_o come_v to_o pass_v or_o what_o shall_v fall_v out_o or_o judge_v not_o fall_v out_o be_v it_o good_a in_o his_o effective_a decree_n or_o be_v it_o evil_n in_o his_o permissive_a decree_n for_o all_o thing_n be_v write_v in_o his_o book_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o even_o all_o david_n member_n ps._n 139._o 16._o eph._n 1._o 11._o but_o god_n by_o his_o approve_v will_n do_v not_o decree_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v or_o not_o come_v to_o pass_v but_o only_a command_n what_o be_v good_a and_o promise_n reward_n according_o and_o forbid_v what_o be_v evil_a and_o threaten_v punishment_n whether_o the_o good_a or_o the_o evil_n come_v to_o pass_v or_o never_o come_v to_o pass_v he_o command_v judas_n to_o believe_v and_o cain_n and_o pharaoh_n that_o be_v he_o approve_v of_o their_o faith_n as_o good_a obedience_n and_o agreeable_a to_o his_o law_n and_o yet_o their_o obedience_n never_o fall_v out_o nor_o do_v the_o lord_n ever_o decree_v they_o shall_v obey_v for_o what_o god_n decreeâ_n shall_v be_v must_v be_v but_o what_o he_o command_v do_v not_o ever_o fall_v out_o so_o the_o lord_n forbid_v the_o kill_n of_o christ_n exod._n 20._o 13._o that_o be_v he_o declare_v that_o he_o nill_v disapprove_v and_o hate_v the_o slay_v of_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o yet_o the_o kill_n of_o christ_n fall_v out_o aâd_o be_v decree_v to_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n act_v 2._o 23._o &_o 4._o 27_o 28._o here_o same_o be_v no_o shadow_n of_o contradiction_n here_o again_o god_n give_v a_o right_a to_o the_o seal_n to_o hypocrite_n that_o be_v he_o command_v the_o church_n to_o give_v the_o seal_n to_o magus_n whether_o such_o real_o or_o hypocritical_o believe_v this_o be_v a_o right_a not_o proper_o inherent_a in_o visible_a member_n for_o their_o profession_n yea_o or_o their_o suppose_a conversion_n 1._o because_o all_o save_n and_o real_a right_n to_o ordinance_n be_v relative_a to_o election_n to_o glory_n and_o flow_v from_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n but_o visible_a professor_n as_o such_o of_o who_o society_n magus_n and_o judas_n be_v have_v not_o any_o save_n and_o real_a right_n as_o choose_v and_o redeem_v in_o christ_n by_o grant_n of_o our_o brethren_n 2._o a_o right_a flow_v only_o from_o a_o external_a profession_n and_o from_o compose_a hypocrisy_n in_o magus_n be_v no_o true_a right_n a_o lie_n can_v give_v a_o true_a right_n i_o offend_v that_o mr._n h._n so_o anxious_o contend_v for_o a_o charter_n to_o such_o bastard_n as_o magus_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o favour_n to_o seal_n hear_v the_o gospel_n and_o partake_v of_o the_o seal_n and_o ius_n activum_fw-la a_o active_a right_n the_o church_n and_o minister_n have_v to_o call_v and_o admit_v to_o the_o seal_v all_o who_o profess_v as_o magus_n that_o the_o elect_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n may_v be_v convert_v but_o it_o be_v not_o a_o right_a propriè_fw-la dictum_fw-la ne_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la that_o they_o have_v who_o be_v such_o hypocrite_n as_o judas_n and_o magus_n for_o the_o command_n and_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n most_o unproper_o be_v say_v to_o give_v mâgus_n a_o right_a to_o the_o seal_n except_o mr._n h._n never_o divine_v so_o speak_v the_o command_n reveal_v the_o right_a but_o give_v none_o as_o also_o the_o right_n of_o visible_a professor_n be_v ius_n passivum_fw-la and_o a_o conditional_a and_o passive_a right_n for_o magus_n and_o judas_n have_v no_o right_a to_o be_v visible_a member_n or_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o seal_n yea_o or_o to_o profess_v the_o covenant_n and_o name_n of_o god_n psal._n 50._o 16._o but_o upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n for_o god_n can_v command_v sin_n and_o a_o hypocritical_a profession_n yea_o he_o forbid_v tread_v in_o his_o court_n isa._n 1._o 12_o 13._o except_o they_o repent_v and_o believe_v ver_fw-la 16_o 17._o therefore_o magus_n sin_n in_o profess_v and_o in_o be_v baptize_v he_o remain_v rot_v but_o the_o church_n sin_v not_o but_o do_v the_o command_n of_o christ_n in_o call_v invite_v all_o that_o profess_v whether_o they_o be_v real_o or_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n convert_v or_o no._n which_o distinction_n not_o be_v observe_v our_o brethren_n and_o mr._n h._n mistake_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a right_n for_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o command_n give_v to_o all_o visible_a professor_n such_o as_o peter_n who_o real_o believe_v both_o the_o ecclesiastic_a and_o external_a right_n to_o the_o seal_n which_o he_o decree_v to_o give_v they_o and_o the_o same_o internal_a and_o real_a right_n which_o they_o have_v by_o faith_n and_o no_o other_o than_o according_a to_o his_o eternal_a decree_n they_o have_v give_v they_o in_o time_n by_o real_a believe_v but_o for_o hypocrite_n as_o magus_n they_o have_v no_o right_a ecclesiastic_a to_o the_o seal_n but_o a_o sort_n of_o active_a and_o permissive_a right_n by_o which_o they_o claim_v room_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o seal_n from_o the_o church_n therefore_o take_v the_o church_n visible_a as_o only_o visible_a as_o vvn_n from_o the_o invisible_a and_o real_o believe_v and_o as_o visibility_n be_v common_a to_o both_o peter_n and_o magus_n and_o their_o external_a profession_n obvious_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n so_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v no_o right_a that_o be_v true_a and_o real_a to_o the_o seal_n so_o i_o retort_v the_o argument_n upon_o mr._n h._n true_o real_a believer_n as_o peter_n and_o hypocrite_n as_o magus_n have_v hâmself_n either_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church-right_a to_o membership_n and_o seal_n or_o another_o and_o diverse_a the_o same_o right_n they_o can_v have_v 1._o because_o the_o right_n of_o true_o and_o real_o believe_v one_o be_v according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o election_n such_o as_o the_o lord_n ordain_v to_o be_v purchase_v to_o they_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o also_o according_a to_o the_o lord_n reveal_v will._n he_o who_o believe_v have_v right_a to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n and_o to_o membership_n and_o seal_n but_o this_o right_a magus_n and_o hypocrite_n have_v not_o for_o they_o have_v no_o part_n in_o christ._n 2._o the_o right_n that_o believer_n as_o peter_n and_o john_n have_v be_v by_o fulfil_v of_o the_o condition_n he_o who_o believe_v and_o love_v to_o be_v true_a reform_v have_v right_o to_o the_o covenant_n promise_n to_o perseverance_n to_o the_o anoint_v that_o teach_v all_o thing_n these_o be_v promise_v and_o decree_v to_o they_o jer._n 31._o 33_o 34._o &_o 32_o 38_o 39_o 40._o isa._n 54._o 10_o 11._o &_o 59_o 20_o 21._o compare_v with_o act_n 13._o 47_o 48._o joh._n 6._o 44_o 45_o 46._o &_o 6._o 37._o &_o 10._o 26_o 27._o and_o to_o they_o only_o not_o to_o magus_n and_o to_o reprobate_n 3._o magus_n and_o such_o like_a wooden_a and_o tree-leg_n may_v claim_v the_o same_o life_n live_v membership_n lively_a and_o vital_a operation_n and_o to_o have_v the_o anoint_v and_o to_o be_v keep_v through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 4._o and_o to_o have_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n put_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o god_n as_o jer._n 31._o 39_o 40._o if_o they_o have_v the_o same_o right_n to_o membership_n and_o the_o seal_n in_o their_o substance_n and_o grace_n signify_v with_o sound_a believer_n and_o this_o be_v most_o absurd_a if_o hypocritical_a professor_n have_v another_o external_a and_o ecclesiastical_a right_n then_o real_a believer_n upon_o these_o ground_n it_o must_v be_v a_o false_a and_o a_o bastard_n charter_n found_v upon_o a_o hypocritical_a profession_n let_v mr._n h._n show_v how_o the_o right_a of_o visible_a professor_n who_o be_v real_a believer_n and_o the_o right_n of_o paint_a and_o rot_a professor_n such_o as_o magus_n and_o the_o like_a have_v be_v one_o univocal_o and_o in_o nature_n the_o same_o right_n and_o yet_o mr._n h._n which_o darken_v the_o reader_n put_v they_o all_o in_o one_o and_o will_v have_v christ_n the_o same_o way_n to_o be_v king_n head_z survey_v pag._n 16._o redeemer_n who_o have_v buy_v with_o his_o blood_n
i_o shall_v not_o undertake_v to_o reconcile_v our_o brethren_n charity_n and_o their_o faith_n when_o the_o lord_n shall_v fulfil_v the_o prophecy_n isa._n 2._o &_o 19_o etc._n etc._n and_o what_o reason_n be_v there_o i_o pray_v you_o to_o say_v people_z be_v visible_o redeem_v but_o not_o visible_a visible_o choose_v to_o glory_n for_o the_o act_n of_o redeem_n be_v not_o christ_n visible_o die_v on_o the_o cross_n for_o that_o redemption_n material_a be_v visible_o to_o no_o generation_n before_o that_o crucify_a of_o christ_n or_o to_o we_o but_o it_o be_v the_o lay_v down_o of_o the_o ransom_n of_o that_o noble_a life_n for_o such_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o elect_n not_o one_o more_o not_o one_o few_o than_o be_v write_v in_o the_o lamb_n book_n of_o life_n i_o be_o of_o that_o opinion_n i_o hope_v with_o our_o brethren_n and_o this_o be_v as_o much_o hide_v and_o invisible_a to_o man_n until_o their_o godly_a walk_n make_v their_o redemption_n in_o its_o effect_n to_o be_v visible_a as_o their_o eternal_a election_n to_o glory_n therefore_o i_o much_o wonder_n of_o mr._n lockyer_n assert_v from_o act_n 15._o but_o i_o hope_v my_o reverend_a brother_n mr._n james_n wood_n have_v by_o this_o silence_a he_o for_o we_o look_v for_o only_a silence_n from_o he_o except_o some_o other_o lewd_a brotherly_a help_n that_o the_o proper_a and_o allow_a matter_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n now_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v person_n true_o convert_v such_o as_o god_n who_o know_v 7._o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n can_v bear_v witness_n of_o as_o indeed_o seal_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n i_o say_v this_o be_v the_o matter_n that_o we_o ought_v now_o to_o take_v to_o raise_v again_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o david_n and_o none_o other_o no_o not_o in_o a_o whole_a church_n as_o for_o that_o so_o far_o as_o very_o spiritual_a man_n can_v judge_v it_o be_v a_o dreadful_a addition_n to_o the_o word_n chap._n xviii_o answer_v to_o mr._n hooker_n argument_n that_o the_o invisible_a church_n be_v not_o the_o first_o subject_n of_o the_o seal_n me._n h._n ar._n 1._o if_o those_o who_o be_v graceless_a and_o have_v no_o 42._o interest_n in_o christ_n have_v yet_o a_o command_n from_o christ_n to_o receive_v the_o seal_n have_v warrant_n from_o his_o word_n to_o require_v they_o then_o they_o have_v a_o right_n outward_a and_o visible_a in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la to_o partake_v of_o they_o for_o there_o be_v no_o better_a right_n than_o god_n command_v to_o enjoin_v and_o his_o word_n to_o warrant_v we_o to_o challenge_v any_o privilege_n but_o many_o graceless_a who_o be_v no_o invisible_a member_n ishmael_n esau_n and_o all_o the_o male_n be_v enjoin_v to_o be_v circumcise_v and_o all_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n to_o eat_v the_o passover_n ans._n 1._o what_o be_v in_o question_n be_v not_o prove_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o privilege_n of_o special_a note_n in_o the_o mediator_n christ_n i._n e._n save_v privilege_n as_o mr._n r._n often_o teach_v pag._n 244_o 245._o belong_v condition_n not_o to_o the_o invisible_a church_n as_o to_o the_o proper_a and_o first_o subject_n but_o mr._n h._n prove_v that_o external_a sign_n and_o external_a right_n to_o the_o seal_n in_o foro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la be_v bestow_v upon_o rot_a member_n magus_n and_o other_o 2._o he_o ought_v to_o prove_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o only_a principal_a subject_n of_o the_o seal_n as_o he_o elsewhere_o assert_n but_o this_o argument_n prove_v it_o not_o 3._o he_o frame_v the_o argument_n of_o infant_n who_o have_v right_a to_o be_v circumcise_v who_o have_v no_o command_n of_o christ_n for_o infant_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o command_n or_o threaten_n and_o bring_v not_o instance_n of_o these_o come_v to_o age_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n 4._o a_o graceless_a man_n as_o magus_n have_v thus_o far_o right_a to_o demand_v the_o seal_n that_o he_o may_v say_v to_o the_o church_n you_o sin_n in_o withhold_v the_o seal_n and_o therefore_o i_o require_v you_o baptize_v i_o as_o christ_n have_v command_v you_o but_o he_o can_v say_v i_o have_v right_a even_o external_a to_o receive_v baptism_n and_o i_o sin_v not_o in_o receive_v it_o and_o mr._n h._n argument_n to_o prove_v it_o be_v naught_o why_o say_v he_o graceless_a man_n have_v the_o command_n of_o god_n to_o challenge_v the_o seal_n magus_n have_v the_o command_n of_o god_n to_o challenge_v and_o to_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n a_o command_n absolute_a he_o have_v none_o show_v i_o such_o a_o command_n magus_n judas_n eat_v and_o drink_v at_o the_o lord_n supper_n challenge_n claim_v and_o receive_v baptism_n all_o israel_n eat_v the_o passover_n be_v you_o real_a believer_n or_o hypocrite_n be_v you_o self-triers_a and_o prepare_v or_o not_o be_v you_o clean_o or_o unclean_a i_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o better_a right_n to_o challenge_v the_o seal_n than_o such_o a_o command_n if_o any_o such_o be_v but_o if_o mr._n h._n or_o any_o of_o his_o read_v such_o a_o command_n i_o pray_v i_o may_v see_v and_o read_v also_o but_o magus_n have_v only_o a_o conditional_a command_n which_o give_v he_o no_o true_a and_o real_a right_n save_v only_o conditional_o to_o wit_n magus_n receive_v the_o seal_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o thou_o believe_v and_o examine_v thyself_o if_o not_o thou_o have_v no_o right_n to_o the_o seal_n but_o eat_v and_o drink_v thy_o own_o damnation_n and_o because_o these_o graceless_a man_n fulfil_v not_o the_o condition_n and_o believe_v not_o mr._n h._n his_o argument_n be_v waââry_a they_o have_v right_a from_o the_o command_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o bââ¦_n right_o that_o be_v they_o have_v no_o right_n at_o all_o from_o a_o conditional_a command_n they_o not_o fulfil_v the_o condition_n but_o such_o right_a as_o robber_n have_v to_o the_o traveller_n purse_n yea_o they_o have_v no_o command_n of_o god_n but_o the_o contrary_a a_o severe_a discharge_n isa._n 1._o 13._o bring_v no_o more_o vain_a oblation_n matth._n 22._o 12._o friend_n how_o come_v thou_o in_o hither_o not_o have_v a_o wedding_n garment_n he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o est_fw-la eat_v and_o drink_v damnation_n to_o himself_o 1_o cor._n 11._o 29._o mr._n h._n p._n 42._o job_n and_o his_o godly_a friend_n be_v invisible_a member_n but_o be_v stranger_n they_o be_v forbid_v to_o eat_v the_o passover_n ergo_fw-la the_o seal_n belong_v not_o to_o invisible_a member_n ans._n 1._o the_o thing_n deny_v be_v not_o conclude_v job_n and_o his_o godly_a friend_n have_v the_o marrow_n of_o the_o seal_n and_o want_v some_o external_a sign_n which_o be_v not_o save_v privilege_n as_o i_o allege_v pag._n 244._o that_o job_n be_v not_o circumcise_v possible_o be_v say_v not_o prove_v by_o mr._n h._n 2._o my_o mind_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o visible_a act_n of_o eat_v drink_v be_v wash_v in_o baptism_n belong_v not_o to_o visible_a believer_n as_o visible_a take_v visible_a as_o coincident_a with_o real_a believer_n for_o invisible_a man_n can_v no_o more_o visible_o partake_v of_o ordinance_n than_o spirit_n can_v be_v baptize_v and_o eat_v the_o lord_n supper_n 3._o job_n and_o his_o godly_a friend_n be_v not_o forbid_v to_o be_v circumcise_v quintus_fw-la nor_o to_o sacrifice_v job_n sacrifice_v warrantable_o job_n 1._o c._n 42._o job_n profess_v he_o be_v visible_o in_o covenant_n job_n 13._o 16._o and_o 19_o 25._o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o so_o they_o be_v neither_o invisible_a member_n only_o nor_o debar_v from_o the_o seal_n nay_o proselyte_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o seal_n mr._n h._n ãâã_d 41._o if_o the_o invisible_a church_n be_v the_o first_o subject_n of_o the_o seal_n the_o invisible_a church_n must_v have_v the_o seal_v first_o and_o the_o visible_a church_n secondary_o as_o heat_n be_v first_o in_o the_o element_n of_o fire_n and_o secondary_o in_o thing_n hot_a by_o participation_n as_o iron_n ans._n it_o be_v no_o logic_n if_o the_o invisible_a and_o real_a believer_n for_o example_n peter_n be_v the_o first_o subject_n of_o the_o seal_n include_v christ_n signify_v in_o they_o then_o to_o receive_v the_o seal_n worthy_o agree_v first_o to_o peter_n and_o to_o invisible_a real_a believer_n and_o secondary_o to_o these_o same_o invisible_a believer_n as_o they_o do_v visible_o declare_v by_o their_o savoury_a conversation_n that_o they_o be_v real_o believer_n but_o there_o be_v no_o real_a transmigration_n of_o accident_n out_o of_o one_o subject_n to_o another_o etc._n that_o be_v cold_a logic_n but_o such_o real_a and_o internal_a right_n to_o the_o seal_n and_o to_o christ_n and_o his_o grace_n signify_v by_o the_o seal_n do_v neither_o first_o nor_o secondary_o belong_v to_o such_o visible_a saint_n as_o magus_n and_o judas_n yea_o
neither_o per_fw-la se_fw-la nor_o per_fw-la participationem_fw-la as_o the_o sun_n and_o star_n be_v neither_o hot_a nor_o cold_a either_o first_o or_o secondary_o for_o they_o be_v aristotle_n say_v corpora_fw-la quintae_fw-la essentiae_fw-la body_n of_o a_o five_o essence_n different_a from_o the_o element_n and_o all_o mix_a body_n mr._n h._n p._n 42_o 43._o the_o olive_n tree_n be_v the_o prime_a subject_n of_o the_o fatness_n that_o issue_v from_o it_o and_o appertain_v to_o it_o and_o of_o all_o the_o ordinance_n but_o the_o visible_a church_n rom._n 11._o be_v the_o olive_n the_o seal_n and_o other_o privilege_n be_v part_n of_o the_o fatness_n which_o pertain_v thereunto_o therefore_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o prime_a subject_n of_o they_o that_o the_o olive_n be_v the_o visible_a church_n see_v beza_n pareus_n willet_n ans._n 1._o will_n mr._n h._n bide_v by_o this_o conclusion_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n include_v rot_a magus_n traitorous_a judas_n be_v the_o prime_a subject_n of_o all_o save_a privilege_n of_o the_o new_a heart_n partake_v god_n inward_a heart-teaching_a perseverance_n &_o c_o then_o by_o his_o own_o argument_n magus_n and_o the_o visible_a body_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o graceless_a member_n as_o visible_a must_v be_v first_o qualify_v inherent_o with_o all_o these_o save_a privilege_n as_o heat_n be_v first_o say_v he_o in_o the_o fire_n and_o then_o justification_n perseverance_n in_o grace_n must_v be_v transfer_v from_o such_o a_o ugly_a body_n as_o magus_n judas_n etc._n etc._n to_o real_a and_o invisible_a believer_n 2._o the_o assumption_n be_v false_a read_v again_o calvin_n beza_n pareus_n add_v pet._n martyr_n the_o english_a note_n diodati_n they_o expound_v not_o the_o olive_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n only_o as_o contradistinguish_v from_o the_o invisible_a as_o mr._n h._n take_v the_o visible_a church_n in_o this_o dispute_n as_o it_o include_v the_o whole_a visible_a israel_n even_o idolater_n who_o slay_v the_o prophet_n and_o the_o heir_n but_o the_o church_n visible_a include_v the_o election_n rom._n 11._o 7._o and_o also_o the_o invisible_a and_o real_o justify_v and_o by_o fatness_n they_o mean_v not_o only_o external_a privilege_n which_o the_o rot_a hypocrite_n want_v not_o but_o the_o juice_n and_o sap_n of_o save_a grace_n by_o which_o say_v pet._n martyr_n they_o that_o be_v far_o off_o be_v make_v nigh_o ephes._n 2._o 12_o 14._o and_o be_v engraft_v in_o the_o head_n and_o body_n say_v pareus_n yea_o willet_n cit_v gorham_n and_o lyra_n who_o expound_v the_o fatness_n of_o habitual_a grace_n mr._n h._n let_v mr._n r._n remember_v he_o say_v lib._n 2._o pag._n 260._o none_o 45._o be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o for_o non-regeneration_n know_v to_o be_v such_o but_o if_o you_o give_v they_o the_o seal_n say_v mr._n h._n the_o church_n shall_v give_v the_o seal_n to_o such_o who_o she_o know_v have_v no_o right_n to_o they_o ans._n mr._n h._n himself_o be_v alike_o burden_a with_o this_o as_o i_o be_o a_o imagine_v toleration_n there_o must_v be_v of_o some_o until_o the_o scandal_n be_v examine_v and_o censure_v apply_v and_o the_o church_n know_v man_n to_o be_v unregenerate_v many_o day_n before_o they_o can_v know_v it_o juridicè_fw-la let_v mr._n h._n then_o answer_n whether_o they_o shall_v be_v debar_v from_o the_o seal_n or_o not_o 2._o if_o such_o be_v admit_v be_v free_a of_o scandal_n it_o follow_v not_o its_o a_o poor_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n that_o the_o church_n shall_v admit_v to_o the_o seal_v such_o as_o she_o know_v have_v no_o right_a why_o because_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n real_a convert_v that_o be_v non_fw-la causa_fw-la pro_fw-la causa_fw-la no_o cause_n mr._n h._n mr._n r._n put_v the_o formalis_fw-la ratio_fw-la the_o essential_a reason_n of_o office_n and_o officer_n in_o another_o subject_n beside_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o invisible_a catholic_n church_n convertible_o or_o reciprocal_o and_o universal_o whatsoever_o have_v these_o privilege_n to_o wit_n office_n officer_n seal_n right_a to_o the_o seal_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o invisible_a catholic_n church_n and_o only_o the_o invisible_a catholic_n church_n ergo_fw-la not_o the_o visible_a have_v all_o these_o privilege_n if_o mr._n r._n rid_v his_o hand_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v good_a ans._n mr._n h._n have_v two_o page_n near_o by_o of_o this_o of_o which_o whether_o say_v i_o have_v rid_v my_o hand_n let_v the_o judicious_a reader_n determine_v know_v reader_n that_o mr._n h._n will_v have_v all_o privilege_n external_a office_n officer_n seal_n and_o right_a ecclesiastic_a which_o be_v formal_o a_o paint_a bastard_n right_a in_o the_o visible_a church_n only_o as_o its_o first_o subject_n i_o rid_v my_o hand_n of_o this_o by_o grant_v it_o take_v the_o visible_a church_n in_o a_o good_a sense_n as_o include_v good_a and_o bad_a nor_o say_v i_o ever_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o contrary_n but_o these_o be_v not_o the_o save_a privilege_n of_o special_a note_n such_o as_o to_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n to_o persevere_v in_o save_v grace_n etc._n etc._n as_o i_o oft_o say_v p._n 244_o 245_o etc._n etc._n and_o though_o mr._n h._n his_o privilege_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n or_o another_o officer_n to_o have_v right_a external_a to_o the_o seal_n a_o bastard_n right_a agree_v to_o the_o visible_a church_n yea_o to_o judas_n and_o magus_n they_o being_n gratiae_fw-la gratis_o datae_fw-la yet_o save_v privilege_n the_o anoint_v the_o new_a heart_n justification_n perseverance_n the_o style_n of_o spouse_n sister_n love_n dove_n etc._n etc._n be_v such_o as_o i_o desire_v mr._n h._n to_o rid_v his_o hand_n and_o to_o clear_v the_o coast_n to_o we_o by_o his_o answer_n to_o my_o word_n due_a right_n par_fw-fr 1._o pag._n 244_o 245._o divers_a page_n how_o these_o agree_v reciprocal_o to_o his_o visible_a church_n i_o take_v but_o some_o few_o the_o single_a congregatinn_n of_o such_o as_o magus_n and_o peter_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o first_o and_o reciprocal_a and_o proper_a subject_n of_o the_o anoint_v of_o justification_n and_o perseverance_n and_o convertible_o all_o that_o have_v the_o anoint_v be_v justify_v persevere_v be_v only_o the_o single_a independent_a congregation_n of_o such_o as_o magus_n and_o peter_n etc._n etc._n what_o then_o will_v mr_n h._n do_v with_o his_o own_o that_o be_v both_o visible_o and_o invisible_o justify_v regenerate_v who_o by_o persecution_n or_o pestilence_n be_v break_v from_o the_o independent_a church_n shall_v they_o not_o share_v of_o the_o anoint_v because_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o single_a congregation_n this_o be_v hard_a measure_n to_o the_o godly_a and_o bad_a divinity_n this_o be_v not_o good_a logic_n that_o therefore_o mr._n r._n must_v show_v some_o other_o essential_a cause_n of_o office_n and_o officer_n beside_o the_o invisible_a church_n he_o must_v mean_v the_o visible_a church_n of_o which_o magus_n be_v a_o member_n i_o know_v in_o logic_n that_o the_o subject_n be_v a_o essential_a cause_n of_o a_o accident_n subjectum_fw-la sumitur_fw-la in_o dâfinitione_n per_fw-la additamentum_fw-la i_o learn_v long_o ago_o and_o for_o the_o close_a the_o society_n the_o save_a privilege_n of_o the_o new_a heart_n perseverance_n be_v the_o invisible_a church_n and_o all_o that_o have_v these_o the_o anoint_v perseverance_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o invisible_a mystical_a true_a church_n i_o own_o this_o reciprocation_n as_o new_a logic_n though_o let_v not_o the_o reader_n mistake_v i_o take_v invisible_a as_o oppose_v to_o visible_a in_o its_o latitude_n as_o it_o take_v in_o both_o believe_a peter_n and_o the_o hypocrite_n magus_n yet_o so_o as_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v so_o name_v to_o wit_n a_o true_a visible_a church_n from_o the_o choice_a part_n but_o not_o as_o invisible_a be_v oppose_v to_o visible_a tali_fw-la modo_fw-la both_o visible_a and_o sincere_a for_o the_o catholic_n church_n invisible_a be_v also_o the_o catholic_n church_n visible_a to_o wit_n tali_fw-la modo_fw-la in_o a_o sincere_a profession_n visible_a chap._n xix_o mr._n h._n his_o formal_a cause_n of_o a_o church_n visible_a or_o church_n confederate_v be_v consider_v mr._n h._n we_o have_v do_v with_o the_o material_a cause_n now_o we_o 46._o come_v to_o the_o formal_a cause_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o faithful_a whether_o they_o be_v seem_o or_o sincere_o such_o scatter_v up_o and_o down_o the_o earth_n be_v like_o stone_n in_o the_o street_n or_o timber_n in_o the_o field_n they_o may_v have_v a_o communion_n by_o faith_n by_o which_o they_o be_v a_o invisible_a body_n mystical_a but_o until_o they_o meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n and_o have_v 297._o right_a to_o all_o the_o ordinance_n there_o and_o be_v confederate_a by_o a_o church-covenant_n which_o give_v the_o formality_n to_o these_o church_n they_o be_v not_o visible_a
church_n member_n ans._n if_o the_o faithful_a scatter_v in_o sundry_a congregation_n have_v a_o invisible_a communion_n only_o by_o faith_n and_o so_o make_v up_o a_o invisible_a communion_n and_o a_o invisible_a mystical_a body_n then_o two_o wall_n sister-churche_n that_o can_v meet_v in_o one_o place_n though_o they_o may_v do_v all_o the_o duty_n of_o church-gaining_a one_o another_o as_o mat._n 18._o yet_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a body_n noâ_n their_o act_n act_n of_o church-profession_n not_o be_v they_o visible_a member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o partake_v noâ_n of_o the_o ordinance_n within_o the_o same_o wall_n as_o do_v member_n of_o the_o same_o single_a congregation_n so_o there_o be_v no_o visible_a communion_n but_o within_o the_o wall_n of_o one_o church_n which_o be_v absurd_a and_o repugnant_a to_o common_a sense_n 2._o it_o be_v uncharitable_a and_o against_o the_o word_n to_o teach_v that_o when_o a_o church_n be_v dissolve_v by_o no_o sin_n and_o scandal_n visible_a but_o by_o persecution_n or_o pestilence_n that_o the_o dissolve_a member_n though_o both_o real_a and_o visible_a convert_n have_v no_o right_n to_o the_o ordinance_n for_o if_o the_o formal_a cause_n to_o wit_n their_o confederacy_n into_o one_o visible_a body_n as_o mr._n h._n say_v be_v remove_v their_o visible_a and_o external_a right_n be_v remove_v the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o visible_a professor_n and_o of_o member_n of_o another_o congregation_n and_o know_v godly_a sojourner_n these_o mr._n h._n excommunicate_v for_o no_o scandal_n visible_a and_o invisible_a for_o impossible_a it_o be_v that_o they_o can_v meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n with_o their_o own_o church_n with_o which_o only_o they_o be_v incorporate_v by_o this_o confederacy_n mr._n h._n this_o confederate_n imply_v two_o 1._o the_o act_n of_o mutual_a engage_v which_o pass_v away_o arise_v from_o the_o act_n of_o obligation_n the_o state_n of_o membership_n the_o nature_n of_o incorporate_n member_n to_o mutual_a duty_n will_v constrain_v to_o yield_v to_o this_o ans._n 1._o a_o oath_n or_o covenant_n be_v no_o pass_v away_o thing_n as_o mr._n h._n say_v but_o leave_v the_o person_n under_o the_o tie_n 2._o the_o state_n of_o try_v these_o person_n and_o their_o seed_n to_o be_v baptize_v only_o into_o the_o single_a body_n be_v a_o dream_n even_o to_o mr._n robinson_n 317._o and_o the_o engagement_n that_o give_v they_o right_o to_o ordinance_n only_o with_o that_o single_a congregation_n and_o in_o one_o place_n and_o with_o no_o society_n else_o to_o partake_v of_o one_o bread_n and_o of_o one_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o be_v a_o scriptureless_a imagination_n for_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13._o we_o be_v baptize_v all_o jew_n and_o gentile_n by_o one_o spirit_n into_o one_o body_n catholic_n not_o a_o single_a congregation_n only_o and_o be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n even_o all_o not_o of_o one_o single_a congregation_n only_o but_o of_o several_a congregation_n whether_o they_o be_v engage_v mr._n hâ_n way_n or_o not_o mr._n h._n the_o judgement_n must_v be_v of_o person_n free_a in_o regard_n of_o humane_a constraint_n for_o they_o may_v join_v or_o not_o join_v to_o this_o congregation_n to_o receive_v they_o or_o not_o receive_v they_o 2._o it_o give_v power_n to_o each_o over_o another_o to_o watch_v over_o one_o another_o answ._n mr._n h._n make_v three_o property_n of_o this_o engagement_n but_o he_o be_v sharp-sighted_a who_o can_v difference_n the_o three_o from_o the_o first_o 2._o freedom_n from_o humane_a constraint_n iâ_n dubious_a if_o from_o the_o saint_n christian_a magistrate_n compel_v to_o elicit_v act_n of_o the_o will_n never_o man_n i_o think_v dream_v of_o such_o constraint_n as_o may_v be_v lay_v upon_o man_n to_o believe_v love_a fear_v if_o it_o be_v freedom_n from_o compel_v the_o external_a man_n to_o imperate_a act_n our_o divine_n say_v the_o magistrate_n may_v civil_o in_o his_o way_n compel_v to_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n the_o baptize_v one_o especial_o both_o to_o hear_v and_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n in_o some_o true_a church_n if_o it_o be_v freedom_n from_o a_o law_n of_o god_n or_o the_o church_n constraint_n as_o this_o it_o must_v be_v or_o then_o nothing_o be_v say_v 1._o god_n have_v command_v all_o to_o come_v to_o the_o house_n pro._n 1._o â0_n prov._n 9_o 1_o 2_o 3._o matth._n 22._o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o luk._n 14._o 16._o and_o that_o be_v a_o prophecy_n to_o be_v fulfil_v under_o the_o new_a testament_n zach._n 14._o 17._o and_o it_o shall_v be_v that_o who_o so_o will_v not_o come_v up_o of_o all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o earth_n unto_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_v the_o king_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n even_o upon_o they_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o rain_n the_o english_a note_n say_v it_o figure_v the_o elect_v gather_v together_o into_o a_o particular_a church_n to_o which_o every_o one_o must_v reduce_v himself_o to_o partake_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o they_o be_v also_o the_o word_n of_o diodati_n and_o calvin_n junius_n piscator_fw-la danaeus_n say_v the_o same_o in_o sense_n it_o be_v true_a preach_v to_o a_o particular_a church_n shall_v be_v voluntary_a but_o not_o by_o such_o a_o covenant_n and_o so_o all_o worship_n shall_v be_v and_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v lord_n thou_o command_v we_o to_o get_v we_o to_o the_o shepherd_n tent_n cant._n 1._o 7._o and_o to_o come_v into_o wisdom_n house_n but_o we_o have_v freedom_n to_o enter_v member_n to_o this_o or_o this_o or_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n 2._o and_o it_o be_v in_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n power_n to_o receive_v we_o or_o not_o which_o be_v also_o false_a one_o be_v bear_v baptize_v come_v to_o be_v a_o visible_a professor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o boston_n be_v not_o that_o providential_a necessity_n a_o ground_n to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o command_v he_o to_o do_v his_o duty_n and_o for_o the_o church_n to_o constrain_v he_o by_o obâestations_n censure_n be_v bear_v a_o member_n to_o partake_v of_o the_o ordinance_n as_o his_o duty_n be_v o_o but_o he_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o the_o ministry_n of_o boston_n but_o he_o have_v freedom_n to_o enter_v a_o member_n of_o a_o church_n a_o hundred_o mile_n distant_a by_o a_o new_a church-oath_n show_v a_o warrant_n why_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o worship_v the_o lord_n there_o where_o his_o call_v and_o trade_n be_v he_o must_v confess_v christ_n before_o man_n in_o all_o place_n it_o be_v not_o arbitrary_a then_o 3._o not_o one_o word_n of_o god_n be_v allege_v that_o this_o engagement_n congregation_n give_v power_n to_o watch_v over_o one_o another_o in_o this_o congregation_n only_o and_o not_o in_o all_o congregation_n where_o providence_n shall_v dispose_v he_o shall_v be_v as_o if_o all_o these_o church-duty_n to_o member_n of_o christ_n of_o warn_v one_o another_o comfort_v watch_v over_o one_o another_o take_v care_n for_o one_o another_o mourn_v with_o those_o that_o mourn_v col._n 3._o 16._o 1_o thess._n 5._o 5_o 11_o 14._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 26_o 27._o heb._n 10._o 24_o 25._o &_o 3._o 13._o rom._n 12._o 15._o be_v forbid_v as_o contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o order_n to_o all_o precious_a church-membes_a of_o other_o congregation_n of_o which_o we_o be_v not_o member_n mr._n h._n there_o be_v good_a cause_n why_o visible_a saint_n uâ_n supra_fw-la who_o be_v thus_o to_o engage_v to_o watch_v over_o one_o another_o shall_v be_v acquaint_v 47._o with_o each_o other_o fitness_n etc._n etc._n and_o because_o the_o work_n be_v weighty_a it_o will_v be_v do_v with_o fast_v and_o pray_v which_o be_v not_o requisite_a when_o one_o single_a member_n be_v admit_v ans._n that_o the_o thousand_o baptize_v of_o john_n baptist_n and_o the_o three_o thousand_o act_v 2._o who_o be_v to_o engage_v themselves_o that_o be_v before_o they_o be_v admit_v can_v have_v acquaintance_n and_o 48._o knowledge_n of_o the_o spiritual_a fitness_n one_o of_o another_o be_v impossible_a and_o not_o only_o want_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n but_o be_v express_o against_o it_o for_o it_o be_v impossible_a in_o some_o few_o hour_n to_o be_v do_v 2._o ten_o neighbour_a sister_n church_n lie_v together_o be_v oblige_v to_o watch_v over_o one_o another_o than_o they_o ought_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o come_v under_o the_o same_o engagement_n mr._n h._n a_o implicit_a covenant_n may_v be_v sufficient_a as_o suppose_v a_o congregation_n consist_v of_o the_o child_n of_o parent_n express_o confederate_a but_o vocal_a and_o express_a confederation_n come_v near_a to_o the_o rule_n mr._n r._n his_o bitter_a clamour_n that_o we_o make_v all_o
if_o these_o foreign_a church_n of_o which_o he_o be_v no_o member_n as_o mr._n h._n say_v may_v and_o do_v as_o well_o discern_v mr._n h._n his_o mark_n of_o a_o visible_a saint_n as_o his_o own_o church_n to_o wit_n after_o trade_v among_o they_o divers_a year_n to_o they_o he_o savour_v as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v with_o jesus_n p._n 14_o 15._o he_o abstain_v from_o all_o know_a sin_n p_o 24._o then_o have_v they_o as_o good_a right_n to_o tender_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o he_o as_o his_o own_o church_n and_o he_o may_v have_v a_o desire_n and_o the_o same_o right_a both_o real_a and_o visible_a that_o he_o have_v to_o the_o ordinance_n in_o his_o own_o congregation_n then_o as_o the_o eunuch_n say_v here_o be_v water_n so_o here_o be_v a_o âable_a and_o christ_n in_o eat_v what_o shall_v hinder_v he_o to_o eat_v be_v not_o christ_n walk_v beside_o the_o golden_a candlestick_n here_o as_o at_o home_n 4._o if_o providence_n necessitate_v he_o as_o he_o be_v chase_v by_o persecution_n to_o one_o city_n and_o be_v banish_v out_o of_o that_o that_o he_o must_v fly_v to_o another_o and_o from_o that_o to_o another_o and_o from_o that_o to_o a_o three_o and_o be_v providential_o necessitate_v to_o have_v no_o certain_a dwell_n as_o be_v abraham_n and_o the_o saint_n case_n heb._n 11._o 37_o 38._o 1_o cor._n 4._o 11._o so_o be_v christ_n case_n matth._n 8._o 20._o he_o must_v either_o live_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n all_o his_o life_n without_o church-ordinance_n or_o as_o he_o come_v to_o ten_o sundry_a church_n visible_a he_o must_v be_v ten_o time_n twenty_o time_n marry_v unto_o and_o divorce_v from_o the_o church_n have_v and_o lose_v church-right_a to_o a_o communion_n with_o christ_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o to_o the_o head_n christ_n and_o to_o all_o the_o edify_a comfort_n of_o church-ordinance_n chap._n xx._n the_o argument_n of_o mr._n h._n for_o a_o church-covenant_n consider_v and_o remove_v mr._n h._n every_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a incorporation_n receive_v 50._o its_o be_v from_o a_o spiritual_a combination_n so_o city_n and_o town_n have_v their_o charter_n grant_v they_o from_o king_n and_o state_n to_o meet_v for_o such_o end_n it_o be_v the_o cement_n that_o sodder_n all_o 2._o polish_v hew_a stone_n give_v not_o be_v to_o a_o house_n except_o they_o be_v conjoin_v etc._n etc._n but_o every_o particular_a church_n be_v a_o city_n heb._n 12._o 22._o a_o house_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o the_o body_n of_o christ_n eph._n 4._o 13_o 14._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 27_o 28._o and_o all_o these_o be_v particular_a visible_a church_n where_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n be_v set_v and_o member_n kâit_v together_o so_o mr._n r._n lib._n 2._o pag._n 302._o a_o church_n in_o a_o island_n be_v a_o little_a city_n a_o little_a kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ._n answ._n mr._n h._n in_o the_o title_n say_v 3._o the_o reason_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o conclude_v nothing_o for_o a_o covenant_n but_o only_o tell_v we_o saint_n be_v the_o matter_n like_o scatter_a stone_n union_n make_v the_o form_n but_o union_n be_v the_o result_n the_o covenant_n go_v before_o the_o proposition_n be_v every_o corporation_n receive_v its_o be_v from_o combination_n this_o shall_v prove_v no_o more_o but_o the_o congregation_n be_v a_o congregation_n from_o union_n of_o member_n this_o be_v no_o conclusion_n debate_v by_o we_o and_o prove_v as_o well_o that_o a_o national_a church_n a_o large_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o rev._n 11._o 15._o isa._n 2._o 2._o egypt_n and_o assyria_n be_v make_v the_o lord_n people_n visible_o considerated_a isa._n 19_o 25._o and_o that_o by_o one_o union_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n worship_n by_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n so_o profess_v yea_o the_o invisible_a catholic_a body_n the_o bride_n the_o lamb_n wife_n rev._n 21._o be_v a_o spiritual_a corporation_n by_o such_o a_o union_n 2._o the_o thing_n in_o question_n be_v never_o prove_v to_o wit_n that_o every_o single_a congregation_n be_v make_v a_o visible_a body_n within_o itself_o by_o such_o a_o covenant_n as_o the_o member_n be_v engage_v to_o watch_v over_o only_o one_o another_o of_o that_o society_n have_v a_o church_n right_n to_o ordinance_n word_n seal_n censure_n only_o with_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o society_n that_o meet_v within_o the_o wall_n in_o one_o house_n and_o with_o no_o other_o all_o the_o earth_n over_o 3._o the_o comparison_n of_o a_o city_n to_o a_o state_n hold_v not_o see_v mr._n cawdry_n city_n 1._o have_v different_a charter_n and_o privilege_n in_o 107._o measure_n trade_v sell_v 2._o different_a public_a rent_n burrough-land_n 3._o different_a government_n some_o by_o major_n and_o alderman_n as_o royal_a burgh_n some_o far_o otherwise_o and_o so_o 4._o free_a citizen_n in_o london_n not_o free_a citizen_n in_o york_n and_o here_o be_v some_o specifical_a difference_n as_o it_o be_v in_o law_n and_o freedom_n but_o it_o be_v a_o poor_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n without_o probation_n to_o say_v that_o single_a congregation_n have_v these_o four_o difference_n for_o all_o congregation_n visible_a have_v 1._o the_o same_o charter_n the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n one_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n 2_o one_o inheritance_n and_o hope_n of_o glory_n eph._n 4._o 3._o one_o and_o the_o same_o visible_a head_n christ._n 4._o the_o same_o baptism_n and_o be_v all_o visible_a brethren_n and_o member_n have_v the_o same_o right_n to_o the_o seal_v all_o the_o world_n over_o without_o any_o new_a church_n covenant_n phoebe_n justus_n epaphroditus_n rom._n 15._o 1._o col._n 4._o 10._o eph._n 6._o 21._o be_v brethren_n visible_a professor_n the_o distinction_n of_o salute_v brethren_n and_o of_o church-brethren_n must_v not_o be_v take_v up_o on_o our_o brethren_n word_n have_v right_o by_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n to_o seal_n as_o 10._o mr._n cotton_n teach_v now_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n as_o i_o prove_v and_o mr._n h._n never_o let_n on_o he_o that_o he_o do_v read_v it_o yea_o nor_o do_v man_n or_o angel_n give_v but_o only_o declare_v right_a that_o brethren_n pastor_n have_v before_o in_o all_o church_n to_o baptism_n to_o partake_v of_o the_o seal_n otherwise_o they_o can_v eat_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o another_o congregation_n contrary_a to_o both_o the_o truth_n and_o mr._n cotton_n and_o the_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o n._n e._n except_o they_o swear_v or_o engage_v themselves_o member_n to_o all_o the_o church_n about_o where_o they_o shall_v and_o ought_v occasional_o to_o receive_v the_o seal_n and_o partake_v of_o church-comfort_n but_o this_o mr._n h._n flat_o contradict_v let_v they_o agree_v among_o themselves_o now_o such_o a_o engage_v be_v a_o bind_n of_o themselves_o to_o impossibility_n that_o they_o shall_v discharge_v duty_n of_o watch_v over_o all_o as_o over_o their_o door-neighbour_n of_o the_o same_o flock_n be_v unpossible_a and_o so_o unlawful_a no_o authority_n on_o earth_n can_v take_v say_v or_o the_o holy_a and_o blameless_a visible_a profession_n thereof_o from_o a_o visible_a professor_n and_o to_o whatever_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o come_v or_o ordinance_n of_o ministerial_o preach_v promise_n they_o be_v his_o by_o his_o faith_n visible_o profess_v mr._n h._n must_v show_v one_o inhibition_n of_o christ_n to_o debar_v any_o visible_a son_n from_o the_o father_n bread_n if_o then_o the_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o civil_a corporation_n as_o they_o cry_v out_o against_o this_o argument_n in_o we_o for_o provincial_a and_o national_a church_n it_o must_v be_v this_o as_o every_o incomplete_a corporation_n or_o lane_n in_o london_n consent_v to_o receive_v such_o a_o man_n a_o inhabitant_n and_o member_n of_o that_o lane_n do_v not_o make_v the_o man_n so_o receive_v a_o free_a citizen_n of_o london_n for_o that_o he_o be_v before_o they_o receive_v he_o when_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o another_o lane_n and_o every_o city_n admit_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o free_a citizen_n of_o london_n do_v not_o make_v he_o a_o subject_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n for_o that_o he_o be_v before_o he_o be_v a_o citizen_n so_o neither_o do_v every_o single_a church_n receive_v a_o member_n make_v he_o for_o that_o a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n for_o 1._o he_o be_v before_o we_o suppose_v baptize_v and_o both_o a_o real_a and_o a_o visible_a saint_n and_o have_v church_n right_a to_o partake_v electi_fw-la of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o bread_n not_o as_o a_o seal_n of_o our_o communion_n with_o the_o member_n of_o his_o own_o church_n only_o but_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n say_v the_o church_n of_o n._n e._n the_o argument_n be_v not_o unlike_o this_o whatever_o constitute_v socrates_n a_o single_a
he_o owe_v to_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o he_o depart_v as_o now_o be_v no_o fix_a member_n thereof_o mr._n h._n 4_o arg._n that_o society_n of_o man_n who_o may_v enjoy_v such_o privilege_n spiritual_a into_o which_o none_o be_v admit_v without_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a that_o society_n must_v be_v in_o a_o special_a combination_n for_o such_o a_o act_n argue_v a_o combine_a power_n which_o the_o whole_a have_v and_o not_o any_o member_n alone_o and_o that_o they_o can_v have_v but_o by_o their_o agreement_n but_o the_o congregation_n be_v such_o they_o who_o have_v power_n to_o choose_v have_v power_n to_o reject_v their_o officer_n who_o offer_v themselves_o to_o be_v member_n ans._n if_o none_o may_v be_v admit_v without_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n then_o may_v no_o visible_a saint_n member_n of_o sister_n visible_a church_n be_v admit_v to_o church-ordinance_n pastoral_a hear_v seal_n rebuke_n comfort_n prayer_n in_o a_o churchway_n but_o by_o some_o covenant_n one_o or_o other_o make_v between_o the_o church_n and_o these_o stranger_n that_o come_v to_o partake_v let_v scripture_n speak_v if_o communion_n of_o saint_n be_v not_o here_o enough_o 2._o this_o fall_v from_o a_o sleep_a pen_n and_o what_o the_o conclusion_n be_v who_o can_v tell_v it_o be_v far_o from_o the_o question_n for_o the_o conclusion_n be_v ergo_fw-la the_o member_n of_o the_o congregation_n be_v combine_v why_o not_o valeat_fw-la totum_fw-la and_o the_o whole_a church_n must_v admit_v the_o communicants_a the_o many_o thousand_o then_o ten_o or_o twelve_o thousand_o of_o jerusalem_n must_v all_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o visible_a saintship_n of_o each_o other_o yea_o woman_n who_o have_v take_v the_o church-covenant_n as_o well_o as_o man_n then_o can_v none_o hear_v nor_o partake_v of_o church-prayer_n and_o seal_n in_o another_o congregation_n without_o the_o privity_n and_o conscience_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o member_n suppose_v they_o be_v ten_o thousand_o and_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a now_o woman_n be_v confederate_a member_n as_o well_o as_o man_n mr._n h._n arg._n 5._o christian_n affection_n make_v not_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v in_o such_o as_o never_o see_v other_o ans._n it_o prove_v nothing_o they_o may_v be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a catholic_n church_n who_o never_o see_v one_o another_o in_o the_o face_n 15._o prov._n 11._o 15._o isa._n 2._o 1_o 2._o &_o 19_o 25._o psa._n 22._o 27_o etc._n etc._n 2._o cohabitation_n say_v mr._n h._n and_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n 55._o make_v not_o a_o church_n for_o turk_n may_v meet_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n 1_o cor._n 14._o ergo_fw-la covenant_v must_v be_v the_o formal_a of_o a_o church_n ans._n 1._o divers_a other_o thing_n be_v require_v to_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v 2._o all_o be_v beside_o the_o question_n we_o dispute_v not_o now_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o congregation_n chap._n xxi_o whether_o mr._n hooker_n do_v prove_v this_o conclusion_n which_o mr._n r._n never_o say_v nor_o write_v nor_o think_v that_o baptism_n give_v formality_n or_o make_v a_o member_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n mr._n h._n if_o there_o be_v a_o church_n and_o so_o member_n before_o baptism_n 55._o than_o baptism_n can_v give_v formality_n for_o forma_fw-la be_v causal_n and_o before_o formatum_fw-la but_o the_o church_n now_o consider_v as_o totum_fw-la essentiale_fw-la be_v before_o baptism_n for_o minister_n be_v before_o baptism_n else_o baptism_n may_v be_v administer_v lawful_o before_o by_o such_o as_o be_v not_o ruler_n nor_o pastor_n which_o be_v deny_v by_o orthodox_n divine_n and_o none_o can_v give_v a_o call_n to_o minister_n but_o only_o a_o church_n of_o believer_n membership_n ans._n it_o be_v a_o conclusion_n not_o ingenuous_o forge_v as_o if_o i_o make_v baptism_n the_o specific_a form_n of_o membership_n visible_a he_o ought_v to_o have_v cite_v my_o word_n by_o baptism_n i_o say_v we_o be_v receive_v solemn_o into_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o baptism_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o our_o entry_n into_o christ_n visible_a body_n as_o swear_v to_o the_o colour_n enter_v a_o soldier_n a_o member_n to_o the_o army_n and_o we_o teach_v not_o that_o baptism_n constitute_v the_o church_n visible_a simple_o as_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o a_o visible_a profession_n i_o distinguish_v the_o simple_a be_v of_o a_o visible_a member_n actu_fw-la primo_fw-la such_o be_v infant_n bear_v within_o the_o covenant_n visible_o make_v to_o parent_n the_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o church-member_n gen._n 17._o 7._o act_n 2._o 39_o from_o the_o solemn_a entry_n and_o admission_n into_o the_o visible_a church_n 2._o i_o distinguish_v between_o simple_a be_v of_o a_o member_n and_o actual_a solemn_a communion_n or_o visible_a profession_n so_o speak_v the_o renown_a loco_fw-la assembly_n so_o calvin_n bucan_n tilen_v professor_n of_o leyden_n beza_n ursine_n trâlâatius_n pet._n martyr_n junius_n pareus_n waleus_n it_o be_v a_o seal_n for_o our_o solemn_a admission_n and_o solemn_a engraff_n and_o adopt_v into_o the_o visible_a church_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o for_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n etc._n etc._n 1._o the_o conclusion_n be_v fancy_v and_o nothing_o against_o i_o who_o teach_v that_o baptism_n be_v the_o door_n way_n and_o mean_n of_o our_o solemn_a installing_n into_o actual_a communion_n with_o the_o visible_a teach_n ministerial_a church_n which_o arminian_n and_o socinian_o deny_v ergo_fw-la must_v baptism_n be_v before_o the_o minister_n 2._o this_o fancy_a homogeneous_a church_n visible_a of_o only_a believer_n can_v be_v no_o politic_a church_n and_o that_o in_o ordinary_a to_o christ_n second_o come_v which_o call_v minister_n for_o minister_n do_v baptize_v this_o church_n then_o must_v the_o effect_n to_o wit_n call_v minister_n be_v before_o and_o that_o ordinary_o the_o create_a cause_n to_o wit_n the_o church_n of_o believer_n who_o make_v they_o minister_n a_o dream_n if_o this_o homogeneous_a church_n be_v a_o number_n of_o unbaptised_a believer_n and_o such_o pagan_n they_o must_v be_v for_o mr._n h._n say_v they_o be_v a_o bear_a church_n before_o their_o father_n baptizer_n then_o must_v unbaptise_v child_n a_o strange_a church_n call_v and_o give_v ministerial_a be_v and_o that_o ordinary_o to_o their_o father_n and_o choose_v out_o of_o their_o own_o unbaptised_a body_n their_o own_o pastor_n not_o yet_o baptize_v and_o who_o baptize_v these_o unbaptise_v not_o the_o unbaptised_a church_n nor_o themselves_o mr._n h._n i_o judge_v will_v deny_v both_o 3._o as_o to_o that_o whether_o the_o church_n or_o the_o ministry_n be_v first_o it_o be_v sure_a adam_n and_o evah_n as_o man_n be_v before_o the_o word_n if_o believer_n any_o say_v they_o be_v create_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n be_v create_v a_o church_n yet_o some_o priority_n there_o be_v of_o the_o subject_n before_o the_o concreated_a law_n but_o sure_o they_o be_v not_o create_v a_o visible_o profess_v church_n and_o therefore_o the_o word_n as_o preach_v in_o paradise_n by_o the_o lord_n the_o first_o minister_n gen._n 3._o 15_o 16._o must_v be_v before_o adam_n and_o evah_n as_o a_o visible_o profess_v church_n for_o the_o seed_n be_v before_o the_o tree_n the_o mean_n before_o the_o end_n the_o father_n before_o the_o child_n and_o so_o some_o ministry_n ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a beget_n there_o must_v be_v before_o the_o church_n beget_v who_o baptize_v john_n baptist_n or_o if_o he_o be_v at_o all_o baptize_v be_v not_o much_o but_o that_o the_o church_n in_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o christ_n be_v before_o the_o baptise_v and_o beget_v ministry_n be_v wild_a divinity_n mr._n h._n if_o baptism_n can_v be_v before_o a_o ministerial_a church_n nor_o 56_o a_o ministerial_a church_n before_o a_o congregational_a church_n which_o only_o can_v call_v they_o to_o be_v minister_n then_o such_o a_o church_n be_v much_o more_o before_o baptism_n for_o before_o the_o come_n of_o some_o godly_a zealous_a christian_n and_o scholar_n into_o a_o country_n where_o there_o be_v a_o company_n of_o pagan_n convert_v they_o may_v join_v in_o church-fellowship_n and_o call_v this_o man_n lawful_o according_a to_o god_n to_o be_v their_o minister_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o church_n before_o a_o minister_n and_o so_o before_o baptism_n ans._n 1._o mr._n h._n give_v a_o extraordinary_a instance_n of_o his_o own_o devise_v without_o scripture_n and_o of_o this_o he_o frame_v a_o fix_v ordinary_a rule_n may_v not_o convert_v pagan_n which_o only_o say_v he_o can_v call_v minister_n call_v this_o christian_a scholar_n to_o be_v their_o minister_n according_a to_o god_n no_o say_v we_o 1._o god_n never_o do_v it_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o scripture-proof_n for_o it_o 2._o why_o do_v mr._n h._n frame_v
and_o socinian_o sign_n who_o deny_v the_o seal_n to_o be_v exhibitive_a sign_n and_o make_v they_o mere_a sign_n but_o seal_v use_v in_o faith_n both_o confirm_v the_o former_a grace_n and_o add_v increase_n of_o grace_n baptism_n seal_v that_o union_n with_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o be_v actu_fw-la primo_fw-la in_o infant_n be_v bear_v federal_o holy_a rom._n 11._o 16._o 1_o cor._n 7._o 14._o and_o be_v a_o way_n and_o mean_n of_o one_o more_o solemn_a installing_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o key_n of_o a_o castle_n both_o confirm_v the_o covenant_n of_o the_o prince_n give_v of_o the_o castle_n to_o the_o receiver_n and_o do_v more_o solemn_o authorise_v the_o man_n as_o captain_n of_o the_o castle_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o press-money_n receive_v by_o the_o soldier_n who_o before_o have_v give_v up_o his_o name_n to_o the_o captain_n and_o that_o by_o covenant_n mr._n h._n the_o church_n be_v visible_a when_o there_o be_v no_o seal_n neither_o 5._o circumcision_n nor_o baptism_n therefore_o these_o do_v not_o constitute_v it_o nor_o any_o member_n thereof_o gen._n 17_o 10_o 11._o ans._n 1._o these_o five_o argument_n mr._n h._n borrow_a from_o the_o be_v brethren_n but_o weaken_v they_o by_o a_o unjust_a conclusion_n which_o i_o own_v not_o nor_o any_o of_o our_o brethren_n this_o argument_n also_o be_v apt_a to_o destroy_v all_o the_o seal_n for_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o visible_a regenerate_a person_n and_o of_o such_o as_o by_o faith_n see_v christ_n day_n in_o abraham_n house_n gen._n 12._o and_o as_o yet_o neither_o be_v there_o circumcision_n nor_o passeover_n nor_o baptism_n will_v it_o hence_o follow_v that_o baptism_n be_v essential_o no_o seal_n of_o regeneration_n nor_o of_o any_o covenant_n or_o covenant-grace_n because_o covenant_n covenant-grace_n visible_a membership_n and_o all_o these_o be_v before_o either_o circumcision_n or_o baptism_n but_o sacred_a sign_n be_v seal_n of_o grace_n and_o privilege_n go_v before_o these_o sign_n both_o in_o time_n and_o nature_n circumcision_n so_o shall_v essential_o be_v no_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n nor_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n contrary_a to_o gen._n 17._o 7._o rom._n 3._o 11._o for_o there_o be_v a_o people_n visible_o in_o covenant_n and_o abraham_n be_v righteous_a before_o that_o circumcision_n be_v institute_v but_o nothing_o follow_v but_o only_a baptism_n do_v not_o seal_v our_o union_n with_o christ_n and_o solemn_a entry_n into_o his_o church-visible_a until_o the_o lord_n institute_v water_n and_o sprinkle_v therewith_o and_o stamp_v they_o by_o his_o divine_a authority_n to_o seal_v these_o grace_n and_o privilege_n chap._n xxii_o whether_o profession_n make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a so_o mr._n h._n pag._n 60._o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o question_n church-right_a to_o membership_n and_o to_o ordinance_n and_o seal_n must_v be_v consider_v 1._o as_o it_o be_v in_o and_o refer_v to_o the_o professor_n himself_o and_o then_o not_o the_o question_n be_v upon_o what_o ground_n may_v the_o man_n himself_o challenge_v a_o room_n in_o the_o visible_a house_n and_o the_o seal_n now_o profession_n as_o profession_n be_v not_o a_o ground_n for_o then_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v formal_o make_v a_o visible_a member_n and_o be_v feed_v as_o one_o of_o the_o flock_n and_o be_v external_o call_v which_o be_v finaliter_fw-la and_o in_o themselves_o save_v mercy_n because_o he_o profess_v his_o desire_n to_o be_v feed_v and_o to_o have_v the_o gospel_n send_v unto_o he_o but_o 1._o there_o be_v no_o such_o word_n nor_o promise_n do_v this_o and_o profess_v so_o and_o so_o and_o you_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o visible_a member_n 2._o to_o have_v right_a true_a and_o real_a to_o membership_n and_o to_o ordinance_n be_v to_o be_v call_v of_o god_n in_o a_o churchway_n from_o sin_n to_o grace_n and_o glory_n so_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o church-visible_a memââ¦_n and_o the_o visible_o call_v be_v the_o same_o almost_o now_o no_o man_n have_v right_a true_a and_o real_a to_o membership_n and_o seal_n and_o to_o be_v call_v of_o a_o god_n in_o a_o churchway_n by_o the_o preach_v gospel_n because_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v call_v but_o the_o whole_a right_n and_o ground_n here_o be_v the_o lord_n free_a grace_n send_v the_o gospel_n to_o who_o he_o will_v deut._n 7._o 7._o deut._n 10._o 14_o 15._o psal._n 147._o 10_o 29._o act_n 16._o 6_o 9_o 10._o act_n 18._o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o nor_o have_v it_o a_o shadow_n of_o right_n in_o scripture_n that_o macedonia_n and_o corinth_n have_v church-right_a to_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o be_v a_o church_n and_o to_o be_v the_o call_v of_o god_n rather_o than_o other_o people_n bythinia_n especial_o at_o this_o time_n because_o so_o corinth_n shall_v profess_v the_o gospel_n before_o ever_o they_o hear_v the_o gospel_n but_o here_o the_o lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o who_o he_o will_n but_o 3._o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v come_v to_o a_o people_n if_o the_o question_n be_v what_o give_v to_o this_o man_n not_o to_o this_o man_n true_a real_a right_n to_o membership_n and_o ordinance_n and_o seal_n so_o as_o he_o may_v claim_v they_o before_o god_n and_o not_o sin_n the_o meritorious_a right_n be_v christ_n death_n the_o condition_n upon_o his_o part_n be_v faith_n hence_o visible_a profession_n as_o such_o can_v give_v right_o for_o than_o may_v magus_n say_v i_o have_v right_a to_o a_o room_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o to_o baptism_n because_o i_o be_o a_o visible_a saint_n for_o that_o be_v a_o untruth_n 1._o if_o god_n forbid_v hypocrisy_n and_o take_v a_o room_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o take_v the_o covenant_n in_o the_o mouth_n and_o receive_v the_o seal_n when_o the_o party_n hate_v to_o be_v reform_v and_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o then_o can_v profession_n as_o profession_n give_v a_o man_n right_n true_a and_o real_a to_o room_n in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o seal_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a ps._n 50._o 16_o 17_o 18._o isa._n 1._o 12_o 13._o matth_n 22._o 12._o matth._n 13._o 7._o 2._o profession_n be_v in_o order_n to_o the_o ruler_n and_o member_n of_o the_o believe_v church_n which_o have_v hand_n according_a to_o their_o place_n either_o formal_a or_o tacit_n consent_n to_o receive_v in_o member_n here_o especial_o to_o be_v consider_v and_o here_o our_o brethren_n mistake_v the_o question_n for_o when_o the_o question_n be_v what_o profession_n be_v require_v in_o such_o as_o the_o ruler_n may_v without_o sin_n admit_v to_o membership_n and_o ordinance_n we_o say_v a_o profession_n moral_o true_a not_o real_a conversion_n judge_v to_o be_v real_a by_o man_n now_o this_o confession_n or_o profession_n doâh_v not_o make_v a_o church-member_n but_o declare_v a_o church-member_n and_o it_o only_o declare_v he_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o ruler_n that_o they_o sin_v not_o in_o admit_v such_o but_o declare_v he_o neither_o to_o have_v right_a before_o god_n nor_o to_o his_o own_o conscience_n yea_o for_o all_o this_o profession_n magus_n sin_v in_o be_v baptize_v magus_n usurp_v and_o have_v no_o true_a and_o real_a right_n no_o not_o ecclesiastic_a except_o in_o a_o most_o unproper_a sense_n the_o church_n have_v right_a and_o command_v to_o receive_v he_o to_o membership_n and_o seal_n but_o he_o sin_n in_o occupy_v room_n in_o the_o house_n and_o receive_v seal_n have_v no_o true_a right_n to_o membership_n and_o seal_n it_o be_v scarce_o excusable_a but_o it_o be_v among_o that_o godly_a man_n error_n that_o mr._n h._n say_v graceless_a man_n as_o ishmael_n and_o esau_n have_v the_o best_a right_n that_o can_v be_v to_o ordinance_n to_o wit_n the_o command_n of_o god_n but_o ah_o magus_n and_o such_o comedian_n have_v no_o command_n to_o receive_v the_o seal_n but_o conditional_a command_n if_o they_o believe_v which_o they_o never_o do_v i_o return_v to_o mr._n h._n mr._n h._n profession_n most_o frequent_o be_v a_o public_a acknowledgement_n to_o the_o truth_n deliver_v in_o the_o word_n and_o our_o resolution_n to_o persist_v in_o the_o maintenance_n thereof_o so_o it_o be_v use_v by_o distinction_n from_o practice_n for_o a_o excommunicate_a person_n may_v so_o profess_v yet_o it_o give_v no_o formality_n to_o membership_n 2._o profession_n be_v large_a and_o include_v a_o suitable-carriage_n void_a of_o scandalous_a course_n 3._o as_o it_o must_v not_o be_v too_o narrow_a so_o it_o must_v not_o be_v too_o bââad_a though_o one_o hold_v some_o error_n out_o of_o infirmity_n as_o justification_n by_o passive_a obedience_n only_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o he_o may_v profess_v the_o faith_n save_o ans._n here_o be_v three_o notation_n of_o
the_o word_n no_o scripture_n for_o h._n any_o one_o of_o they_o the_o fiâst_n be_v most_o frequent_a say_v he_o and_o include_v a_o resolution_n to_o maintain_v but_o resolution_n as_o such_o be_v a_o secret_a heart_n purpose_n and_o profession_n must_v be_v visible_a 2._o profession_n say_v he_o be_v yet_o large_a and_o include_v a_o suitable_a carriage_n of_o life_n say_v strict_a the_o species_n be_v not_o large_a than_o the_o genus_fw-la or_o that_o which_o be_v as_o genus_fw-la man_n be_v not_o large_a than_o animal_n a_o live_a creature_n 3._o profession_n with_o some_o error_n shall_v have_v be_v more_o wary_o deliver_v leave_v it_o set_v up_o toleration_n the_o ruin_n of_o the_o one_o true_a religion_n 1._o profession_n in_o scripture_n be_v rare_o distinguish_v from_o practice_n when_o it_o be_v difference_v from_o it_o then_o it_o be_v condemn_v 1_o tit._n 1._o 16._o they_o profess_v they_o know_v god_n but_o in_o work_n they_o deny_v 20._o he_o jam._n 2._o 14._o what_o do_v it_o profit_n if_o a_o man_n say_v he_o have_v faith_n &_o c_o for_o 1_o tim._n 6._o 13._o &_o 2._o 10._o heb._n 3._o 1._o &_o 4._o 14._o &_o 10_o 23._o matth._n 16._o 17._o &_o 10._o 32._o it_o include_v a_o holy_a practice_n now_o mr._n h._n say_v the_o pinch_n of_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o such_o as_o walk_v in_o a_o way_n of_o profaneness_n though_o otherwise_o profess_v and_o practise_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v allowance_n from_o christ_n or_o may_v be_v count_v fit_a matter_n according_a to_o the_o term_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o sure_a this_o be_v a_o pinch_n of_o a_o question_n make_v of_o contradiction_n whether_o one_o walk_v in_o a_o way_n of_o profaneness_n and_o yet_o not_o walk_v in_o a_o way_n of_o profaneness_n but_o profess_v and_o practise_v the_o thing_n h._n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v allowance_n to_o be_v the_o fit_a matter_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n a_o strange_a pinch_n 2._o mr._n h._n take_v allowance_n from_o christ_n by_o his_o command_n to_o be_v all_o one_o with_o be_v account_v fit_a matter_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n by_o the_o ruler_n for_o the_o account_n must_v be_v of_o man_n and_o the_o allowance_n of_o they_o as_o fit_a matter_n must_v be_v of_o christ._n but_o the_o truth_n be_v there_o be_v no_o pinch_n of_o a_o question_n who_o aâe_v they_o that_o be_v fit_a matter_n of_o themselves_o in_o se_fw-la &_o inââinsece_n who_o have_v due_a right_n to_o ordinance_n seal_n we_o say_v only_o sincere_a real_a professor_n but_o the_o question_n be_v who_o be_v fit_a matter_n have_v right_o to_o ordinance_n in_o the_o account_n of_o ruler_n and_o the_o church_n whether_o they_o have_v true_a right_n or_o not_o 3._o allowance_n from_o christ_n be_v ambiguous_a for_o if_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o ruler_n as_o mr._n h._n seem_v to_o take_v they_o both_o for_o one_o then_o the_o question_n must_v be_v whether_o christ_n allow_v and_o command_v ruler_n to_o admit_v such_o as_o walk_v in_o a_o way_n of_o profaneness_n that_o be_v visible_a hypocrite_n to_o be_v fit_a matter_n have_v right_o to_o the_o holy_a thing_n of_o god_n that_o be_v never_o a_o question_n to_o either_o side_n whether_o christ_n command_v to_o cast_v pearl_n to_o know_a swine_n or_o the_o allowance_n or_o command_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o so_o walker_n then_o the_o question_n be_v as_o blasphemous_a to_o wit_n whether_o do_v christ_n allow_v and_o command_v man_n to_o be_v gross_a hypocrite_n and_o to_o take_v his_o covenant_n in_o their_o mouth_n though_o they_o hate_v to_o be_v reform_v mr._n h._n profession_n conceive_v according_a to_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o âârmân_a 61._o explication_n add_v a_o causal_a power_n with_o baptism_n too_o do_v make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o a_o member_n of_o all_o congregation_n in_o all_o the_o earth_n the_o expression_n of_o mr._n r._n load_v i_o thus_o to_o conceive_v his_o meaning_n as._n then_o mr._n h._n grant_v that_o his_o own_o conception_n not_o my_o word_n for_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v cite_v they_o lead_v he_o 2._o i_o own_v no_o such_o explication_n of_o mr._n h._n as_o i_o have_v show_v mr._n h._n profession_n lawful_a of_o the_o whole_a truth_n hinder_v man_n 92._o bership_n as_o suppose_v one_o believe_v mistake_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n be_v ill_o gather_v he_o dare_v not_o be_v baptize_v and_o make_v a_o church-member_n if_o therefore_o profession_n hinder_v membership_n as_o this_o do_v then_o be_v can_v constitute_v membership_n answ._n i_o retort_v this_o argument_n forbear_v of_o all_o know_a membership_n sin_n and_o practice_v of_o know_a duty_n can_v constitute_v membership_n as_o mr._n h._n say_v for_o suppose_v one_o to_o be_v admit_v a_o church_n member_n in_o a_o wicked_a mistake_n fall_v in_o a_o act_n of_o adultery_n and_o to_o cover_v that_o in_o a_o know_a act_n of_o murder_n then_o can_v practice_v more_o than_o profession_n constitute_v this_o visible_a saint_n a_o member_n for_o that_o which_o oppose_v and_o hinder_v baptise_v and_o so_o kinder_n the_o formality_n of_o membership_n that_o do_v not_o help_v forward_o membership_n so_o mr._n h._n but_o such_o a_o practice_n blemish_v with_o adultery_n and_o murder_n hinder_v both_o one_o to_o be_v baptize_v and_o to_o be_v make_v a_o member_n for_o this_o practice_n will_v cast_v a_o man_n out_o ergo_fw-la it_o shall_v hinder_v he_o to_o be_v admit_v a_o member_n so_o also_o mr._n h._n ibid._n arg._n 2._o pag._n 92._o so_o here_o a_o erroneous_a profession_n of_o a_o seeker_n deny_v either_o baptism_n lawful_a ministry_n or_o right_a church_n to_o be_v on_o earth_n until_o the_o apostle_n arise_v again_o constitute_v not_o membership_n but_o hinder_v it_o ergo_fw-la a_o sound_a profession_n give_v not_o formality_n of_o membership_n it_o follow_v not_o though_o mr._n h._n conclude_v nothing_o against_o i_o mr._n h._n that_o which_o give_v membership_n to_o a_o party_n who_o have_v it_o 2._o not_o before_o that_o can_v restore_v membership_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v it_o but_o this_o can_v restore_v membership_n now_o if_o profession_n and_o baptism_n be_v sufficient_a to_o do_v the_o deed_n baptism_n remain_v the_o same_o as_o before_o his_o excommunication_n and_o now_o his_o profession_n be_v renew_v there_o be_v the_o whole_a formality_n of_o membership_n which_o be_v false_a ans._n 1._o the_o argument_n suppose_v that_o i_o make_v bare_a profession_n separate_v from_o a_o non-scandalous_a practice_n the_o formal_a cause_n of_o membership_n but_o if_o one_o renew_v his_o practical_a profession_n by_o repentance_n he_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v readmit_v a_o member_n 2._o there_o may_v remain_v in_o one_o excommunicate_a person_n 1._o sound_v profession_n 2._o evidence_n of_o saintship_n in_o dâvid_n excommunicate_a except_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o uriah_n 3._o a_o real_a purpose_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o church-covenant_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o three_o remain_v and_o holy_a and_o blameless_a walk_v beside_o in_o a_o dissolve_a member_n ergo_fw-la the_o church-covenant_n give_v not_o formality_n to_o membership_n but_o the_o conclusion_n be_v contrary_a to_o mr._n h._n therefore_o the_o minor_a be_v deny_v in_o the_o sense_n that_o mr._n r._n 46._o hold_v of_o real_a profession_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v mr_n h._n that_o which_o give_v actual_a existence_n to_o a_o member_n must_v 93._o give_v interest_n to_o the_o whole_a actual_o exist_v and_o therefore_o to_o some_o particular_a congregation_n for_o only_a individual_n exist_v and_o since_o individuorum_fw-la such_o a_o individual_a person_n be_v a_o member_n he_o must_v have_v reference_n to_o the_o whole_a that_o do_v actual_o exist_v and_o this_o the_o general_a nature_n do_v in_o the_o particular_a congregation_n only_o ans._n what_o be_v conclude_v be_v not_o the_o present_a question_n but_o it_o belong_v to_o what_o follow_v 2._o individual_n only_o exist_v first_o and_o kind_o but_o the_o common_a genus_fw-la nature_n of_o a_o man_n exist_v in_o peter_n in_o and_o with_o the_o individual_a and_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o congregation_n exist_v in_o this_o or_o that_o congregation_n but_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o whole_a integral_a church_n of_o which_o peter_n be_v a_o member_n as_o we_o shall_v hear_v do_v no_o more_o exist_v in_o a_o congregation_n than_o the_o whole_a organic_n body_n exi_v in_o the_o left_a hand_n or_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o element_n of_o water_n exist_v in_o a_o drop_n of_o the_o river_n euplorates_n but_o the_o catholic_n integral_n visible_a church_n exi_v in_o this_o or_o that_o catholic_n integral_n visible_a church_n nor_o do_v that_o which_o give_v actual_a existence_n to_o be_v a_o member_n give_v the_o same_o way_n existence_n and_o interest_n to_o a_o totum_fw-la a_o whole_a integral_a body_n the_o thumb_n have_v one_o
etc._n etc._n and_o they_o be_v also_o common_a member_n of_o the_o whole_a organical_a body_n therefore_o by_o mr._n h._n his_o logic_n the_o thumb_n must_v be_v the_o little_a finger_n and_o when_o the_o thumb_n be_v cut_v off_o the_o thumb_z remains_z let_v mr._n h._n or_o any_o for_o he_o answer_n mr._n h._n his_o sophism_n 2._o mr._n h._n make_v a_o assumption_n but_o can_v not_o infer_v any_o conclusion_n nor_o frame_v a_o syllogism_n this_o connexion_n be_v never_o prove_v there_o be_v the_o same_o member_n common_a remote_a of_o every_o particular_a congregation_n or_o of_o all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n therefore_o every_o congregation_n be_v the_o same_o and_o ephesus_z must_v be_v smyrna_n put_v mr._n h._n or_o any_o man_n for_o he_o to_o prove_v the_o connexion_n and_o they_o must_v be_v silence_v these_o congregation_n must_v be_v the_o same_o and_o the_o one_o must_v be_v affirm_v of_o the_o other_o which_o have_v the_o same_o individual_a person_n to_o be_v common_a member_n to_o both_o nothing_o more_o false_a and_o so_o mr._n h._n his_o receive_a rule_n vanish_v for_o accident_n say_v that_o all_o citizen_n of_o york_n be_v citizen_n of_o london_n and_o citizen_n of_o london_n be_v also_o citizen_n of_o york_n and_o they_o have_v the_o same_o common_a law_n city-priviledge_n the_o same_o rule_n it_o follow_v only_o they_o differ_v not_o in_o nature_n but_o in_o number_n and_o accident_n but_o no_o logic_n can_v infer_v ergâ_fw-la york_n be_v london_n and_o london_n be_v york_n or_o that_o the_o one_o be_v affirm_v of_o the_o other_o as_o ephesus_z be_v say_v to_o be_v smyrna_n so_o nothing_o follow_v but_o only_o ephesus_n and_o smyrna_n be_v not_o church_n different_a in_o essence_n and_o nature_n but_o only_o in_o number_n which_o be_v that_o which_o we_o teach_v mr._n h._n mr._n r._n yield_v that_o one_o church_n have_v not_o power_n over_o ãâã_d another_o but_o if_o one_o who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o one_o congregation_n be_v a_o member_n of_o all_o than_o the_o member_n of_o this_o province_n may_v send_v messenger_n to_o the_o synod_n of_o another_o province_n answ._n mr._n h._n will_v do_v well_o to_o prove_v his_o deduction_n for_o common_a member_n as_o common_a member_n send_v not_o commissioner_n nay_o nor_o one_o church_n to_o another_o but_o as_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o order_n so_o such_o a_o church_n in_o a_o association_n do_v send_v to_o a_o large_a church_n mr._n h._n it_o be_v folly_n to_o seek_v difference_n say_v mr._n r._n between_o congregation_n from_o a_o church_n covenant_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o congregation_n it_o be_v true_a say_v mr._n h_n particular_a congregation_n and_o church_n covenant_n differ_v not_o in_o essence_n and_o nature_n but_o there_o be_v a_o real_a difference_n from_o this_o church_n in_o another_o church_n in_o their_o specificate_a and_o individual_a formality_n the_o rule_n of_o old_a be_v genus_fw-la cum_fw-la forma_fw-la constituit_fw-la speciem_fw-la answ._n it_o be_v great_a folly_n to_o seek_v difference_n essential_a when_o all_o congregation_n agree_v in_o the_o last_o specific_a difference_n this_o congregation_n and_o that_o church_n differ_v only_o in_o accident_n except_o mr._n h._n show_v we_o essential_a and_o specificate_a difference_n between_o one_o christ_n the_o head_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o hope_n of_o glory_n one_o lord_n supper_n one_o bread_n in_o all_o church_n eph._n 4._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o 1_o cor._n 10._o 17._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o one_o power_n of_o bind_v on_o earth_n one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n matth._n 18._o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o joh._n 20._o 21_o 22._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13._o from_o the_o same_o christ_n the_o same_o faith_n the_o same_o baptism_n etc._n etc._n in_o another_o congregation_n and_o when_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n differ_v only_o as_o two_o sister_n cant._n 8._o 8._o and_o in_o regard_n of_o age_n which_o be_v a_o mere_a accident_n as_o mother_n and_o daughter_n isa._n 54._o 1_o 2._o isa._n 49._o 20_o 21._o cant._n 3._o 4._o it_o be_v folly_n for_o mr._n h._n to_o trouble_v we_o with_o new_a logic_n such_o as_o the_o specificate_a formality_n in_o peter_n for_o that_o be_v no_o new_a degree_n of_o essence_n in_o peter_n which_o be_v not_o in_o man_n but_o the_o same_o contract_v to_o the_o individual_a difference_n of_o time_n place_n figure_n etc._n etc._n let_v mr._n h._n show_v a_o specific_a difference_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o seal_n in_o this_o and_o in_o that_o congregation_n 2._o that_o genus_fw-la cum_fw-la forma_fw-la constituit_fw-la speciem_fw-la be_v neither_o old_a nor_o new_a rule_n the_o true_a rule_n be_v genus_fw-la &_o differentia_fw-la constituunt_fw-la speciem_fw-la &_o compositum_fw-la metaphysicum_fw-la and_o materia_fw-la &_o forma_fw-la constituunt_fw-la compositum_fw-la seâ_n corpus_fw-la physicum_fw-la 3._o whereas_o mr._n h._n say_v that_o this_o and_o this_o congregation_n and_o this_o church-covenant_n differ_v real_o ut_fw-la res_fw-la &_o res_fw-la and_o if_o they_o differ_v in_o accident_n these_o must_v be_v either_o common_a or_o proper_a it_o be_v answer_v 1._o mr._n cotton_n and_o mr._n hooker_n be_v not_o two_o new_a kind_n and_o species_n jerusalem_n of_o pastor_n because_o officer_n of_o divers_a congregation_n and_o john_n and_o peter_n member_n of_o the_o same_o congregation_n differ_v ut_fw-la res_fw-la &_o res_fw-la and_o so_o in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n there_o shall_v be_v five_o thousand_o species_n and_o kind_n of_o member_n five_o thousand_o kind_n of_o church-covenant_n of_o baptism_n of_o lord_n supper_n of_o new_a species_n of_o right_n to_o the_o seal_n in_o one_o single_a congregation_n for_o they_o differ_v real_o ut_fw-la res_fw-la &_o res_fw-la when_o as_o they_o differ_v only_o in_o number_n and_o it_o be_v good_a that_o mr._n h._n have_v express_v to_o we_o what_o be_v these_o proper_a accident_n by_o which_o congregation_n differ_v among_o themselves_o it_o be_v true_a the_o particular_a combination_n give_v distinct_a be_v to_o the_o classis_fw-la but_o it_o give_v not_o a_o be_v distinct_a in_o nature_n and_o essence_n but_o only_o in_o individual_a property_n from_o the_o be_v of_o other_o classis_fw-la mr._n h._n how_o come_v it_o this_o church_n have_v power_n over_o this_o person_n 67._o which_o another_o church_n have_v not_o but_o from_o some_o special_a engagement_n ans._n it_o be_v from_o no_o marriage_n engagement_n but_o from_o providential_a conveniency_n the_o wise_a lord_n see_v it_o physical_o impossible_a that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n so_o numerous_a can_v be_v feed_v in_o the_o same_o field_n by_o the_o same_o man_n therefore_o he_o divide_v they_o in_o sundry_a little_a flock_n over_o which_o the_o shepherd_n combine_v have_v power_n not_o as_o marry_v husband_n but_o as_o mere_a servant_n mr._n h._n the_o peculiar_a and_o individual_a formality_n of_o engagement_n difference_n all_o voluntary_a covenant_n shall_v a_o man_n say_v i_o be_o a_o master_n of_o servant_n therefore_o thou_o be_v my_o servant_n servant-covenant_n be_v common_a to_o all_o there_o be_v only_o a_o difference_n in_o number_n and_o some_o accident_n a_o people_n may_v say_v to_o a_o pastor_n of_o another_o congregation_n the_o covenant_n between_o pastor_n and_o people_n be_v common_a to_o all_o and_o make_v no_o difference_n but_o in_o number_n and_o accident_n therefore_o thou_o be_v our_o pastor_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v a_o general_a husband_n to_o all_o woman_n and_o a_o woman_n a_o general_a wife_n to_o all_o man_n because_o marriage-covenant_n be_v common_a seem_v folly_n we_o be_v content_a to_o bear_v the_o charge_n of_o folly_n answ._n 1._o i_o be_o far_o from_o charge_v folly_n on_o these_o godly_a man_n but_o weakness_n shall_v appear_v in_o the_o argument_n if_o mr._n h_n have_v frame_v a_o argument_n thus_o if_o all_o covenant_n of_o master_n and_o servant_n of_o husband_n and_o wife_n agree_v in_o essence_n and_o nature_n and_o differ_v in_o number_n and_o accident_n only_o then_o may_v a_o master_n claim_v all_o man_n on_o earth_n to_o be_v his_o servant_n and_o then_o may_v a_o husband_n claim_v all_o woman_n on_o earth_n to_o be_v his_o marry_a wâves_n this_o be_v most_o false_a and_o not_o prove_v by_o mr._n h._n for_o the_o just_a contradiction_n be_v true_a if_o covenant_n between_o master_n and_o servant_n between_o husband_n contrary_n and_o wife_n differ_v in_o number_n then_o must_v a_o master_n make_v a_o covenant_n in_o number_n different_a with_o servant_n one_o with_o this_o servant_n and_o another_o covenant_n different_a in_o number_n from_o that_o with_o another_o or_o then_o he_o can_v claim_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o for_o his_o servant_n because_o covenant_n between_o master_n and_o servant_n be_v all_o of_o the_o same_o common_a nature_n nor_o because_o abraham_n
marry_v sarah_n and_o all_o marriage-covenant_n be_v of_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o nature_n can_v abraham_n claim_v hagar_n and_o another_o three_o woman_n and_o a_o four_o for_o his_o wife_n and_o except_o he_o have_v a_o marriage_n covenant_n with_o hagar_n different_a in_o number_n from_o the_o marriage-covenant_n with_o sarah_n and_o a_o three_o marriage-covenant_n with_o the_o three_o different_a in_o number_n he_o can_v claim_v any_o of_o they_o for_o his_o wife_n for_o hagar_n may_v say_v though_o all_o marriage-covenant_n be_v of_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o nature_n yet_o because_o abraham_n never_o make_v a_o marriage-covenant_n with_o i_o by_o name_n which_o be_v essential_o require_v in_o all_o covenant_n of_o that_o kind_n he_o be_v not_o my_o husband_n nor_o be_o i_o his_o wife_n so_o a_o people_n can_v say_v to_o a_o pastor_n of_o another_o congregation_n thou_o be_v our_o fix_a proper_a pastor_n oblige_v to_o reside_v with_o we_o and_o to_o employ_v thy_o labour_n ordinary_o upon_o we_o only_o except_o they_o have_v particular_o choose_v he_o by_o name_n but_o this_o will_v not_o hinder_v but_o all_o election_n and_o covenant_n with_o pastor_n as_o fix_v and_o ordinary_a labourer_n with_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o nature_n and_o differ_v only_o in_o number_n and_o accident_n nor_o can_v this_o hinder_v but_o a_o pastor_n of_o another_o congregation_n be_v a_o pastor_n habitu_fw-la and_o actu_fw-la primò_fw-la to_o all_o congregation_n on_o earth_n and_o no_o marry_a husband_n to_o that_o congregation_n though_o it_o be_v physical_o impossible_a and_o contrary_a to_o reason_n to_o say_v he_o can_v be_v a_o fix_a proper_a choose_a pastor_n to_o all_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o fixedness_n and_o election_n of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o pastor_n chap._n xxiv_o the_o argument_n of_o mr._n r._n against_o the_o church-covenant_n be_v vindicate_v mr._n h._n relation_n as_o such_o be_v not_o a_o foundation_n of_o a_o covenant_n when_o twin_n be_v bear_v or_o brethren_n and_o sister_n near_o to_o other_o in_o time_n the_o duty_n issue_v there_o from_o have_v their_o rise_n and_o power_n from_o the_o impression_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o nature_n such_o relation_n may_v be_v multiply_v without_o a_o covenant_n answ._n this_o destroy_v your_o church-covenant_n for_o many_o in_o sister-churche_n man_n and_o woman_n be_v bear_v over_o again_o and_o make_v visible_a member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v fellow_n citizen_n to_o they_o that_o be_v far_o off_o and_o near_o to_o the_o whole_a household_n of_o god_n jew_n and_o gentile_n eph._n 2._o 19_o 20_o 21._o eph._n 4._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o 1_o cor._n 10._o 17._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13._o heb._n 12._o 22_o 23._o and_o the_o duty_n dark_a issue_v hence_o rise_v from_o no_o covenant_n sodder_a the_o member_n together_o in_o one_o single_a flock_n for_o they_o belong_v to_o many_o flock_n but_o only_o from_o the_o rule_n of_o renew_a nature_n therefore_o mr._n h._n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v if_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o voluntary_a covenant_n that_o visible_a saint_n of_o two_o congregation_n now_o agree_v to_o be_v fellow-member_n of_o a_o three_o congregation_n be_v now_o more_o brethren_n by_o mat._n â8_o then_o before_o and_o have_v more_o one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o visible_a head_n christ_n one_o hope_n do_v more_o eat_v one_o bread_n 1_o cor._n 10._o than_o before_o be_v more_o yea_o now_o and_o never_o till_o now_o by_o a_o positive_a institution_n and_o command_n oblige_v to_o church_n covenant_v to_o church_n watch_v one_o over_o another_o whereas_o by_o this_o way_n they_o be_v never_o visible_a member_n nor_o visible_a fellow-citizen_n before_o and_o 2._o so_o paul_n have_v be_v less_o accurate_a than_o our_o brethren_n in_o the_o visible_a oneness_n of_o brethren_n 3._o there_o must_v be_v no_o visible_a brotherhood_n nor_o church_n oneness_n but_o by_o ordinary_a meeting_n within_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o same_o house_n and_o 4._o this_o covenant_v either_o implicit_a or_o explicit_a must_v be_v of_o as_o great_a necessity_n as_o a_o visible_a church_n on_o earth_n mr._n h._n the_o covenant_n once_o make_v by_o mutual_a agreement_n of_o parent_n 69_o may_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o seed_n without_o their_o consent_n deut._n 29._o 10._o a_o minister_n be_v a_o minister_n to_o child_n bear_v of_o parent_n who_o have_v elect_v he_o to_o be_v their_o minister_n and_o they_o be_v within_o the_o covenant_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o covenant_n which_o their_o parent_n make_v answ._n 1._o nothing_o then_o make_v child_n within_o the_o covenant_n church-covenant_n of_o grace_n visible_o but_o your_o congregational_a covenant_n but_o sure_a israel_n seed_n by_o deut._n 29._o 10_o 11_o 12_o etc._n etc._n and_o gen._n 17._o 7._o act._n 2._o 39_o be_v bear_v in_o visible_a covenant_n with_o god_n and_o they_o know_v not_o any_o such_o congregational_a watch_v over_o one_o another_o 2._o the_o seed_n of_o dissolve_a member_n visible_a saint_n be_v then_o without_o any_o sin_n in_o parent_n and_o child_n to_o speak_v comparative_o bear_v pagan_n but_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o of_o no_o lose_n of_o covenant-right_a but_o by_o sin_n either_o of_o the_o party_n themselves_o or_o of_o their_o parent_n 3._o how_o be_v then_o child_n of_o covenant_a parent_n bear_v church_n member_n yet_o when_o come_v to_o age_n if_o they_o can_v evidence_n their_o regeneration_n hold_v all_o their_o life_n for_o no_o church-member_n be_v debar_v from_o the_o lord_n supper_n live_v and_o die_v pagan_n be_v minister_n because_o of_o their_o covenant_n minister_n to_o pagan_n 4._o the_o scripture_n teach_v that_o parent_n oblige_v the_o child_n to_o the_o gospel-covenant_n deut._n 29._o gen._n 17._o but_o no_o scripture_n teach_v that_o parent_n lay_v band_n of_o oath_n and_o vow_n of_o god_n to_o be_v visible_a member_n of_o only_a for_o example_n the_o congregation_n of_o boston_n of_o only_a hartford_n for_o look_v what_o covenant_n obligation_n lie_v upon_o the_o parent_n which_o be_v to_o that_o congregation_n by_o name_n only_o the_o like_a must_v lie_v upon_o the_o child_n mr._n h._n among_o such_o who_o by_o no_o impression_n of_o nature_n no_o providence_n 69._o or_o appointment_n of_o god_n or_o reason_n have_v power_n each_o one_o over_o another_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o a_o free_a engagement_n by_o consent_n as_o between_o prince_n and_o people_n husband_n and_o wife_n master_n and_o servant_n and_o the_o covenant_n be_v once_o make_v there_o need_v no_o new_a covenant_n to_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o duty_n belong_v to_o that_o relation_n ans._n the_o vow_n in_o baptism_n and_o the_o gospel-covenant_n profess_v needless_a by_o i_o without_o any_o new_a engagement_n oblige_v i_o in_o all_o church_n i_o be_o in_o to_o be_v my_o brother_n keeper_n and_o watch_v for_o his_o soul_n otherwise_o i_o may_v make_v this_o count_n lord_n i_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o any_o church-watching_a over_o my_o brother_n but_o my_o congregational_a brother_n by_o mat._n 18._o but_o 1._o be_v he_o not_o thy_o brother_n before_o thou_o be_v inchurch_v into_o one_o congregation_n with_o he_o shall_z the_o lord_n say_v 2._o be_v thou_o not_o to_o eat_v the_o same_o bread_n with_o he_o before_o as_o then_o by_o 1_o cor._n 10._o 17._o second_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o engagement_n to_o watch_v congregational_o over_o all_o with_o who_o thou_o eat_v the_o lord_n supper_n except_o thou_o be_v so_o journer_n enter_v in_o oath_n to_o every_o congregation_n and_o break_v it_o in_o the_o morrow_n three_o the_o covenant_n of_o prince_n and_o people_n husband_n and_o wife_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o this_o except_o the_o near_a visible_a oneness_n brotherhood_n etc._n etc._n of_o which_o i_o speak_v be_v clear_v from_o scripture_n and_o m._n h._n prove_v that_o peter_n be_v tie_v by_o oath_n to_o that_o only_a pastor_n and_o flock_n as_o subject_n to_o one_o only_a sovereign_a mr._n h._n the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n may_v be_v take_v in_o the_o narrow_a acception_n believe_v and_o live_v so_o it_o be_v inward_a and_o invisible_a between_o the_o soul_n and_o god_n but_o if_o you_o take_v it_o in_o the_o breadth_n as_o it_o include_v whatever_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o gospel_n so_o it_o be_v visible_a and_o include_v the_o church-covenant_n and_o its_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o not_o proper_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o the_o church_n be_v dissolve_v through_o persecution_n they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o the_o duty_n of_o confederacy_n ans._n believe_v and_o live_v be_v not_o the_o narrow_a nor_o the_o invisible_a covenant_n but_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o duty_n give_v to_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n joh._n 3._o 16_o 18._o joh._n 5._o 24_o 40._o joh._n 11._o
believe_v all_o baptize_v infant_n be_v regenerate_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o inward_a state_n of_o none_o can_v be_v say_v either_o a_o falsehood_n or_o reality_n to_o the_o church_n follow_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n in_o dispense_n of_o ordinance_n for_o in_o the_o like_a neither_o regeneration_n nor_o non_fw-la regeneration_n can_v be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o church_n discern_v also_o this_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o christ_n have_v make_v the_o sound_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o church_n in_o the_o actual_a exercise_n of_o ordinance_n for_o 1._o christ_n never_o give_v a_o power_n to_o err_v or_o to_o sin_n to_o his_o church_n visible_a or_o to_o any_o part_n thereof_o as_o nature_n give_v not_o a_o power_n to_o the_o locomotive_a faculty_n to_o halt_v but_o to_o move_v therefore_o he_o can_v have_v give_v a_o power_n to_o a_o synod_n as_o many_o but_o as_o proceed_v right_n and_o to_o member_n as_o choose_v discern_o not_o as_o erroneous_o 2._o those_o must_v be_v the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v they_o fulfil_v the_o condition_n to_o wit_n he_o must_v promise_v his_o presence_n to_o those_o that_o be_v convine_v in_o his_o name_n but_o if_o the_o large_a part_n be_v the_o church_n visible_a because_o large_a and_o more_o numerous_a to_o who_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v then_o when_o the_o major_a part_n err_v and_o meet_v not_o in_o his_o name_n christ_n shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o fulfil_v the_o promise_n to_o they_o that_o fulfil_v not_o the_o condition_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o fulfil_v the_o promise_n to_o those_o who_o meet_v in_o his_o name_n and_o fulful_a the_o condition_n of_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v abominable_a for_o very_o often_o the_o large_a part_n err_v and_o meet_v not_o in_o christ_n name_n and_o the_o lesser_a part_n meet_v in_o his_o name_n and_o shall_v those_o who_o fulfil_v the_o condition_n be_v defraud_v of_o the_o blessing_n promise_v because_o they_o be_v few_o obj._n but_o so_o no_o question_n shall_v be_v determine_v in_o church_n meeting_n for_o two_o may_v say_v they_o only_o meet_v in_o christ_n name_n ans._n these_o be_v but_o word_n for_o if_o they_o not_o only_o say_v so_o but_o it_o be_v a_o real_a truth_n and_o if_o all_o the_o rest_n err_v in_o that_o act_n these_o two_o be_v only_o the_o visible_a church_n though_o man_n judge_v they_o turbulent_a schismatic_n hence_o by_o the_o way_n a_o word_n of_o that_o necessary_a and_o judicious_a question_n move_v by_o calvin_n matth._n 18._o 18._o what_o you_o bind_v on_o 18._o earth_n etc._n etc._n since_o the_o church_n tolerate_v many_o hypocrite_n and_o absolve_v and_o lose_v many_o who_o do_v but_o counterfeit_n and_o fancy_n repentance_n shall_v we_o say_v that_o such_o be_v loose_v and_o pardon_v in_o heaven_n some_o say_v by_o heaven_n here_o be_v mean_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o they_o distinguish_v between_o sin_n and_o scandal_n and_o therefore_o that_o by_o bind_v and_o lose_v here_o be_v mean_v not_o forgiveness_n or_o justification_n or_o absolution_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o heaven_n or_o in_o the_o court_n of_o god_n or_o condemnation_n for_o that_o sin_n but_o only_a deliverance_n from_o scandal_n and_o the_o remove_n of_o scandal_n and_o admit_v of_o the_o man_n into_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o a_o member_n suppose_v his_o repentance_n be_v but_o hypocritical_a yet_o when_o the_o church_n proceed_v impartial_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n the_o sentence_n be_v ratify_v by_o god_n and_o the_o man_n be_v loose_v from_o the_o scandal_n though_o not_o from_o the_o sin_n the_o sin_n be_v yet_o bind_v before_o god_n because_o he_o have_v not_o real_o repent_v otherwise_o the_o church_n who_o know_v not_o heart-actings_a and_o who_o real_o repent_v who_o not_o though_o proceed_v right_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o ratify_v in_o heaven_n what_o they_o do_v on_o earth_n fulfil_v to_o they_o which_o can_v be_v say_v but_o take_v it_o for_o a_o good_a observation_n that_o calvin_n have_v here_o that_o matth._n 16._o christ_n speak_v of_o bind_v and_o lose_v concional_a by_o the_o word_n preach_v but_o here_o matth._n 18._o he_o speak_v especial_o of_o bind_v and_o lose_v juridical_a in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o church_n by_o excommunication_n or_o absolution_n from_o that_o sentence_n in_o the_o former_a consideration_n the_o question_n be_v easy_a no_o pastor_n in_o preach_v gospel-promise_n or_o threaten_n can_v bind_v but_o conditional_o if_o the_o party_n do_v not_o believe_v and_o repent_v the_o man_n sin_n be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n if_o he_o do_v believe_v and_o repent_v his_o sin_n be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n as_o to_o the_o other_o we_o find_v in_o the_o word_n no_o such_o signification_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o regard_n of_o scandal_n but_o they_o be_v ever_o heaven_n speak_v of_o in_o regard_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o guilt_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o 1._o calvin_n say_v well_o that_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n be_v direct_v to_o no_o other_o than_o to_o those_o who_o due_o and_o sincere_o do_v reconcile_v themselves_o with_o the_o church_n and_o the_o lord_n be_v willing_a to_o comfort_v tremble_a conscience_n be_v not_o set_v down_o a_o rule_n for_o comfoââ¦g_v of_o hypocrite_n but_o by_o the_o contrary_a because_o hypocrite_n sold_o provoke_v to_o the_o tribunal_n of_o god_n when_o for_o gross_a scandal_n they_o be_v just_o cast_v out_o our_o saviour_n say_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n be_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n the_o scripture-rule_a be_v for_o such_o as_o obey_v and_o for_o those_o who_o fulfil_v the_o condition_n non_fw-fr de_fw-fr obliquis_fw-la as_o to_o the_o doubt_n that_o the_o church_n often_o absolve_v such_o who_o real_o repent_v not_o how_o then_o can_v the_o hypocrite_n be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n when_o the_o lord_n know_v he_o do_v but_o fancy_n repentance_n ans._n two_o thing_n hère_fw-fr be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v 1._o the_o church_n proceed_v in_o the_o external_a court_n as_o relate_v to_o they_o if_o they_o impartial_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n proceed_v and_o be_v not_o sudden_a in_o readmitting_a but_o see_v the_o incestuous_a man_n near_o swallow_v up_o though_o one_o man_n measure_n of_o visible_a repentance_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n to_o all_o before_o they_o confirm_v their_o love_n to_o he_o and_o forgive_v he_o 2_o cor._n 2._o suppose_v his_o repentance_n be_v but_o counterfeit_n or_o not_o save_v and_o real_a as_o be_v that_o of_o ahab_n yet_o be_v they_o to_o receive_v he_o and_o admit_v he_o to_o the_o ordinance_n and_o the_o lord_n ratify_v what_o they_o do_v in_o heaven_n as_o 1._o the_o lord_n ratify_v philip_n baptise_v of_o magus_n and_o the_o pardon_v lord_n approve_v the_o servant_n invite_v to_o the_o marriage-supper_n the_o man_n that_o want_v the_o wedding-garment_n for_o what_o the_o lord_n command_v that_o he_o must_v approve_v and_o ratify_v in_o heaven_n 2._o what_o in_o charitable_a judgement_n be_v praiseworthy_a that_o god_n also_o must_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n yea_o it_o be_v praiseworthy_a in_o the_o disciple_n when_o they_o hear_v christ_n say_v one_o of_o you_o twelve_o have_v a_o devil_n one_o of_o you_o shall_v betray_v the_o son_n of_o man_n every_o one_o suspect_v and_o fear_v himself_o none_o of_o the_o eleven_o suspect_a judas_n but_o give_v he_o charity_n 3._o without_o this_o god_n shall_v not_o approve_v the_o gather_n of_o church_n nor_o the_o cast_n of_o the_o draw-net_n in_o the_o sea_n nor_o the_o sow_v of_o seed_n upon_o all_o sort_n of_o ground_n the_o way_n side_n the_o thorny_a the_o rocky_a the_o good_a ground_n that_o the_o choose_v who_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n may_v be_v bring_v in_o and_o effectual_o call_v but_o in_o receive_v in_o excommunicate_n the_o church_n will_v not_o be_v sudden_a in_o the_o ancient_a church_n sacrificer_n to_o idol_n ancyâan_n be_v six_o year_n before_o they_o be_v receive_v they_o that_o defile_v themselves_o with_o beast_n be_v debar_v from_o the_o sacrament_n thirty_o year_n adulterer_n seven_o woman_n who_o make_v away_o their_o indul._n birth_n ten_o year_n such_o as_o uncompelled_a deny_v the_o faith_n twelve_o year_n what_o other_o year_n burchardus_fw-la and_o gratianus_n have_v may_v be_v see_v something_o for_o edification_n sure_o there_o be_v here_o 2._o there_o be_v another_o thing_n here_o which_o concern_v the_o conscience_n of_o he_o who_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o when_o the_o church-court_n 728._o apply_v the_o sentence_n to_o the_o conscience_n for_o his_o personal_a pardon_n sure_a whatever_o satisfaction_n the_o people_n have_v for_o remove_v of_o the_o scandal_n the_o sentence_n of_o absolution_n so_o relate_v to_o he_o be_v concional_a not_o proper_o juridical_a
and_o conditional_a not_o absolute_a and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o excommunication_n the_o church_n the_o pastor_n thus_o be_v it_o unto_o thou_o according_a to_o thy_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o except_o the_o man_n real_o repent_v his_o sin_n be_v not_o loose_v in_o heaven_n so_o then_o the_o church_n lose_v from_o the_o scandal_n be_v conditional_a upon_o a_o see_v condition_n of_o outward_a repentance_n moral_o sincere_a to_o the_o church_n apprehension_n but_o they_o simple_o and_o absolute_o make_v he_o a_o citizen_n of_o the_o church_n and_o admit_v he_o to_o ordinance_n according_a to_o the_o command_n of_o christ_n both_o in_o private_a and_o public_a church_n offence_n if_o thy_o brother_n who_o offend_v repent_v forgive_v he_o but_o his_o lose_n from_o the_o sin_n or_o guilt_n in_o heaven_n be_v ever_o conditional_a and_o never_o absolute_o to_o be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o pastor_n the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n who_o can_v certain_o know_v the_o condition_n hence_o 1._o the_o scandal_n be_v loose_v in_o earth_n and_o heaven_n the_o church_n impartial_o follow_v the_o rule_n of_o christ_n sometime_o when_o the_o sin_n remain_v and_o be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n 2._o the_o church_n may_v say_v the_o man_n be_v absolute_o free_v from_o the_o scandal_n so_o as_o the_o church_n sin_v not_o in_o receive_v he_o in_o if_o they_o follow_v the_o rule_n but_o he_o sin_n and_o the_o scandal_n be_v bind_v in_o come_v in_o if_o he_o repent_v not_o and_o also_o as_o to_o the_o guilt_n he_o be_v free_v from_o the_o sin_n only_o conditional_o for_o the_o condition_n of_o removal_n of_o the_o scandal_n be_v see_v and_o visible_a but_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o lose_n from_o sin_n be_v invisible_a 3._o sometime_o the_o man_n be_v both_o loose_v from_o the_o scandal_n and_o from_o the_o sin_n and_o every_o way_n loose_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n when_o he_o both_o real_o and_o visible_o repent_v 4._o the_o church_n shall_v go_v as_o near_o in_o readmit_v a_o fall_v sinner_n and_o lose_v he_o on_o earth_n as_o they_o can_v discern_v the_o lord_n lose_v in_o heaven_n the_o corinthian_n seem_v to_o exceed_v in_o this_o 2_o cor._n 2._o 7._o so_o that_o contrariwise_o you_o ought_v rather_o to_o forgive_v he_o 5._o there_o be_v more_o of_o real_a saintship_n require_v to_o receive_v in_o again_o one_o who_o have_v be_v once_o a_o member_n and_o have_v fall_v and_o be_v cast_v out_o then_o to_o admit_v a_o member_n new_o come_v from_o paganism_n 1._o the_o large_a the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n have_v be_v the_o great_a guiltiness_n as_o the_o scandal_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v great_a than_o the_o sin_n and_o scandal_n of_o a_o sodomite_n mat._n 10._o 15._o mat._n 11._o 22._o mat._n 12_o 41_o 42._o and_o therefore_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o one_o must_v be_v more_o signal_n and_o large_a than_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o other_o 2._o there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o marriage-love_n require_v of_o a_o virgin_n before_o she_o be_v marry_v as_o after_o she_o have_v be_v marry_v and_o bear_v child_n to_o the_o husband_n nor_o can_v any_o say_v there_o be_v so_o much_o knowledge_n require_v in_o a_o new_a intrant_fw-la that_o know_v not_o the_o first_o element_n of_o philosophy_n as_o in_o one_o who_o have_v study_v seven_o year_n hence_o 6._o it_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o as_o visible_a saintship_n and_o real_a repentance_n as_o far_o as_o can_v be_v be_v require_v of_o one_o excommunicate_a before_o he_o can_v be_v receive_v in_o again_o so_o real_a visible_a saintship_n as_o far_o as_o can_v be_v see_v must_v be_v require_v in_o member_n before_o they_o be_v first_o admit_v but_o i_o desire_v our_o brethren_n if_o they_o judge_v the_o first_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n a_o lose_n from_o sin_n and_o scandal_n as_o readmission_n be_v they_o will_v teach_v it_o i_o mr._n h._n if_o baptism_n be_v the_o seal_n say_v mr._n r._n of_o our_o entry_n in_o arg._n the_o church_n then_o be_v not_o this_o covenant_n the_o formal_a cause_n of_o church-membership_a ans._n if_o baptism_n seal_v our_o membership_n than_o it_o be_v after_o membership_n and_o so_o not_o the_o formal_a cause_n of_o it_o ans._n there_o be_v in_o my_o argument_n no_o word_n that_o baptism_n be_v the_o formal_a cause_n of_o our_o membership_n baptism_n be_v a_o seal_n of_o our_o solemn_a installing_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o seal_n quoadnos_fw-la as_o state_n and_o feise_v in_o house_n or_o land_n be_v mr._n h._n though_o child_n do_v not_o covenant_v personal_o yet_o they_o be_v include_v virtual_o in_o their_o parent_n deut._n 29._o ans._n if_o mr._n h._n mean_a child_n not_o bear_v as_o the_o place_n deut._n 29._o do_v evince_n what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o purpose_n we_o have_v no_o question_n with_o any_o whether_o unborn_a child_n have_v right_a to_o membership_n or_o to_o baptism_n non_fw-la entis_fw-la nulla_fw-la sunt_fw-la accidentia_fw-la if_o he_o mean_v covenanter_n bear_v infant_n be_v but_o virtual_a or_o potential_a covenanter_n as_o the_o seed_n be_v a_o tree_n in_o potentia_fw-la and_o no_o tree_n actu_fw-la so_o must_v infant_n be_v no_o actual_a covenanter_n but_o in_o potentia_fw-la only_o anabaptist_n shall_v thank_v mr._n h._n for_o this_o for_o than_o they_o be_v not_o actual_o holy_a rom._n 11._o 16._o nor_o actual_o to_o be_v baptize_v nor_o be_v god_n actual_o the_o god_n of_o infant_n but_o some_o act_n be_v require_v of_o they_o to_o lay_v hold_n on_o the_o covenant_n 2._o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n than_o be_v not_o due_a to_o they_o nay_o not_o a_o half_a salvation_n but_o in_o potentia_fw-la but_o our_o saviour_n pronounce_v they_o actual_o bless_v and_o say_v of_o such_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n mat._n 18._o 14_o mat._n 19_o 14._o mark_v 10._o 14_o 15._o yea_o as_o christ_n can_v bless_v unborn_a infant_n not_o can_v he_o say_v of_o such_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n if_o they_o be_v covenanter_n only_o in_o potentia_fw-la and_o be_v such_o only_a mr._n h._n this_o covenant_n be_v either_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n or_o different_a 79_o from_o it_o ans._n the_o new_a covenant_n be_v either_o consider_v according_a to_o the_o benefit_n of_o save_a grace_n give_v in_o it_o and_o so_o this_o be_v not_o the_o covenant_n or_o 2._o according_a to_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n offer_v and_o so_o the_o church-covenant_n be_v contain_v within_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o the_o consequence_n be_v null_a a_o man_n may_v be_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n who_o be_v not_o a_o church-member_n and_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o church-member_n who_o be_v not_o within_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o magus_n ans._n it_o be_v a_o doubt_n to_o i_o if_o mr._n h._n understand_v his_o own_o distinction_n of_o god_n decree_a and_o command_a will_n for_o with_o arminian_n he_o say_v these_o be_v contrary_a will_n 2._o my_o argument_n be_v this_o the_o church_n covenant_n be_v tither_n one_o and_o the_o same_o or_o a_o branch_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o it_o offer_v grace_n external_o to_o all_o to_z peter_z and_o magus_n or_o then_o it_o be_v a_o different_a covenant_n that_o it_o be_v different_a mr._n h._n deny_v for_o than_o it_o gospel-covenant_n shall_v not_o be_v warrant_v in_o the_o gospel_n if_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o gospel-covenant_n how_o can_v they_o debar_v man_n of_o approve_a godliness_n and_o visible_o within_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n from_o ordinance_n for_o such_o be_v implicit_o in_o this_o covenant_n 3._o some_o be_v say_v m._n h._n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v not_o church-member_n and_o contrary_a true_a but_o not_o if_o they_o be_v external_o and_o profess_o as_o israel_n be_v for_o so_o to_o be_v god_n visible_a people_n in_o covenant_n be_v to_o be_v god_n visible_a church_n act_v 2._o 39_o gen._n 17._o 7._o rev._n 11._o 15._o isa._n 19_o 25._o now_o we_o dispute_v whether_o the_o church-covenant_n be_v not_o a_o branch_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n external_o propose_v mr._n h._n yield_v it_o be_v only_o he_o say_v the_o church-covenant_n be_v not_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o benefit_n of_o save_a grace_n give_v in_o it_o true_a nor_o be_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n external_o preach_v according_a to_o which_o magus_n and_o judas_n and_o all_o such_o church-member_n be_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o benefit_n of_o save_a grace_n give_v it_o to_o wiâ_n a_o new_a heart_n and_o remission_n etc._n etc._n then_o this_o can_v hinder_v but_o when_o one_o vow_n to_o duty_n in_o baptism_n he_o also_o vow_v he_o shall_v acquit_v himself_o in_o all_o duty_n of_o warning_n
absundity_n to_o say_v she_o destroy_v she_o own_o ministerial_a feed_n her_o own_o sacramental_a communion_n by_o which_o she_o be_v one_o body_n with_o all_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n as_o the_o brethren_n grant_v and_o its_o sure_a from_o 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o &_o 12._o 13._o as_o touch_v any_o spiritual_a well-being_n and_o feed_n by_o these_o wretched_a feeder_n but_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o do_v it_o i_o see_v no_o inconvenience_n why_o a_o corporation_n may_v not_o out_o and_o lay_v aside_o all_o their_o alderman_n and_o major_a if_o they_o turn_v lion_n and_o leopard_n and_o so_o destroy_v the_o present_a individual_a government_n while_o they_o labour_v their_o own_o safety_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o privilege_n but_o the_o case_n be_v not_o alike_o except_o mr._n h._n prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o believer_n have_v the_o same_o positive_a power_n of_o government_n intrinsical_a without_o their_o officer_n and_o only_a father_n who_o beget_v they_o to_o christ_n to_o use_v the_o key_n and_o formal_o to_o excommunicate_v they_o as_o a_o free_a city_n have_v over_o their_o magistrate_n 2._o if_o the_o officer_n die_v sure_o the_o organical_a church_n die_v and_o the_o organical_a and_o the_o ministerial_a and_o politic_a essence_n of_o that_o visible_a church_n as_o it_o be_v totum_fw-la integrale_fw-la dies_fw-la 2._o i_o retort_v the_o argument_n when_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n act_n 13._o &_o 18._o turn_n heretical_a and_o blaspheme_v and_o refuse_v to_o be_v the_o marry_a wife_n i_o speak_v in_o our_o brethren_n language_n if_o the_o church_n of_o officer_n reject_v they_o and_o turn_v to_o other_o it_o shall_v not_o follow_v 1._o that_o the_o officer_n destroy_v their_o own_o husbandly_a power_n while_o they_o labour_v their_o own_o preservation_n which_o be_v the_o great_a absurdity_n that_o mr._n h._n put_v upon_o mr._n r._n as_o enough_o to_o cast_v the_o cause_n 2._o shall_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o officer_n without_o the_o people_n or_o govern_v without_o yea_o contrary_a to_o their_o consent_n be_v a_o true_a visible_a church_n in_o no_o sort_n mr._n h._n when_o the_o tent_n be_v remove_v they_o be_v not_o the_o shepherd_n tent_n to_o remove_v the_o candlestick_n be_v to_o remove_v the_o ministry_n and_o 93._o remove_v all_o the_o officer_n the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o body_n visible_a eat_v one_o bread_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o so_o mr._n r._n but_o mr._n h._n answer_n yet_o they_o be_v call_v tent_n fit_a to_o receive_v shepherd_n and_o be_v the_o same_o they_o be_v before_o the_o shepherd_n be_v choose_v and_o remain_v the_o same_o to_o remove_v the_o candlestick_n be_v to_o remove_v the_o ministry_n because_o ministry_n and_o minister_n have_v their_o dependence_n on_o the_o church_n destroy_v the_o man_n the_o whole_a you_o destroy_v the_o part_n but_o it_o hold_v not_o contrariwise_o its_o true_a in_o a_o ministerial_a church_n i._n e._n a_o organicum_fw-la totum_fw-la when_o you_o take_v away_o any_o part_n you_o lame_v the_o integrity_n of_o it_o but_o you_o dedestroy_v not_o the_o essence_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v totum_fw-la essentiale_fw-la ans._n it_o be_v enough_o to_o i_o if_o you_o remove_v all_o officer_n and_o shepherd_n it_o be_v no_o roll_a church_n though_o the_o fitness_n of_o choice_n which_o be_v no_o act_n of_o government_n do_v still_o remain_v yet_o the_o fitness_n to_o ordain_v and_o to_o excommunicate_v remain_v not_o for_o they_o never_o have_v it_o luke_n distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o act_v 6._o 3_o 5._o the_o multitude_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d choose_v not_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n more_o not_o the_o multitude_n ordain_v they_o by_o pray_v and_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n five_o 6._o as_o the_o elder_n do_v and_o they_o only_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o 2._o it_o be_v good_a that_o mr._n h._n grant_v that_o to_o remove_v the_o candlestick_n be_v to_o remove_v the_o ministââ¦y_n i_o hope_v he_o mean_v the_o shine_a burn_a and_o guide_a minister_n and_o watchman_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 1_o 2._o mat._n 5._o 14._o joh._n 5._o 35._o but_o in_o the_o other_o page_n 91_o 32._o it_o be_v cross_a to_o all_o man_n apprehension_n say_v he_o that_o the_o candlestick_n shall_v include_v candle_n and_o lamp_n 3._o nor_o be_v it_o true_a in_o mr._n h._n his_o way_n that_o to_o remove_v the_o candlestick_n be_v to_o remove_v the_o ministry_n for_o there_o remain_v a_o preach_n and_o a_o pray_a church_n which_o be_v at_o the_o ordain_v of_o officer_n and_o send_v they_o act._n 1â15_n &_o 6._o 24._o act._n 13._o 1_o 2_o 3._o act._n 6._o 6._o which_o do_v only_o make_v and_o unmake_v officer_n say_v mr._n h._n 4._o destroy_v the_o whole_a say_v he_o and_o you_o destroy_v the_o part_n but_o it_o hold_v not_o contrariwise_o why_o not_o contrariwise_o if_o you_o destroy_v all_o the_o part_n otherwise_o the_o logic_n be_v naught_o take_v away_o eye_n and_o ear_n and_o hand_n and_o foot_n and_o all_o the_o integral_a part_n or_o all_o the_o essential_a part_n and_o you_o destroy_v the_o whole_a in_o any_o sense_n too_o much_o of_o this_o logic_n mr._n h._n give_v we_o 5._o take_v away_o say_v he_o in_o a_o organic_n or_o ministerial_a body_n a_o member_n you_o lame_v the_o integrity_n now_o the_o ministry_n and_o officer_n be_v remove_v by_o the_o people_n because_o they_o be_v heretical_a as_o mr._n h._n teach_v page_n 90._o i_o pray_v you_o remain_v there_o a_o ministerial_a or_o organic_n body_n no_o say_v m._n h._n there_o remain_v a_o homogeneous_a body_n 4._o take_v away_o any_o part_n you_o lame_v the_o integrity_n take_v then_o away_o the_o ministry_n you_o lame_v the_o body_n o_o logic_n the_o ministry_n be_v a_o separable_a adjunct_n to_o mr._n h._n page_n 92._o here_o it_o be_v a_o integral_a part_n be_v a_o integral_a part_n a_o adjunct_n be_v the_o eye_n a_o adjunct_n of_o the_o organical_a body_n be_v the_o integrity_n hurt_n because_o a_o separable_a adjunct_n be_v remove_v 5._o nor_o be_v this_o true_a take_v away_o any_o part_n in_o a_o organical_a body_n and_o you_o lame_v the_o integrity_n it_o be_v only_o true_a of_o a_o organical_a part_n not_o of_o any_o part_n take_v away_o ten_o member_n believer_n only_o the_o church_n remain_v a_o entire_a and_o unlame_v integral_a body_n let_v ten_o free_a member_n of_o a_o city_n be_v remove_v by_o death_n yet_o the_o city_n remain_v a_o unmaimed_a entire_a body_n of_o citizen_n rule_v by_o major_n and_o alderman_n 6._o remove_v the_o ministry_n the_o essence_n and_o organical_a body_n remain_v not_o mr._n h._n that_o which_o be_v add_v be_v more_o beside_o the_o cause_n it_o be_v grant_v 93._o where_o officer_n be_v not_o there_o be_v no_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v there_o therefore_o no_o church-communion_n ans._n if_o this_o communion_n be_v remove_v there_o be_v no_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v many_o member_n be_v one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o &_o 12._o 12_o 13._o and_o what_o reason_n but_o a_o church_n and_o the_o only_o institute_v visible_a church_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o the_o book_n of_o discipline_n of_o n._n e._n make_v it_o shall_v be_v a_o complete_a church_n 2._o in_o be_v and_o operation_n and_o partake_v of_o all_o church-communion_n though_o it_o want_v the_o officer_n which_o be_v to_o mr._n h._n but_o poor_a harmless_a separable_a adjunct_n page_n 92._o and_o this_o be_v somewhat_o for_o the_o cause_n m._n h._n we_o have_v do_v now_o with_o the_o first_o quere_z and_o make_v it_o clear_a that_o this_o church_n be_v before_o all_o officer_n and_o may_v be_v without_o they_o ans._n so_o mr._n h._n have_v do_v and_o make_v it_o as_o clear_a as_o midnight_n darkness_n with_o whole_a two_o argument_n the_o one_o whereof_o be_v a_o poor_a grammatication_n and_o scarce_o that_o and_o the_o other_o a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n that_o there_o be_v a_o roll_a church_n before_o and_o without_o officer_n which_o may_v make_v and_o unmake_v officer_n chap._n ii_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o be_v of_o a_o presbyterial_a church_n mr._n h._n the_o qualification_n of_o the_o church_n as_o totum_fw-la essentiale_fw-la 94._o in_o the_o order_n and_o precedency_n of_o it_o in_o regard_n of_o her_o true_a officer_n we_o have_v dispatch_v now_o we_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o comparison_n with_o a_o presbyterian_a church_n ans._n let_v not_o then_o the_o reader_n express_v any_o visible_a church_n organical_a to_o be_v speak_v of_o organ_n be_v but_o separable_a adjunct_n the_o only_a church_n speak_v of_o and_o acknowledge_v by_o mr._n h._n and_o our_o brethren_n be_v a_o homogeneal_a church_n of_o only_a believer_n which_o mr._n h._n now_o call_v the_o church_n before_o
consociation_n of_o the_o thirty_o church_n about_o than_o the_o thirty_o church_n combine_v in_o particular_a by_o our_o saviour_n rule_n matth._n 18._o say_v mr._n h._n the_o offender_n be_v private_o first_o to_o be_v rebuke_v second_o then_o before_o two_o three_o before_o the_o church_n near_a the_o congregation_n the_o classical_a principle_n admit_v not_o this_o 2._o suppose_v the_o man_n in_o his_o private_a fault_n continue_v obstinate_a this_o obstinacy_n be_v reâ_n propria_fw-la proper_a to_o the_o congregation_n why_o may_v not_o the_o congregation_n without_o the_o presbytery_n then_o oa_v he_o out_o for_o this_o pertinacy_n be_v make_v know_v only_o to_o the_o congregation_n or_o church_n object_n but_o the_o neighbour_a church_n must_v avoid_v his_o company_n upon_o knowledge_n give_v answ._n so_o must_v the_o church_n of_o another_o presbytery_n or_o classis_fw-la or_o of_o another_o province_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o more_o need_v the_o one_o shall_v have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o censure_n than_o the_o other_o ans._n 1._o the_o congregation_n in_o private_a scandal_n by_o our_o principle_n 4._o which_o mr._n h._n it_o seem_v know_v not_o do_v admonish_v and_o the_o offend_a person_n be_v to_o admonish_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o christ_n matth._n 18._o 2._o mr._n h._n take_v for_o grant_v that_o the_o place_n matth._n 18._o be_v a_o rule_n for_o remove_v only_o private_a scandal_n 2._o and_o that_o by_o the_o word_n church_n matth._n 18._o be_v mean_v only_o his_o own_o independent_a congregation_n 3._o that_o christ_n matth._n 18_o show_n of_o no_o remove_n of_o scandal_n between_o two_o visible_a saint_n dwell_v in_o one_o christian_a family_n who_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o mr._n h._n may_n by_o their_o own_o free_a choice_n be_v member_n of_o divers_a congregation_n a_o strange_a dream_n 4._o he_o suppose_v it_o must_v be_v only_o one_o single_a man_n that_o trespass_v against_o a_o brother_n but_o if_o ten_o or_o many_o sister-churche_n transgress_v against_o sister-churche_n learned_a whitaker_n calvin_n beza_n pareus_n all_o protestant_n divine_n all_o father_n all_o learned_a doctor_n papist_n lutheran_n doctor_n counsel_n all_o the_o martyr_n who_o by_o the_o text_n matth._n 18._o appeal_n to_o a_o general_n council_n do_v but_o abuse_v the_o text_n in_o apply_v it_o to_o synod_n whereas_o tell_v the_o church_n be_v now_o find_v to_o be_v only_o the_o single_a congregation_n whereas_o the_o contrary_a be_v sure_a there_o be_v a_o figure_n 1._o in_o thy_o brother_n for_o he_o mean_v many_o brethren_n within_o or_o without_o the_o congregation_n 2._o by_o trespass_v by_o a_o sydecdoche_n he_o mean_v all_o scandal_n else_o we_o be_v not_o to_o complain_v of_o public_a scandal_n to_o the_o church_n 3._o by_o the_o church_n he_o mean_v all_o church_n respective_o as_o those_o of_o antioch_n in_o case_n of_o scandalous_a doctrine_n tell_v a_o synod_n act_v 15._o 2._o the_o obstinacy_n be_v not_o proper_a to_o that_o congregation_n if_o public_a the_o offence_n of_o it_o stumble_v the_o neighbour_a church_n but_o 4._o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o all_o of_o another_o province_n shall_v have_v offence_n hand_n in_o the_o censure_n as_o well_o as_o the_o presbytery_n because_o those_o of_o another_o province_n may_v hear_v of_o it_o for_o that_o be_v non_fw-fr causa_fw-la pro_fw-la causa_fw-la for_o they_o be_v not_o in_o danger_n to_o be_v leaven_v so_o as_o those_o that_o be_v near_o and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n have_v accommodate_v discipline_n to_o our_o bodily_a craziness_n for_o as_o when_o there_o be_v twelve_o thousand_o member_n at_o jerusalem_n he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o all_o to_o meet_v at_o one_o house_n since_o they_o have_v twelve_o apostle_n to_o teach_v they_o but_o in_o sundry_a congregation_n act_n 2._o 46._o &_o 5_o 42._o not_o can_v they_o partake_v of_o the_o seal_n in_o one_o house_n nor_o can_v they_o personal_o watch_v over_o one_o another_o as_o the_o new_a church-covenant_n teach_v so_o neither_o will_v he_o have_v elder_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o city_n where_o many_o thousand_o be_v baptize_v purge_v their_o own_o body_n and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suppose_v that_o actual_a government_n for_o ordinary_a scandal_n shall_v be_v by_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o remote_a presbytery_n and_o province_n far_o less_o of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n visible_a church_n for_o nature_n reason_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n will_v say_v except_o the_o scandal_n be_v more_o than_o ordinary_a wide_a and_o spread_a only_o the_o church_n near_o to_o be_v edify_v or_o stumble_v shall_v have_v hand_n in_o heal_v and_o censure_v though_o the_o whole_a catholic_n and_o visible_a church_n have_v also_o here_o some_o influence_n to_o wit_n tacit_n and_o virtual_a in_o that_o common_a rule_n of_o discipline_n which_o regulate_v the_o whole_a catholic_n body_n as_o be_v say_v hereafter_o mr._n h._n the_o second_o difference_n assign_v by_o mr._n r._n be_v that_o the_o presbytery_n take_v care_n rather_o of_o the_o regulate_v of_o the_o act_n of_o govern_v in_o all_o these_o church_n than_o the_o govern_a church_n congregation_n mr._n h._n they_o express_v their_o care_n in_o judicial_a act_n and_o that_o direct_o and_o immediate_o upon_o scandal_n and_o scandalous_a person_n of_o any_o congregation_n ans._n mr._n h._n shall_v have_v add_v my_o word_n to_o the_o full_a that_o the_o reader_n may_v have_v see_v my_o mind_n what_o i_o speak_v comparative_o mr._n h._n will_v not_o hold_v it_o out_o to_o the_o reader_n as_o if_o i_o mean_v it_o absolute_o for_o 1._o the_o presbytery_n be_v glad_a that_o lesser_a evil_n be_v heal_v by_o rebuke_n within_o the_o congregation_n 2._o i_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o presbytery_n do_v and_o must_v direct_o and_o immediate_o judge_v great_a scandal_n especial_o between_o congregation_n and_o congregation_n between_o elder_a and_o elder_a and_o ruler_n and_o rule_v of_o the_o same_o congregation_n but_o ever_o under_o the_o former_a reduplication_n as_o they_o be_v a_o associate_n body_n mr._n h._n 3_o differ_v the_o presbyterian_a elder_n be_v elder_n to_o all_o the_o church_n as_o the_o elder_n themselves_o be_v in_o collegio_fw-la presbyteriali_fw-la 103._o and_o proper_o as_o they_o be_v in_o court_n ans._n but_o i_o assume_v say_v mr._n h._n the_o elder_n there_o be_v proper_a pastor_n of_o their_o own_o particular_a congregation_n therefore_o they_o must_v if_o at_o all_o be_v so_o here_o a_o pastor_n in_o a_o island_n can_v teach_v admonish_v excommunicate_a but_o in_o coetu_fw-la congregationali_fw-la or_o sever_v from_o his_o church_n yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o in_o these_o regard_v he_o be_v a_o proper_a pastor_n to_o they_o ans._n mr._n h._n yet_o half_n my_o word_n and_o set_v down_o one_o member_n here_o of_o a_o distinction_n and_o leave_v out_o the_o other_o they_o be_v elder_n to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o presbyterial_a judicature_n but_o separatim_fw-la out_o of_o that_o say_v i_o pag._n 326._o they_o do_v not_o watch_v in_o such_o a_o way_n for_o all_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a several_a congregation_n as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o single_a congregation_n of_o which_o they_o be_v fix_v pastor_n and_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v different_a relation_n pastoral_a which_o be_v my_o intent_n between_o the_o elder_n in_o order_n to_o their_o own_o congregation_n and_o to_o the_o associate_v congregation_n as_o the_o elder_n of_o antioch_n be_v elder_n judge_v in_o the_o synod_n act_v 15._o one_o way_n to_o jerusalem_n and_o other_o to_o antioch_n where_o they_o have_v their_o proper_a fix_a charge_n to_o teach_v and_o rule_v and_o i_o shall_v not_o stand_v to_o yield_v that_o they_o act_n as_o elder_n and_o by_o the_o same_o office_n of_o eldership_n in_o the_o presbyterial_a and_o in_o the_o congregational_a judicature_n but_o a_o accidental_a difference_n there_o be_v 2._o it_o be_v most_o unfound_a that_o mr_n h._n say_v that_o a_o pastor_n can_v flock_n teach_v admonish_v excommunicate_a but_o in_o a_o congregational_a meeting_n this_o be_v first_o to_o make_v he_o a_o congregational_a pope_n or_o prophet_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v the_o pope_n only_o in_o cathedra_fw-la in_o the_o pulpit_n or_o before_o the_o congregation_n 2._o all_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n except_o in_o the_o actual_a congregational_a assembly_n he_o be_v a_o private_a man_n by_o this_o reason_n but_o the_o word_n shall_v warrant_v the_o pastor_n as_o a_o pastor_n to_o visit_v to_o warn_v from_o house_n to_o house_n col._n 1._o 28._o act_n 20_o 20._o &_o 2._o 46._o &_o 5._o 42._o in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 2._o &_o 2._o 25._o for_o he_o do_v not_o these_o as_o a_o private_a gift_a man_n 3._o by_o this_o reason_n a_o pastor_n be_v so_o a_o pastor_n a_o
in_o a_o doctrine_n that_o concern_v thousand_o as_o well_o as_o they_o 2._o what_o a_o mystery_n of_o logic_n this_o may_v be_v who_o be_v so_o happy_a genus_fw-la as_o to_o divine_a every_o particular_a elder_n can_v and_o do_v put_v forth_o general_a action_n that_o be_v common_a to_o other_o elder_n why_o the_o species_n determine_v the_o act_n of_o the_o genus_fw-la the_o reason_n contradict_v the_o conclusion_n which_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o prove_v for_o if_o socrates_n confine_v the_o act_n of_o humane_a nature_n to_o himself_o they_o leave_v off_o now_o to_o be_v general_a action_n and_o by_o be_v contract_v to_o the_o species_n his_o species_n be_v socrates_n a_o single_a person_n they_o be_v now_o most_o special_a action_n mr._n h._n take_v our_o meaning_n to_o be_v that_o the_o member_n of_o synod_n and_o of_o the_o presbytery_n determine_v of_o the_o ideal_o general_a abstract_a nature_n of_o man_n of_o doctrine_n of_o action_n in_o communi_fw-la that_o need_v not_o say_v he_o for_o the_o congregational_a elder_n put_v forth_o general_a action_n but_o confine_v and_o contract_v to_o socrates_n so_o do_v the_o classis_fw-la the_o national_a yea_o the_o oecumenick_n and_o general_n assembly_n put_v forth_o act_n determination_n both_o of_o general_a doctrine_n and_o condemn_v they_o also_o as_o confine_v and_o contract_v to_o socrates_n to_o balaam_n to_o jezabel_n to_o the_o nicolaitan_n and_o to_o the_o single_a man_n of_o that_o impure_a sect._n and_o act_n 15._o 24._o the_o synod_n condemn_v some_o certain_a particular_a individual_a man_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d some_o man_n from_o we_o have_v trouble_v you_o and_o say_v you_o must_v be_v circumcise_v now_o the_o abstract_a nature_n of_o man_n dispute_v not_o and_o make_v not_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o the_o rent_n as_o v_o 6_o 7._o but_o some_o single_a man_n and_o this_o come_v from_o another_o wild_a notion_n of_o logic_n that_o mr._n h._n teach_v that_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n be_v the_o genus_fw-la and_o under_o it_o be_v this_o or_o that_o independent_a church_n of_o this_o hereafter_o sâ_n the_o church_n of_o boston_n be_v the_o catholic_n integral_n church_n for_o gânus_fw-la praedicatur_fw-la de_fw-la specie_fw-la mr._n h._n it_o be_v as_o undeniable_a there_o be_v general_a act_n in_o preach_v and_o watch_v which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o congregation_n which_o the_o presbytery_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v dispense_v conscientious_o because_o the_o pastor_n can_v attend_v they_o it_o will_v not_o suffice_v to_o say_v he_o be_v pastor_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n before_o for_o then_o before_o the_o combination_n he_o have_v as_o good_a power_n to_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n as_o any_o of_o they_o this_o be_v against_o mr._n r._n who_o grant_v that_o one_o church_n have_v not_o power_n over_o another_o an._n 1._o it_o be_v undeniable_a that_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v not_o attend_v act_n of_o teach_v and_o rule_v in_o all_o the_o single_a congregation_n for_o that_o be_v physical_o impossible_a but_o mr._n h._n say_v it_o be_v moral_o impossible_a and_o unlawful_a for_o a_o pastor_n to_o put_v forth_o a_o pastoral_a act_n in_o any_o congregation_n but_o that_o to_o which_o he_o be_v marry_v more_o than_o a_o man_n can_v perform_v marriage-duty_n to_o any_o but_o to_o his_o own_o wife_n god_n which_o be_v shameful_a doctrine_n 2._o mr._n h._n frequent_o devise_v objection_n of_o straw_n and_o then_o fire_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o know_v mr._n r._n deny_v that_o to_o be_v a_o pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n give_v so_o right_a to_o the_o apostle_n to_o preach_v and_o feed_v in_o bythinia_n but_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o call_n of_o god_n go_v before_o as_o be_v clear_a act_v 16._o and_o so_o must_v pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n now_o have_v a_o call_v from_o presbytery_n and_o congregation_n before_o they_o can_v lawfel_o put_v forth_o in_o act_n their_o general_a pastorship_n which_o they_o have_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o be_v this_o against_o the_o church_n not_o have_v power_n over_o a_o sister-church_n because_o a_o pastor_n of_o one_o congregation_n have_v power_n joint_o in_o a_o synod_n to_o exercise_v pastoral_a act_n synodical_a over_o many_o church_n chap._n iu._n the_o follow_a argument_n of_o mr._n h._n against_o a_o presbyterian_a church_n be_v remove_v that_o the_o classical_a elder_n separate_v rule_v from_o teach_v be_v prelate_n non-residents_a and_o pluralist_n and_o what_o not_o by_o mr._n h._n his_o way_n mr._n h._n that_o course_n which_o sever_v which_o god_n have_v join_v 107._o together_o be_v unlawful_a but_o the_o classical_a combination_n do_v this_o rule_v and_o teach_v belong_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n they_o have_v the_o prwer_n of_o the_o key_n and_o there_o can_v be_v full_o bind_v and_o lose_v but_o by_o rule_v and_o teach_v act._n 20._o 28._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 1_o 2._o 2_o both_o bind_n and_o lose_v be_v require_v as_o necessary_a to_o christ_n end_n the_o gather_n and_o perfect_v of_o the_o saint_n eph._n 4._o 12._o ans._n the_o assumption_n may_v import_v that_o the_o presbytery_n must_v be_v ruler_n and_o by_o office_n no_o teacher_n as_o the_o prelate_n be_v who_o by_o majority_n of_o power_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o they_o his_o deputy_n the_o so_o sever_a of_o teach_v and_o rule_v in_o the_o subject_n can_v be_v charge_v upon_o we_o but_o that_o the_o sever_n of_o they_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o object_n be_v no_o sort_n of_o divide_v of_o those_o which_o god_n have_v join_v be_v clear_a because_o the_o pastor_n teach_v some_o and_o rule_v in_o common_a other_o necessary_a associate_n and_o mr._n h._n have_v not_o prove_v the_o assumption_n for_o 1._o elder_n in_o synod_n dogmatical_o and_o authoritative_o do_v teach_v as_o mr._n h._n teach_v par_fw-fr 4._o pag._n 5._o conclus_fw-la 3._o therefore_o mr._n h._n himself_o separate_v teach_v and_o rule_v and_o mr._n cotton_n say_v more_o 2._o the_o people_n without_o officer_n may_v excommunicate_v all_o their_o officer_n and_o so_o bind_v they_o and_o receive_v they_o in_o again_o upon_o their_o repentance_n and_o so_o loose_v they_o as_o mr._n h._n teach_v par_fw-fr 1_o c._n 9_o pag._n 92_o 93._o and_o yet_o the_o people_n can_v teach_v these_o officer_n as_o their_o pastor_n be_v not_o here_o a_o irregular_a separate_n of_o rule_v from_o teach_v 3._o such_o of_o the_o flock_n as_o be_v from_o their_o youth_n keep_v under_o by_o the_o terror_n of_o god_n ps._n 88_o godly_a elder_n who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v rebuke_v but_o entreat_v as_o father_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 1._o need_v not_o juridical_a church-binding_a and_o lose_v and_o yet_o need_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o promise_n then_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o act_n and_o object_n exercise_n of_o jurisdiction_n may_v be_v sever_v from_o teach_v 4._o pastor_n can_v exercise_v no_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_o in_o the_o court_n but_o pastor_n not_o in_o court_n may_v teach_v pastoral_o the_o whole_a flock_n 5._o the_o church_n that_o meet_v in_o a_o synod_n may_v exercise_v the_o power_n of_o non_fw-fr communion_n towards_o a_o church_n which_o be_v a_o church-governing_a for_o their_o edification_n if_o the_o church_n obstinate_o maintain_v a_o heresy_n and_o yet_o the_o church_n so_o convene_v can_v pastoral_o teach_v this_o church_n let_v mr._n h._n see_v if_o he_o be_v not_o as_o prelatical_a as_o mr._n r._n if_o this_o be_v prelacy_n i_o think_v mr._n h._n have_v be_v better_o verse_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o prelacy_n mr._n h._n grandfather_n and_o father_n do_v bear_v a_o relation_n to_o the_o same_o child_n divers_a way_n so_o mr._n r._n so_o then_o as_o a_o grandfather_n say_v mr._n h._n can_v be_v both_o a_o grandfather_n and_o a_o father_n to_o the_o same_o child_n child_n neither_o can_v a_o elder_a be_v both_o a_o proper_a elder_a and_o a_o classical_a elder_n to_o the_o same_o congregation_n answ._n one_o man_n can_v be_v both_o a_o grandfather_n and_o a_o father_n to_o the_o same_o child_n true_a nor_o be_v one_o man_n a_o proper_a elder_n to_o his_o congregation_n and_o a_o classical_a elder_n to_o his_o own_o congregation_n for_o he_o be_v formal_o a_o classical_a elder_n not_o to_o his_o own_o but_o to_o all_o the_o associate_v congregation_n 2._o it_o be_v but_o a_o comparison_n and_o so_o admit_v of_o halt_v a_o grandfather_n be_v a_o grandfather_n to_o his_o child_n child_n but_o a_o father_n to_o his_o near_a child_n so_o the_o same_o man_n be_v a_o classical_a elder_n to_o all_o the_o associate_v church_n and_o a_o proper_a and_o providential_o fix_v elder_a to_o his_o own_o flock_n as_o one_o be_v both_o a_o priest_n to_o judge_v between_o blood_n and_o
that_o the_o congregation_n of_o thyatira_n suppose_v it_o so_o to_o be_v by_o assume_v to_o themselves_o a_o huge_a number_n of_o elder_n and_o visible_a saint_n shall_v by_o over-voting_a the_o former_a congregation_n conclude_v that_o jesabel_n shall_v still_o teach_v and_o seduce_v mr._n h._n can_v say_v that_o the_o add_v power_n of_o the_o elder_n and_o member_n of_o itself_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n but_o rather_o their_o abuse_n of_o their_o power_n in_o that_o wicked_a act_n be_v not_o from_o christ_n for_o the_o add_v to_o the_o church_n two_o thousand_o to_o three_o thousand_o to_o make_v five_o thousand_o be_v lawful_a act._n 5._o mr._n h._n to_o this_o mr._n r._n answer_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a 120._o in_o this_o case_n ought_v to_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o the_o two_o voice_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o congregation_n but_o say_v mr._n h._n so_o the_o weak_a shall_v overbear_v the_o strong_a the_o part_n the_o whole_a 2._o this_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o endless_a dissension_n the_o few_o say_v we_o have_v the_o truth_n the_o other_o we_o have_v the_o truth_n and_o who_o shall_v be_v the_o judge_n aus_n mr._n a._n cit_v my_o word_n as_o frequent_o elsewhere_o so_o here_o imperfect_o and_o mutilate_v the_o sense_n if_o their_o power_n and_o voice_n be_v against_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v fit_a that_o many_o voice_n be_v swallow_v up_o by_o two_o jure_fw-la in_o fore_fw-la dei_fw-la for_o christ_n give_v no_o power_n to_o thirty_o to_o err_v and_o to_o excommunicate_v a_o innocent_a person_n he_o have_v give_v no_o power_n but_o to_o edification_n 2_o cor._n 10._o 8._o 1_o cor._n 5._o 4_o 5._o but_o i_o say_v not_o that_o jure_fw-la ecclesiastico_fw-la the_o few_o and_o the_o part_n shall_v overbear_v the_o many_o and_o the_o whole_a and_o what_o will_v mr._n h._n say_v the_o few_o name_n in_o sardis_n judge_v that_o a_o jezabel_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v the_o whole_a say_v no._n the_o few_o say_v we_o have_v truth_n the_o whole_a say_v we_o have_v truth_n by_o the_o brethren_n way_n no_o remedy_n but_o be_v the_o matter_n heresy_n or_o scandal_n incest_n and_o parricide_n the_o large_a part_n of_o every_o single_a congregation_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o 24._o sound_a church_n have_v a_o power_n independent_a and_o from_o which_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n on_o earth_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o few_o name_n that_o be_v in_o sardis_n and_o keep_v their_o garment_n clean_o if_o you_o say_v so_o be_v it_o in_o a_o national_a in_o a_o oecumenick_n council_n by_o the_o church_n presbyterian_a way_n i_o answer_v in_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o if_o there_o be_v a_o manifest_a depart_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o fornication_n of_o babel_n be_v multiply_v the_o few_o and_o weak_a being_n saviour_n pars_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o sound_a part_n be_v as_o mr._n h._n say_v jure_fw-la in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n the_o church_n mr._n h._n arg._n 7._o this_o course_n can_v attain_v its_o end_n appoint_v by_o 121._o our_o saviour_n who_o wisdom_n fail_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v frustrate_a in_o its_o preparation_n but_o the_o classis_fw-la excommunicate_v when_o the_o elder_n and_o congregation_n refuse_v to_o submit_v will_v be_v of_o no_o force_n ans._n let_v the_o large_a part_n of_o the_o congregation_n by_o three_o vote_n operis_fw-la excommunicate_v a_o godly_a sound_a man_n and_o discern_v a_o arch-heretick_n to_o preach_v as_o a_o godly_a socinian_n where_o be_v the_o end_n of_o christ_n attain_v by_o you_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o arminian_n and_o unsound_a tenet_n to_o condemn_v the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o draw_v not_o his_o ordinance_n gospel_n promise_n precept_n seal_n censure_n according_a to_o his_o irresistible_a decree_n by_o which_o the_o infinite_o wise_a lord_n can_v come_v short_a of_o his_o end_n intend_v of_o the_o ordinance_n themselves_o finem_fw-la operantis_fw-la for_o his_o counsel_n and_o decree_n must_v stand_v isa._n 14._o 26_o 27._o ps._n 33._o 10_o 11._o rom._n 9_o 19_o and_o who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n isa._n 53._o 1._o some_o yea_o many_o stumble_v at_o christ_n and_o the_o word_n isa._n 8._o 14_o 15._o 1_o pet._n 2._o 8._o rom._n 9_o shall_v we_o accuse_v the_o ordinance_n the_o gospel_n and_o seal_n because_o god_n attain_v not_o the_o end_n the_o salvation_n of_o the_o hearer_n how_o unjust_a be_v it_o to_o accuse_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n for_o this_o sinful_a folly_n of_o man_n but_o the_o lord_n draw_v his_o ordinance_n and_o seal_n according_a to_o his_o approve_v will_n and_o thereby_o his_o wisdom_n attain_v the_o end_n finem_fw-la operis_fw-la which_o be_v to_o save_v and_o render_v unexcusable_a and_o though_o the_o classis_fw-la be_v divide_v from_o the_o congregation_n and_o the_o congregation_n be_v divide_v the_o few_o keep_v the_o rule_n and_o the_o great_a number_n err_v this_o be_v no_o more_o a_o just_a ground_n of_o challenge_v the_o immaculate_a and_o spotless_a wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o presbyterial_a censure_v than_o we_o may_v challenge_v christ_n come_v in_o the_o world_n to_o bring_v the_o sword_n not_o peace_n matth._n 10._o 34._o his_o ordinance_n be_v media_fw-la nata_fw-la apta_fw-la of_o their_o own_o nature_n apt_a to_o bring_v union_n between_o the_o classis_fw-la and_o the_o congregation_n if_o it_o fall_v out_o otherwise_o the_o blame_n be_v in_o man_n corruption_n there_o be_v answer_n give_v to_o these_o argument_n by_o i_o mr._n h._n will_v not_o set_v they_o down_o nor_o remove_v they_o as_o he_o answer_v but_o in_o half_n and_o part_n chap._n vi_o some_o seem_a inconsistency_n mistake_v by_o mr._n hooker_n be_v clear_v mr._n h._n pastor_n as_o they_o stand_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o congregation_n and_o in_o reference_n say_v mr._n r._n to_o the_o classis_fw-la have_v not_o two_o 122._o but_o one_o office_n page_n 329_o 333._o and_o yet_o they_o be_v elect_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n in_o the_o congregation_n l._n 1._o &_o l._n 2._o pag._n 201._o but_o not_o elect_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o classis_fw-la l._n 2._o 345._o which_o be_v very_o strange_a since_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n ans._n be_v it_o strange_a that_o mr._n cotton_n and_o the_o dissent_v brethren_n teach_v elder_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o synod_n and_o elder_n in_o reference_n elder_n to_o the_o single_a congregation_n at_o antioch_n and_o at_o jerusalem_n have_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n of_o elder_n for_o they_o be_v not_o twice_o elder_n nor_o two_o sort_n of_o officer_n by_o reason_n of_o these_o two_o relation_n if_o they_o be_v say_v it_o out_o and_o yet_o these_o be_v elect_a pastor_n in_o order_n to_o their_o congregation_n and_o choose_v to_o employ_v their_o labour_n constant_o there_o only_o as_o marry_v husband_n to_o their_o wife_n so_o mr._n h._n par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 7._o pag._n 81_o 82_o 83._o and_o yet_o neither_o mr._n h._n nor_o mr._n cotton_n can_v say_v they_o be_v elect_v to_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o synod_n though_o they_o exercise_v pastoral_a act_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o synod_n cotton_n key_n c._n 5._o p._n 25._o mr._n h._n par_fw-fr 3._o and_o the_o associate_v church_n be_v not_o this_o strange_a for_o the_o eight_o argument_n repeat_v from_o survey_n c._n 8._o arg._n 1._o pag._n 99_o be_v answer_v 2._o i_o âesire_v the_o reader_n also_o to_o consider_v my_o word_n pag._n 244_o 245._o the_o congregation_n acknowledge_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o classical_a presbytery_n do_v tacit_o choose_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o common_a charge_n and_o care_n that_o every_o pastor_n have_v as_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o common_a court_n which_o dâth_v concern_v they_o all_o and_o therefore_o when_o mr._n r._n say_v that_o pastor_n be_v not_o elect_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o classis_fw-la the_o sense_n be_v in_o every_o page_n know_v to_o be_v that_o pastor_n be_v not_o choose_v to_o be_v fix_v and_o constant_a feeder_n of_o all_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o classis_fw-la because_o they_o feed_v and_o rule_v in_o thing_n of_o common_a concernment_n mr._n h._n the_o power_n of_o a_o congregation_n and_o of_o a_o presbytery_n and_o their_o act_n say_v mr._n r._n differ_v not_o essential_o but_o elder_n say_v 122._o mr._n h._n do_v and_o must_v preach_v watch_n and_o feed_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o essence_n of_o their_o office_n therefore_o they_o have_v act_n formal_o different_a ans._n that_o elder_n do_v act_n as_o elder_n and_o put_v forth_o specific_a act_n of_o elder_n in_o the_o congregation_n and_o in_o the_o presbytery_n ergo_fw-la their_o act_n in_o
one_o differ_v in_o nature_n from_o the_o act_n in_o the_o other_o it_o no_o more_o follow_v then_o this_o peter_n laugh_v to_o day_n ergo_fw-la it_o shall_v be_v rain_n to_o morrow_n that_o elder_n must_v constant_o and_o fix_o teach_v and_o feed_v the_o church_n who_o they_o govern_v synodical_o be_v deny_v superior_a by_o mr._n cotton_n and_o that_o they_o must_v put_v forth_o all_o the_o act_n of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o office_n and_o that_o constant_o and_o fix_o to_o all_o the_o church_n congregational_a presbyterial_a synodical_a to_o which_o they_o be_v refer_v as_o pastor_n in_o their_o several_a relation_n respective_o be_v most_o false_a mr._n h._n if_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n to_o the_o classis_fw-la and_o to_o a_o congregation_n as_o mr._n r._n say_v l._n 2._o 329._o then_o the_o office_n relate_v one_o and_o the_o same_o way_n to_o both_o the_o classical_a and_o congregational_a church_n then_o if_o the_o congregational_a church_n be_v their_o proper_a flock_n so_o must_v the_o classical_a church_n be_v quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la idem_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la sunt_fw-la idem_fw-la uni_fw-la tertio_fw-la ans._n the_o first_o consequence_n be_v naught_o if_o it_o be_v the_o same_o office_n than_o the_o office_n relate_v the_o same_o way_n to_o both_o the_o classical_a and_o congregational_a church_n a_o pastor_n have_v the_o same_o office_n to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o to_o one_o single_a man_n to_o who_o he_o preach_v for_o he_o be_v not_o two_o pastor_n one_o to_o the_o whole_a and_o another_o to_o the_o part_n a_o elder_n be_v the_o same_o officer_n to_o antioch_n and_o to_o the_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n act._n 15._o for_o he_o be_v not_o two_o officer_n in_o reference_n to_o these_o two_o but_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o office_n relate_v the_o same_o way_n to_o one_o man_n and_o to_o all_o the_o congregation_n nor_o be_v he_o refer_v to_o the_o synod_n as_o the_o fix_a and_o constant_a feeder_n of_o the_o synod_n but_o he_o be_v refer_v to_o a_o congregation_n of_o antioch_n as_o their_o fix_a and_o constant_a pastor_n it_o be_v wild_a logic_n that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n must_v relate_v one_o and_o the_o same_o way_n to_o one_o and_o to_o ten_o hundââd_o to_o the_o adequate_a and_o to_o the_o inadequate_a correlate_n and_o these_o that_o be_v one_o in_o one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o lord_n one_o and_o the_o same_o seal_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v one_o every_o way_n but_o in_o illo_fw-la uno_fw-la tertio_fw-la for_o the_o whole_a congregation_n on_o earth_n be_v one_o in_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o a_o church_n one_o faith_n one_o lord_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n be_v but_o one_o single_a congregation_n the_o thumb_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o hand_n as_o a_o member_n and_o also_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n as_o a_o member_n yet_o it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o hand_n as_o a_o near_a and_o proper_a member_n but_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n in_o a_o more_o common_a relation_n as_o the_o toe_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o body_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o toe_n a_o part_n of_o the_o hand_n as_o the_o thumb_n be_v but_o both_o be_v part_n of_o the_o body_n mr._n h._n the_o combination_n of_o church_n give_v no_o office_n and_o so_o no_o 114._o power_n to_o the_o elder_n of_o many_o church_n for_o they_o be_v elder_n before_o the_o combination_n ans._n that_o they_o be_v elder_n before_o the_o combination_n and_o make_v and_o ordain_v by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v your_o homogeneous_a church_n be_v a_o unwritten_a tradition_n 2._o the_o tacit_n consent_n of_o sister-churche_n even_o before_o the_o formal_a combination_n be_v enough_o on_o their_o part_n who_o neighbour_n with_o they_o to_o make_v they_o elder_n m._n h._n will_v you_o see_v a_o pastor_n that_o have_v the_o formal_a essence_n of_o a_o prelacy_n pastor_n and_o yet_o never_o do_v nor_o be_v bind_v to_o preach_v it_o be_v the_o classical_a elder_n 2._o the_o pastor_n may_v preach_v in_o his_o own_o congregation_n and_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n but_o ãâã_d presbytery_n keep_v the_o key_n of_o jurisdiction_n 3._o the_o classical_a elder_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o preach_v to_o they_o over_o who_o he_o have_v jurisdiction_n and_o this_o be_v the_o bishop_n ans._n a_o bishop_n be_v rather_o a_o pastor_n to_o pastor_n then_o to_o the_o church_n envy_n can_v say_v this_o of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o presbytery_n 2._o the_o formal_a essence_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v not_o in_o be_v fix_v to_o one_o congregation_n as_o a_o husband_n to_o a_o wife_n so_o that_o it_o be_v adultery_n to_o act_v as_o a_o pastor_n either_o in_o a_o synod_n or_o in_o another_o congregation_n as_o mr._n h._n teach_v for_o so_o elder_n in_o a_o synod_n apostles_n and_o evangelist_n shall_v not_o have_v the_o formal_a essence_n of_o pastor_n 3._o it_o be_v false_a that_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o preach_v and_o minister_v the_o seal_n to_o another_o congregation_n or_o member_n thereof_o if_o he_o be_v call_v thereunto_o but_o the_o bishop_n be_v a_o bishop_n ex_fw-la officio_fw-la be_v bind_v to_o preach_v to_o none_o but_o a_o sermon_n to_o the_o clergy_n once_o a_o year_n and_o not_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o bishop_n and_o never_o preach_v 3._o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o congregation_n as_o a_o pastor_n have_v power_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o collegio_fw-la and_o have_v no_o majority_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o ordination_n at_o all_o as_o the_o bishop_n have_v 4._o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o congregation_n yea_o all_o the_o officer_n thereof_o poor_a man_n have_v no_o jurisdiction_n without_o the_o people_n yea_o the_o people_n without_o they_o have_v majority_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o make_v and_o unmake_v all_o the_o officer_n which_o be_v the_o formal_a essence_n of_o a_o prelate_n by_o mr._n h._n his_o way_n the_o prelate_n be_v the_o virtual_a church_n tell_v the_o church_n i._n e._n tell_v one_o single_a man_n the_o prelate_n who_o need_v neither_o do_v by_o vote_n or_o consent_v of_o other_o elder_n or_o people_n as_o the_o prelatical_a way_n teach_v our_o elder_n be_v neither_o over_o the_o say_v of_o the_o people_n nor_o can_v they_o dispense_v censure_n contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o godly_a so_o mr._n h._n have_v not_o find_v the_o prelate_n with_o we_o but_o the_o male_a church_n which_o be_v above_o all_o their_o officer_n and_o all_o other_o be_v the_o prelatical_a church_n but_o what_o if_o the_o elder_n meet_v and_o confer_v this_o powâr_n of_o sole_a jurisdiction_n upon_o one_o man_n and_o make_v he_o more_o than_o a_o moderator_n ans._n what_o if_o the_o firmament_n fall_v if_o they_o make_v a_o bishop_n they_o make_v a_o bishop_n i_o can_v stand_v but_o see_v more_o of_o the_o prelate_n their_o majority_n pride_n dignity_n privilege_n in_o the_o author_n cite_v haât_fw-la in_o nature_n and_o essence_n distinct_a from_o our_o elder_n or_o from_o synodical_a elder_n against_o who_o the_o argument_n fight_v with_o the_o like_a strength_n as_o against_o we_o what_o famous_a independent_o have_v refute_v prelacy_n i_o or_o a_o few_o can_v read_v mr._n h._n what_o rule_n of_o christ_n condemn_v the_o church_n of_o error_n for_o give_v the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o one_o man_n but_o will_v condemn_v the_o inve_n many_o elder_n with_o jurisdiction_n over_o many_o church_n let_v mr._n r._n give_v i_o one_o place_n of_o scripture_n or_o one_o sound_a reason_n for_o it_o that_o one_o may_v be_v a_o pastor_n to_o a_o people_n by_o who_o he_o be_v never_o choose_v etc._n etc._n ans._n the_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o tell_v we_o the_o elder_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v over_o so_o many_o as_o their_o constant_a officer_n who_o can_v not_o meet_v in_o one_o congregation_n declare_v they_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o that_o church_n otherwise_o elder_n of_o that_o church_n they_o can_v not_o be_v but_o they_o can_v not_o all_o of_o they_o be_v choose_v their_o elder_n constant_o teach_v in_o all_o the_o congregation_n for_o that_o be_v unpossible_a and_o our_o ground_n for_o a_o presbyterian_a church_n and_o for_o presbyterian_a elder_n be_v these_o 1._o to_o appoint_v elder_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o every_o city_n tit._n 1._o 5._o be_v to_o appoint_v a_o college_n or_o church-officer_n in_o every_o church_n the_o town_n or_o city_n of_o samaria_n receive_v the_o gospel_n 1._o as_o many_o even_o from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o least_o as_o be_v bewitch_v by_o magus_n act._n 8._o 6._o 9_o 2._o both_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v baptize_v v_o 12._o and_o so_o be_v make_v a_o church_n 3._o the_o number_n be_v above_o the_o strength_n of_o philip_n and_o so_o more_o than_o
one_o congregation_n they_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o peter_n and_o john_n v_o 14._o to_o help_n in_o the_o work_n 2._o the_o first_o sampler_n church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v one_o church_n in_o government_n etc._n for_o their_o elder_n be_v call_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n act._n 2._o 43_o 44_o 47._o &_o 8._o 1_o 2._o &_o 5._o 11._o &_o 11._o 30._o but_o that_o this_o church_n be_v not_o all_o one_o congregation_n be_v clear_a 1._o from_o the_o multitude_n thereof_o act._n 2._o 43._o three_o thousand_o 2._o act._n 4._o 4._o five_o thousand_o and_o then_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d multitude_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n act._n 3._o 14._o and_o yet_o they_o be_v multiply_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d exceed_o and_o a_o great_a company_n of_o the_o priest_n hard_a metal_n to_o be_v wrought_v upon_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o faith_n act_n 6._o 7._o 2._o they_o meet_v in_o sundry_a place_n from_o house_n to_o house_n act._n 2._o westminster_n 46._o &_o 5._o 42._o for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n break_v of_o bread_n nor_o be_v it_o like_v they_o dare_v bring_v into_o the_o temple_n the_o new_a seal_n of_o the_o supper_n the_o dissent_v brethren_n refuse_v that_o 3._o the_o multitude_n of_o twelve_o preach_a apostle_n for_o some_o year_n and_o seven_o deacon_n for_o the_o poor_a declare_v that_o in_o 1._o such_o a_o plentiful_a harvest_n 2._o in_o such_o a_o necessity_n of_o gather_v soul_n 3._o of_o preach_v in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n that_o one_o apostle_n can_v not_o preach_v to_o one_o congregation_n the_o other_o eleven_o hear_v that_o be_v twelve_o reaper_n all_o in_o one_o ridge_n in_o one_o single_a congregation_n where_o eleven_o that_o time_n must_v be_v silent_a 4._o the_o apostle_n speak_v with_o divers_a tongue_n that_o these_o of_o all_o nation_n understand_v act._n 2._o 1_o 2_o 3._o therefore_o in_o divers_a meeting_n nor_o be_v it_o clear_a that_o all_o the_o three_o thousand_o hear_v peter_n the_o text_n say_v v._n 37._o they_o that_o hear_v be_v prick_v act._n 2._o 11._o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o speak_v as_o mr._n h._n think_v 5._o what_o agree_v to_o the_o apostle_n as_o elder_n agree_v to_o all_o elder_n 6._o but_o the_o apostle_n act._n 6._o as_o elder_n not_o as_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o presbytery_n of_o twelve_o elder_n over_o divers_a congregation_n choose_v deacon_n lay_v hand_n on_o they_o and_o pray_v ordain_v they_o v_o 6._o and_o use_v the_o joint_a concurrence_n of_o the_o people_n for_o the_o choose_n of_o they_o as_o a_o stand_a example_n to_o the_o church_n now_o what_o they_o do_v as_o apostle_n either_o in_o write_v scripture_n work_v miracle_n speak_v with_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n they_o neither_o seek_v nor_o need_v the_o help_n or_o occurrence_n of_o other_o either_o people_n or_o any_o else_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n to_o say_v that_o all_o these_o thousand_o meet_v in_o solomon_n porch_n act._n 5._o 12._o at_o one_o act_n of_o divine_a worship_n congregational_a or_o that_o they_o be_v all_o join_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o prayer_n or_o that_o they_o return_v to_o wit_n peter_n and_o john_n to_o their_o own_o that_o be_v all_o the_o thousand_o but_o to_o the_o apostle_n who_o speak_v the_o word_n with_o boldness_n act._n 4._o 23_o 31._o nor_o do_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d multitude_n note_v every_o individual_a person_n man_n and_o woman_n mat._n 8._o 37._o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o gadarens_n beseech_v christ_n to_o depart_v festus_n act._n 25._o 24._o all_o the_o multitude_n have_v dealâ_n with_o i_o about_o paul_n luke_n 1._o 10._o the_o whole_a multitude_n be_v pray_v without_o see_v the_o reverend_a assembly_n at_o westminster_n they_o meet_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o every_o house_n it_o note_v a_o church-meeting_n act._n 5._o 42._o &_o 16._o 15._o &_o 20_o 7_o 8_o 10._o rom._n 16._o 5._o 1_o cor._n 16._o 19_o phil._n 1._o 2._o but_o that_o all_o these_o thousand_o interest_v in_o ordinance_n and_o government_n as_o the_o brethren_n say_v meet_v for_o the_o same_o word_n break_v of_o bread_n government_n and_o censure_n in_o the_o same_o house_n need_v no_o refutation_n it_o refute_v itself_o 3._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n though_o one_o body_n have_v many_o member_n church_n rom._n 12._o and_o can_v not_o be_v one_o single_a congregation_n 1._o in_o it_o be_v many_o church_n lesser_a as_o the_o house_n of_o aristobulus_n rom._n 16._o 0._o of_o narcissus_n v_o 11._o &_o 14._o philolâgus_n neâea_n julâus_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n wâth_v they_o v_o 15._o the_o church_n at_o the_o house_n of_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n many_o teacher_n and_o fellow-helper_n veâs_n 3_o 9_o 12._o 4._o the_o church_n of_o thessalonica_n can_v not_o be_v one_o single_a congregation_n church_n their_o faith_n be_v hear_v in_o all_o achaia_n and_o all_o place_n 1_o thes._n 1._o 6_o 7_o 8._o of_o they_o paul_n glory_v in_o all_o the_o church_n v_o 16._o paul_n at_o one_o sermon_n convert_v of_o they_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o great_a mul_fw-la titude_n and_o of_o devout_a woman_n act._n 17._o 4._o not_o a_o few_o also_o what_o must_v be_v the_o growth_n of_o that_o church_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d act._n 15._o 33._o when_o they_o tarry_v at_o antioch_n steph._n some_o time_n beza_n not_o a_o admitterent_fw-la little_a time_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n continue_v there_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d with_o many_o other_o teacher_n and_o when_o god_n lay_v the_o daily_a care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n upon_o one_o man_n 2_o cor_fw-la 11._o 28._o and_o upon_o other_o eminent_a member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n that_o the_o lord_n send_v so_o many_o eminent_a teacher_n and_o prophet_n to_o one_o congregation_n only_o at_o antioch_n at_o corinth_n who_o can_v believe_v it_o 5._o the_o church_n of_o ephâsus_n have_v divers_a congregation_n if_o not_o more_o than_o one_o 1_o cor._n 16._o 19_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n saluââ_n you_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n salute_v you_o much_o in_o the_o lord_n with_o thâ_n church_n at_o their_o house_n so_o marlorat_n so_o parâus_a and_o bâza_n on_o rom._n 16._o see_v the_o english_a divine_n on_o the_o place_n and_o diodati_n there_o be_v divers_a small_a assembly_n in_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o city_n see_v 1_o cor._n 16._o 19_o col._n 4._o 15._o so_o be_v church-assembly_n ordinary_a for_o pray_v in_o the_o house_n of_o mary_n act._n 12._o 12._o joh._n 20._o 19_o 26._o in_o a_o upper_a chamber_n at_o preach_v pray_v and_o choose_v of_o a_o apostle_n act._n 1._o 13._o pray_a and_o baptise_v in_o the_o house_n of_o justus_n act._n 18._o 7_o 8_o preach_v in_o the_o schoâl_n of_o tyrannus_n act._n 19_o 9_o preach_v celebrate_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o a_o house_n of_o troas_n act._n 20._o 8_o 20._o &_o 5._o 42._o &_o 10._o 24._o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n at_o westminster_n prove_v that_o there_o be_v more_o congregation_n than_o one_o at_o ephesus_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v many_o elder_n over_o they_o as_o one_o flock_n act_n 20._o 17_o etc._n etc._n 3._o that_o these_o congregation_n be_v one_o church_n rev._n 2._o to_o which_o add_v 1._o the_o multitude_n of_o convert_v luke_n say_v act._n 19_o 10_o 17._o three_o time_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d all_o the_o jew_n and_o greek_n in_o asia_n and_o at_o ephesus_n hear_v the_o gospel_n a_o great_a door_n there_o be_v open_v sorcerer_n convert_v act._n 19_o and_o paul_n give_v direction_n to_o timothy_n how_o he_o shall_v govern_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 15_o 16._o at_o ephesus_n 1_o tim._n 1._o 3._o upon_o who_o he_o shall_v lay_v hand_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 1_o 2._o 1_o tim._n 6._o 4._o to_o what_o faithful_a man_n able_a to_o teach_v other_o he_o shall_v commit_v the_o ministry_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o have_v it_o be_v a_o single_a congregation_n where_o one_o may_v teach_v at_o once_o only_o what_o need_v such_o watch_n over_o false_a teacher_n speak_v perverse_a thing_n and_o gather_v disciple_n and_o church_n out_o of_o one_o single_a church_n act_n 20._o 27_o 28_o 29._o and_o try_v of_o false_a apostle_n rev._n 2._o 1_o 2_o 3._o who_o be_v not_o send_v to_o one_o single_a congregation_n and_o there_o have_v be_v need_n to_o take_v heed_n to_o such_o as_o speak_v lie_n sow_v unprofitable_a question_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 6_o 11_o 12._o 2_o tim._n 6._o 3_o 4._o 2_o tim._n 2._o 14_o 15_o 16._o and_o so_o there_o must_v have_v be_v many_o preach_v elder_n there_o 6._o at_o corinth_n there_o have_v be_v many_o instructer_n 1_o cor._n 4._o 16._o many_o doctor_n and_o prophet_n 1_o cor._n 14._o 24_o
he_o be_v a_o stranger_n for_o by_o this_o way_n he_o be_v a_o alien_n and_o deprive_v of_o their_o sanctuary_n joy_n and_o glory_n of_o that_o congâegregation_n both_o in_o church-hearing_a believe_v and_o joy_n of_o the_o seal_n 7._o by_o this_o way_n christ_n must_v promise_v his_o ministerial_a presence_n and_o his_o spirit_n not_o always_o as_o mat._n 28._o 20._o eph._n 4._o 11_o 12._o joh._n 20._o 21._o act_n 1._o 8._o and_o in_o every_o congregation_n where_o they_o open_v the_o mouth_n but_o only_o in_o one_o fix_a congregation_n with_o what_o faith_n can_v they_o preach_v elsewhere_o or_o people_n hear_v the_o pastor_n elsewhere_o chap._n viii_o argument_n against_o a_o presbyterial_a church_n take_v from_o the_o name_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n matth._n 18._o be_v discuss_v mr._n h._n a_o church_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v never_o use_v for_o the_o elder_n ground_n only_o ans._n it_o be_v never_o use_v in_o the_o n._n t._n for_o man_n only_o who_o govern_v seclude_v woman_n and_o child_n as_o mr._n h._n take_v it_o nor_o for_o the_o people_n seclude_v the_o elder_n as_o a_o govern_n society_n but_o of_o the_o signification_n hereafter_o but_o it_o can_v be_v a_o bind_n and_o authoritative_a lose_v church_n mr._n h._n there_o can_v be_v a_o definition_n give_v that_o will_v agree_v to_o a_o congregational_a and_o presbyterial_a church_n ans._n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o presbyterial_a church_n it_o follow_v 128._o not_o 2._o as_o we_o take_v a_o congregational_a church_n for_o the_o eldership_n rule_v it_o be_v false_a one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n of_o a_o rule_v church_n agree_v to_o the_o congregational_a presbyterial_a provincial_a eldership_n and_o so_o they_o differ_v per_fw-la magis_fw-la &_o minus_fw-la as_o be_v say_v mr._n h._n if_o the_o congregation_n be_v species_n specialissimae_fw-la of_o a_o true_a church_n than_o there_o can_v be_v no_o low_a species_n result_v or_o arise_v from_o they_o as_o this_o do_v ans._n no_o logic_n can_v say_v the_o church_n of_o boston_n so_o exist_v specialissimae_fw-la have_v other_o species_n of_o the_o church_n of_o boston_n under_o it_o the_o hand_n of_o socrates_n can_v be_v call_v species_n specialissima_fw-la nor_o be_v the_o hand_n to_o speak_v logical_o a_o species_n it_o be_v a_o part_n and_o a_o uncomplete_a part_n of_o the_o body_n if_o mr._n h._n mean_v as_o it_o seem_v he_o do_v that_o we_o make_v presbyterian_a provincial_a church_n low_a species_n and_o kind_n of_o congregational_a church_n the_o pious_a man_n refute_v presbyterian_a government_n which_o he_o understand_v not_o for_o species_n specialissima_fw-la praedicatur_fw-la de_fw-la inferioribus_fw-la according_a to_o aristotle_n his_o ramus_n and_o all_o logic_n and_o o_o what_o monster_n feed_v we_o if_o this_o be_v true_a properly_z a_o presbyterial_a church_n be_v a_o congregational_a church_n or_o a_o congregation_n be_v a_o presbyterial_a church_n for_o the_o congregation_n be_v a_o integral_a part_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a church_n the_o presbyterian_a likewise_o a_o integral_a part_n of_o the_o provincial_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v species_n to_o other_o except_o we_o say_v euphrates_n be_v the_o element_n of_o water_n the_o element_n of_o water_n be_v euphrates_n m._n h._n if_o every_o congregation_n have_v all_o the_o integral_a part_n of_o a_o church_n than_o it_o be_v a_o entire_a and_o complete_a church_n ans._n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o entire_a politic_a church_n in_o its_o association_n apolog_n with_o other_o church_n it_o follow_v not_o but_o what_o then_o london_n be_v a_o entire_a city_n have_v all_o the_o integral_a part_n of_o a_o society_n major_n sheriff_n alderman_n ruler_n and_o rule_v ergo_fw-la london_n be_v no_o part_n of_o england_n nor_o rule_v by_o the_o parliament_n of_o england_n what_o logic_n be_v this_o but_o if_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o congregation_n associate_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o ten_o congregation_n be_v so_o a_o city_n different_a in_o species_n and_o in_o nature_n from_o all_o other_o congregation_n and_o so_o marry_v to_o its_o own_o pastor_n as_o the_o husband_n and_o wife_n be_v so_o that_o to_o exercise_v church-act_n official_a act_n without_o themselves_o be_v adultery_n and_o unlawful_a and_o so_o as_o this_o church_n be_v no_o integral_a part_n of_o the_o body_n catholic_n it_o be_v against_o scripture_n and_o sound_a reason_n and_o a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n mr._n h._n every_o integrum_fw-la be_v make_v up_o of_o his_o member_n therefore_o in_o nature_n they_o be_v before_o therefore_o church_n before_o classis_fw-la therefore_o what_o each_o have_v they_o receive_v from_o they_o therefore_o they_o have_v no_o office_n but_o from_o they_o therefore_o both_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n come_v from_o they_o ans._n i_o desider_v at_o a_o syllogism_n every_o whole_a incorporation_n be_v make_v up_o of_o its_o member_n that_o be_v before_o the_o whole_a and_o have_v power_n office_n ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o these_o member_n it_o be_v deny_v by_o we_o and_o naked_o assert_v by_o mr._n h._n for_o church_n 1._o the_o church_n be_v before_o the_o apostle_n ergo_fw-la the_o apostle_n have_v their_o immediate_a call_n and_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n from_o the_o church_n it_o be_v against_o scripture_n as_o woman_n and_o child_n be_v by_o nature_n before_o officer_n ergo_fw-la officer_n have_v their_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o woman_n and_o child_n 3_o church_n be_v before_o counsel_v and_o advise_v yea_o as_o mr._n cotton_n say_v well_o before_o pastoral_o and_o authoritative_o determine_v synod_n ergo_fw-la synod_n have_v all_o their_o synodical_a power_n to_o counsel_n and_o pastoral_o teach_v from_o the_o church_n they_o come_v from_o it_o follow_v not_o not_o will_n our_o brethren_n yield_v the_o consequence_n mr._n h._n if_o a_o congregation_n grow_v too_o big_a and_o therefore_o be_v force_v church_n to_o swarm_v out_o or_o in_o ease_n they_o transplant_v themselves_o from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o so_o that_o part_n be_v force_v to_o go_v before_o other_o to_o make_v preparation_n for_o those_o that_o follow_v we_o then_o send_v a_o officer_n with_o the_o small_a party_n and_o the_o great_a number_n remain_v with_o the_o rest_n and_o yet_o be_v all_o but_o one_o church_n in_o our_o account_n and_o under_o one_o presbytery_n of_o choose_a elder_n of_o the_o congregation_n ans._n 1._o why_o do_v not_o our_o brethren_n show_v a_o practice_n of_o this_o in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n consist_v of_o so_o many_o act._n 2._o &_o 4._o &_o 6._o thousand_o if_o more_o than_o five_o thousand_o all_o in_o one_o congregation_n be_v there_o not_o need_v that_o four_o or_o six_o congregation_n shall_v swarm_v out_o of_o six_o thousand_o and_o six_o officer_n be_v send_v with_o they_o in_o which_o case_n suppose_v they_o go_v forty_o mile_n to_o a_o new_a colony_n and_o five_o congregation_n meet_v in_o five_o sundry_a place_n for_o word_n and_o sacrament_n here_o must_v be_v five_o church_n âs_v our_o brethren_n take_v the_o word_n church_n 1_o cor._n 11._o 18._o act._n 11._o 16_o &_o 21._o 22._o &_o 4._o 31._o mat._n 18._o 17._o &_o 16._o 18._o sure_o though_o they_o have_v no_o officer_n they_o be_v a_o homogeneous_a true_a visible_a church_n as_o mr._n h_n teach_v page_n 1._o c._n 5._o page_n 5._o and_o so_o here_o or_o six_o church_n if_o we_o contend_v not_o about_o name_n under_o one_o presbyterial_a government_n which_o be_v the_o yield_v of_o the_o cause_n and_o yet_o at_o forty_o mile_n distance_n and_o yet_o by_o no_o will_n or_o appointment_n can_v they_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n o_o but_o they_o be_v all_o one_o church_n in_o our_o account_n one_o congregation_n in_o christ_n account_n show_v we_o scripture_n for_o this_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n church_n in_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n that_o they_o be_v one_o single_a congregation_n otherwise_o mr._n h._n his_o account_n be_v no_o account_n if_o they_o be_v one_o church_n because_o they_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o power_n jurisdiction_n officer_n they_o have_v before_o so_o we_o say_v and_o the_o same_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o nature_n and_o essence_n we_o grant_v but_o so_o all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n covenant_n seal_n say_v christ_n hope_v of_o glory_n so_o we_o agree_v why_o dispute_v we_o if_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o all_o these_o six_o swarm_n for_o a_o thousand_o will_v be_v a_o number_n too_o great_a for_o one_o congregation_n if_o not_o sufficient_a be_v but_o one_o individual_a congregation_n though_o now_o separate_v by_o forty_o mile_n and_o meet_v in_o six_o sundry_a place_n 1._o give_v we_o scripture_n for_o that_o church_n 2._o give_v we_o any_o greek_a author_n sacred_a or_o profane_a that_o so_o speak_v for_o we_o stand_v not_o to_o mr._n h._n his_o account_n
teach_v any_o of_o they_o or_o all_o of_o they_o be_v not_o sinful_a but_o sure_a the_o apostle_n may_v govern_v send_v their_o decree_n and_o epistle_n to_o many_o church_n the_o member_n whereof_o they_o never_o see_v in_o the_o face_n nor_o can_v all_o the_o many_o thousand_o who_o have_v power_n of_o judge_v with_o the_o elder_n as_o our_o brethren_n say_v meet_v in_o one_o place_n comely_a and_o comfortable_o to_o act_v and_o therefore_o christ_n so_o must_v never_o have_v appoint_v such_o a_o judicature_n to_o rule_v all_o these_o congregation_n who_o be_v entitative_o one_o so_o must_v they_o say_v what_o we_o say_v and_o more_o for_o all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n be_v entitative_o and_o in_o nature_n one_o and_o yet_o our_o brethren_n will_v be_v far_o from_o say_v that_o they_o be_v all_o under_o one_o government_n as_o they_o say_v that_o these_o meeting_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v m._n h._n the_o rest_n of_o the_o example_n of_o antioch_n ephesus_n rome_n though_o it_o be_v grant_v upon_o their_o great_a growth_n and_o increase_v and_o so_o want_v of_o elder_n they_o may_v meet_v in_o divers_a place_n for_o the_o while_n these_o might_n still_o be_v under_o one_o presbytery_n their_o officer_n in_o a_o distinct_a manner_n attend_v upon_o they_o and_o therefore_o gerson_n bucerus_n in_o his_o answer_n say_v here_o quis_fw-la adeo_fw-la ineptire_fw-la sustinuerit_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o can_v say_v that_o because_o they_o meet_v in_o divers_a place_n they_o be_v under_o divers_a presbytery_n or_o elder_n ans._n 1._o this_o be_v a_o short_a way_n of_o answer_v with_o a_o leave_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o samaria_n a_o great_a city_n wherein_o all_o both_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v baptize_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n of_o thessalonica_n etc._n etc._n 2._o and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o less_o cause_n to_o say_v all_o the_o saint_n rome_n at_o rome_n antioch_n ephesus_n samaria_n can_v not_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n then_o that_o these_o of_o jerusalem_n can_v not_o 2._o if_o they_o may_v meet_v in_o divers_a place_n for_o the_o while_n and_o yet_o be_v under_o one_o presbytery_n here_o be_v a_o presbyterial_a church_n of_o many_o congregation_n for_o a_o while_n here_o be_v a_o prelatical_a and_o antichristian_a government_n for_o a_o while_n at_o least_o ordain_v by_o christ._n and_o mr._n h._n write_v a_o book_n with_o a_o huge_a noise_n of_o absurdity_n with_o which_o he_o burden_v his_o brethren_n the_o presbyterian_o yet_o he_o will_v suffer_v their_o church_n to_o stand_v for_o a_o while_n 3._o who_o tell_v mr._n h_o that_o a_o presbyterial_a church_n may_v stand_v for_o a_o while_n during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o growth_n of_o the_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n antioch_n ephesus_n but_o no_o long_o for_o when_o the_o swarm_v out_o church_n be_v once_o settle_v the_o presbyterian_a church_n must_v down_o again_o since_o the_o scripture_n speak_v nothing_o of_o this_o who_o give_v mr._n h._n leave_v to_o set_v up_o a_o antichristian_a tabernacle_n for_o so_o be_v the_o presbytery_n to_o he_o for_o a_o hour_n and_o pull_v it_o down_o again_o 4._o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o mr._n h._n shall_v cite_v gerson_n bucer_n cutted_o as_o a_o witness_n so_o much_o for_o a_o presbyterial_a church_n not_o in_o the_o swarm_a out_o of_o church_n only_o of_o which_o bucer_n have_v not_o one_o word_n but_o in_o the_o settle_a state_n of_o the_o church_n for_o bucer_n contradict_v mr._n h._n and_o all_o his_o as_o foolish_o err_v when_o they_o say_v such_o church_n meet_v in_o divers_a place_n for_o the_o word_n and_o seales_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v independent_a in_o their_o government_n and_o can_v be_v under_o one_o common_a government_n bucer_n say_v if_o they_o lie_v near_o together_o it_o be_v folly_n to_o say_v they_o be_v under_o divers_a presbytery_n and_o so_o say_v we_o mr._n h._n 2._o it_o do_v not_o appear_v out_o of_o any_o text_n nor_o any_o evince_a argument_n gather_v therefrom_o that_o set_v aside_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n they_o shall_v needs_o meet_v in_o several_a place_n ans._n then_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n meet_v in_o sundry_a place_n by_o mr._n h._n his_o argument_n but_o this_o shall_v offend_v the_o dissent_v brethren_n that_o maintain_v against_o the_o synod_n at_o westminster_n that_o jerusalem_n they_o meet_v all_o in_o one_o place_n 2._o mr._n h._n shall_v have_v give_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n meet_v in_o sundry_a place_n and_o not_o the_o other_o church_n of_o antioch_n ephesus_n but_o because_o he_o see_v our_o argument_n run_v as_o strong_a for_o other_o church_n as_o for_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v please_v to_o dictate_v what_o he_o can_v not_o demonstrate_v and_o so_o leave_v the_o reader_n in_o the_o dark_a 3._o before_o i_o leave_v this_o let_v mr._n h._n or_o he_o teach_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o that_o there_o be_v about_o three_o thousand_o add_v to_o the_o church_n act._n 2._o 21._o whether_o by_o the_o church_n be_v mean_v the_o one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o of_o which_o ch_n 1._o and_o whether_o there_o the_o one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o be_v there_o to_o receive_v the_o three_o thousand_o as_o member_n at_o that_o time_n in_o a_o judicial_a way_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o there_o how_o the_o three_o thousand_o be_v not_o add_v primary_o to_o the_o catholic_a christian_a church_n that_o then_o be_v and_o secondary_o church_n to_o this_o or_o to_o that_o church_n as_o we_o say_v for_o when_o there_o be_v say_v to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n they_o be_v not_o add_v to_o themselves_o mr._n h._n 3._o let_v it_o be_v consider_v whether_o by_o church_n may_v not_o be_v mean_v many_o church_n saul_n make_v havoc_n of_o the_o church_n i_o e._n of_o the_o faithful_a of_o many_o church_n ans._n it_o be_v weak_a as_o water_n saul_n persecute_v the_o church_n i._n e._n logic_n member_n of_o the_o independent_a church_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o presbyterial_a church_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o synod_n for_o he_o persecute_v james_n peter_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o brethren_n member_n of_o the_o synod_n where_o he_o may_v find_v they_o now_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o fix_v member_n of_o congregation_n and_o let_v mr._n h._n consider_v whether_o luke_n give_v not_o a_o better_a interpretat_fw-la on_o then_o he_o act._n 83._o saul_n make_v havoc_n of_o the_o church_n enter_v into_o every_o house_n and_o hale_v mân_z and_o woman_n and_o commit_v they_o to_o pâison_n so_o that_o saul_n destroy_v the_o scatter_a member_n that_o be_v nât_o inchurch_v and_o where_o he_o find_v any_o of_o this_o way_n act._n 9_o 2._o whether_o member_n of_o a_o congregation_n or_o not_o even_o member_n of_o divers_a meeting_n under_o one_o presbytery_n as_o he_o grant_v he_o persecute_v they_o and_o by_o this_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n act._n 11._o 22._o must_v be_v church_n congregational_a at_o jerusalem_n and_o act._n 2._o the_o lord_n add_v to_o the_o church_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o be_v the_o lord_n add_v to_o divers_a independent_a congregation_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v good_a but_o this_o church_n and_o these_o common_a elder_n meet_v for_o act_n of_o government_n act._n 2._o 18._o and_o the_o day_n follow_v paul_n go_v in_o with_o we_o to_o jââ¦_n and_o all_o the_o elder_n verse_n 25._o be_v present_a sâre_n the_o place_n show_v they_o meet_v for_o act_n of_o government_n yea_o act._n 11._o 30._o &_o 21._o 18._o they_o send_v alm_n to_o the_o elder_n of_o judea_n to_o be_v distribute_v to_o the_o distress_a in_o judea_n as_o also_o the_o elder_n of_o judea_n be_v member_n of_o the_o synod_n act._n 1â_n and_o how_o can_v there_o be_v administrate_v of_o the_o seal_n without_o any_o jurisdiction_n at_o all_o to_o debar_v the_o unworthy_a chap._n ix_o the_o argument_n of_o mr._n r._n for_o a_o ministerial_a church_n from_o matth._n 18._o be_v vindicate_v from_o the_o exception_n of_o mr._n hooker_n mr._n h._n if_o christ_n allude_v to_o the_o synedry_n then_o must_v mat._n 18._o 130._o be_v expound_v of_o a_o presbyterial_a church_n mr._n h._n both_o proposition_n and_o assumption_n be_v deny_v ans._n mr._n h._n leap_v from_o one_o book_n to_o another_o i_o no_o answer_v where_o frame_n a_o argument_n from_o a_o mere_a allusion_n but_o so_o if_o christ_n so_o allude_v to_o a_o authoritative_a company_n that_o have_v power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v as_o the_o jewish_a sanhedrim_n in_o this_o mat._n 18._o then_o he_o judge_v the_o church_n mat._n 18._o to_o be_v a_o juridical_a church_n 2._o it_o be_v a_o poor_a argument_n he_o allude_v not_o to_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n because_o that_o synagogue_n have_v no_o power_n of_o excommunication_n as_o this_o church_n mat._n 18._o have_v
say_v he_o but_o can_v there_o be_v no_o allusion_n to_o a_o judicature_n except_o the_o one_o to_o which_o allusion_n be_v make_v and_o that_o of_o which_o the_o present_a speech_n be_v have_v the_o like_a power_n then_o can_v the_o scripture_n allude_v to_o earthly_a prince_n who_o place_n their_o great_a courtier_n upon_o the_o right_a hand_n because_o earthly_a prince_n have_v not_o the_o like_a power_n with_o the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ._n this_o destroy_v all_o allusion_n which_o abound_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o paul_n rom._n 10._o 18._o allude_v to_o the_o sun_n malachi_n compare_v gospel-worship_n to_o the_o burn_a of_o incense_n chap._n 1._o shall_v it_o then_o follow_v that_o the_o one_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o other_o that_o allusion_n bring_v little_a light_n be_v say_v without_o ground_n for_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o metaphor_n often_o which_o bring_v light_a must_v bring_v much_o light_n 3._o that_o synagogue_n have_v no_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v seem_v to_o bring_v darkness_n and_o not_o light_a the_o contrary_n be_v job._n 9_o and_o 16._o though_o they_o abuse_v that_o ordinance_n mr._n h._n it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o send_v the_o plaintiff_n to_o a_o general_a council_n he_o may_v be_v dead_a before_o he_o be_v relieve_v and_o the_o council_n be_v gather_v ans._n we_o send_v no_o man_n by_o a_o loup_n to_o a_o general_n council_n but_o the_o grieve_a man_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o near_a judicature_n and_o mr._n h._n will_v have_v he_o to_o loup_v to_o a_o general_n council_n at_o the_o first_o be_v accuse_v of_o a_o scandal_n which_o declare_v that_o he_o will_v elude_v all_o the_o government_n of_o christ_n between_o he_o and_o that_o judicature_n 2._o we_o do_v not_o maintain_v any_o appeal_n whatsoever_o but_o only_o plaintiff_n righteous_a appeal_n illud_fw-la tantum_fw-la pâssumus_fw-la quod_fw-la jure_fw-la possumus_fw-la 3._o so_o may_v the_o plaintiff_n be_v bury_v before_o a_o synod_n by_o way_n of_o consultation_n may_v be_v have_v the_o way_n of_o discipline_n aâ_n all_o christ_n ordinary_a way_n in_o the_o gospel_n may_v possible_o never_o take_v effect_n in_o those_o to_o who_o the_o word_n be_v a_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n but_o that_o do_v not_o nullify_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n mr._n h._n our_o saviour_n mat._n 18._o point_n at_o a_o stand_a tribunal_n of_o such_o a_o church_n as_o be_v at_o hand_n whereof_o both_o party_n be_v member_n 131._o ans._n it_o be_v a_o pervert_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n mat._n 18._o that_o i_o no_o man_n trespass_v who_o i_o must_v endeavour_v to_o gain_v can_v be_v my_o brother_n but_o he_o who_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o same_o congregation_n of_o which_o i_o be_o a_o member_n this_o be_v to_o renounce_v and_o quit_v all_o brotherly_a communion_n with_o all_o church_n on_o earth_n but_o only_o that_o single_a congregation_n of_o which_o i_o be_o a_o member_n when_o not_o one_o brother_n but_o twenty_o or_o many_o church_n of_o brethren_n without_o the_o congregation_n as_o false_a brethren_n of_o judea_n trespass_n against_o antioch_n by_o perverse_a doctrine_n act._n 15._o there_o be_v not_o a_o judicature_n aâ_n hand_n have_v christ_n provide_v to_o tell_v no_o church_n and_o leave_v no_o remedy_n to_o remove_v the_o great_a of_o scandal_n mr._n h._n how_o can_v a_o church_n in_o a_o island_n or_o the_o first_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n act._n 1._o 23._o exercise_n discipline_n upon_o a_o offender_n upon_o this_o ground_n ans._n why_o not_o since_o the_o purpose_n of_o christ_n be_v that_o every_o church_n even_o the_o less_o of_o one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o act_v 1._o and_o the_o great_a of_o ten_o thousand_o act._n 2._o &_o 4._o &_o 6._o shall_v respective_o purge_v themselves_o and_o when_o association_n of_o many_o follow_v church_n about_o shall_v be_v they_o shall_v also_o purge_v those_o without_o the_o congregation_n scandal_n fall_v out_o where_o many_o meeting_n be_v and_o one_o only_a presbytery_n over_o they_o as_o mr._n h._n grant_v to_o which_o of_o the_o meeting_n shall_v the_o plaintiff_n complain_v the_o offender_n be_v of_o divers_a meeting_n or_o church_n that_o be_v not_o at_o hand_n mr._n h._n the_o sanhedrim_n be_v a_o mix_a judicature_n partly_o of_o ecclesiastical_a partly_o of_o civil_a judge_n deut._n 17._o 12._o 2_o chron._n 19_o ergo_fw-la allusion_n can_v be_v make_v thereunto_o ans._n the_o consequence_n be_v naught_o institution_n 2._o mr._n h._n with_o the_o prelate_n confound_v the_o judicature_n but_o they_o be_v clear_o distinguish_v while_o one_o be_v appoint_v for_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o king_n another_o for_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o lord_n 2_o chron._n 19_o 11._o so_o be_v they_o distinguish_v the_o priest_n or_o the_o judge_n not_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o judge_n diut_a 17._o 12._o man_n may_v sinsul_o confound_v they_o but_o sin_n be_v no_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n mr._n h._n arg._n 2._o the_o church_n of_o believer_n be_v that_o which_o meet_v for_o prophesy_v and_o for_o pray_v but_o this_o mat._n 18._o especial_o for_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o censure_n mr._n h._n the_o church_n of_o believer_n be_v assemble_v main_o for_o prophesy_v and_o pray_v yet_o not_o only_o but_o for_o censure_n also_o the_o word_n be_v end_v ans._n that_o be_v indeed_o in_o question_n that_o man_n woman_n and_o child_n meet_v ordinary_o every_o lordsday_n for_o to_o act_v in_o all_o ordinance_n and_o after_o sermon_n to_o lead_n witness_n bind_v and_o loose_v and_o that_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o believer_n for_o neither_o here_o nor_o in_o scripture_n be_v there_o warrant_v for_o this_o mr._n h._n arg._n 3._o the_o church_n mat._n 18._o be_v such_o a_o superior_a and_o judicial_a seat_n as_o be_v to_o be_v obey_v in_o the_o lord_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n but_o a_o multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v not_o such_o a_o seat_n so_o mr._n r._n master_n h._n the_o major_n be_v the_o question_n and_o the_o conclusion_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v whether_o a_o particular_a congregation_n be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n or_o the_o classical_a church_n and_o mr._n r._n take_v one_o part_n of_o the_o conclusion_n to_o prâve_v the_o other_o if_o the_o congregation_n be_v not_o high_o than_o the_o classical_a must_v be_v the_o minor_a shall_v have_v be_v prove_v not_o naked_o propound_v ans._n i_o propound_v a_o syllogism_n and_o for_o answer_v to_o the_o minor_a mr._n h._n transform_v my_o argument_n which_o i_o dream_v not_o of_o and_o say_v i_o take_v one_o part_n of_o the_o conclusion_n to_o prove_v the_o other_o if_o the_o congregation_n be_v not_o high_o than_o the_o classis_fw-la be_v but_o sir_n that_o be_v not_o one_o part_n of_o the_o conclusion_n to_o prove_v another_o but_o since_o you_o bring_v it_o it_o be_v a_o lawful_a syllogism_n either_o the_o congregation_n or_o the_o classis_fw-la be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n but_o not_o the_o congregation_n yet_o this_o be_v mr._n h._n arg._n not_o i_o the_o church_n mat._n 18._o be_v such_o a_o superior_a seat_n as_o be_v to_o be_v obey_v as_o be_v over_o we_o in_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n but_o no_o scripture_n no_o people_n divine_a in_o the_o world_n say_v that_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n i_o use_v not_o there_o the_o term_n congregational_a church_n at_o all_o be_v such_o a_o superior_a seat_n that_o be_v over_o the_o guide_n and_o who_o the_o guide_n do_v obey_v in_o the_o lord_n or_o disobey_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n this_o minor_a of_o i_o be_v not_o naked_o propound_v the_o scripture_n say_v the_o officer_n be_v over_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n in_o the_o lord_n 1_o thess._n 5._o 12_o 14._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 17._o heb._n 13._o 17._o but_o the_o contrary_n be_v never_o say_v they_o do_v not_o awake_v that_o say_v this_o be_v to_o take_v one_o part_n of_o a_o conclusion_n to_o prove_v the_o other_o for_o its_o a_o conclusion_n prove_v by_o a_o medium_n that_o be_v no_o part_n neither_o subject_n nor_o attribute_n of_o the_o conclusion_n mr._n h._n arg._n 4._o of_o mr._n r._n whatever_o the_o church_n may_v excommunicate_v every_o member_n thereof_o convene_v with_o the_o church_n may_v inflict_v all_o inferior_a censure_n but_o all_o the_o member_n can_v inflict_v lesser_a punishment_n for_o neither_o woman_n nor_o age_a child_n nor_o the_o unofficed_a brethren_n can_v rebuk_n exhort_v or_o by_o the_o word_n open_o convince_v the_o officer_n ans._n the_o consequence_n be_v feeble_a as_o appear_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o delegated_a power_n which_o be_v commit_v by_o christ_n to_o person_n capable_a thereof_o which_o woman_n for_o their_o sex_n child_n for_o the_o want_n of_o the_o exercise_n of_o understanding_n can_v do_v people_z have_v power_n to_o choose_v officer_n therefore_o woman_n have_v power_n to_o put_v in_o
their_o voice_n the_o body_n of_o a_o corporation_n may_v put_v out_o a_o major_a upon_o desert_n therefore_o woman_n and_o child_n may_v do_v it_o no_o the_o wise_a god_n have_v include_v the_o vote_n of_o woman_n in_o the_o male_a ans._n nay_o but_o mr._n h._n shall_v not_o so_o elude_v the_o argument_n whatsoever_o the_o judge_a bind_v and_o lose_v church_n of_o believer_n may_v do_v that_o every_o member_n of_o the_o joint_a community_n may_v do_v in_o collegio_fw-la if_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o they_o as_o mr_n h._n and_o mr._n cotton_n say_v as_o actual_a believer_n give_v peter_n confession_n mat._n 16._o and_o therefore_o mr._n h._n too_o sudden_o say_v the_o consiquence_n he_o will_v have_v say_v the_o major_a for_o its_o a_o lawful_a syllogism_n be_v feeble_a for_o woman_n child_n son_n come_v to_o agâ_n servant_n which_o he_o leave_v out_o be_v formal_a and_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o believe_a church_n to_o who_o the_o key_n be_v give_v as_o to_o the_o first_o subject_n if_o the_o key_n be_v not_o give_v to_o they_o as_o confess_v and_o profess_v believer_n because_o not_o to_o woman_n son_n servant_n than_o not_o to_o all_o confess_v and_o profess_v believer_n as_o such_o than_o not_o to_o all_o bless_a as_o teach_v by_o a_o teacher_n above_o flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o peter_n be_v mat._n 16._o this_o shall_v cross_v the_o principle_n of_o our_o brethren_n &_o the_o truth_n and_o scripture_n can_v but_o cross_v they_o nor_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v but_o woman_n son_n come_v to_o age_n servant_n be_v no_o less_o member_n of_o that_o church_n than_o the_o multitude_n of_o male-believer_n for_o they_o confess_v christ_n as_o peter_n be_v bless_v and_o build_v on_o the_o rock_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n and_o be_v no_o less_o conceive_v in_o charity_n to_o have_v some_o spiââ¦l_a good_a in_o they_o as_o mr._n h._n dictate_v cap._n 2._o par_fw-fr 1_o 15_o 16._o and_o these_o must_v be_v visible_a saint_n to_o who_o mr._n h._n his_o definition_n of_o visible_a saint_n agree_v and_o therefore_o our_o brethren_n must_v either_o quit_v the_o principle_n they_o follow_v or_o then_o a_o multitude_n of_o believer_n of_o visible_a saint_n must_v be_v large_a than_o the_o actual_a bind_n and_o lose_v church_n mat._n 18._o and_o against_o their_o will_n this_o tell_v the_o church_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o tell_v some_o believer_n only_o if_o they_o will_v the_o officer_n but_o tell_v not_o woman_n nor_o son_n nor_o servant_n for_o they_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o bind_n and_o lose_v church_n and_o if_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n that_o be_v as_o the_o hebraism_n there_o if_o he_o obey_v not_o the_o church_n if_o he_o obey_v not_o some_o believer_n man_n and_o head_n of_o family_n not_o woman_n servant_n âons_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o publican_n etc._n etc._n 2._o so_o woman_n be_v either_o not_o capable_a of_o believe_v and_o visible_a 18._o saintship_n which_o none_o can_v say_v or_o they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o a_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o so_o a_o power_n capable_a of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n as_o the_o church_n mat._n 18._o 3._o nor_o be_v woman_n son_n servant_n debar_v from_o voice_n in_o election_n because_o it_o be_v a_o church-power_n for_o it_o be_v no_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n for_o 1._o their_o tacit_n voice_n and_o consent_n be_v not_o exclude_v because_o they_o must_v try_v the_o spirit_n &_o not_o upon_o trust_n &_o fide_fw-la implicitâ_fw-la believe_v every_o teacher_n more_o than_o man_n or_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v more_o than_o their_o husband_n nor_o must_v they_o take_v doctrine_n as_o truth_n upon_o their_o husband_n word_n not_o be_v woman_n so_o exclude_v from_o speak_v in_o the_o church_n as_o they_o may_v upon_o no_o occasion_n confess_v their_o faith_n 2._o profess_v vocal_o repentance_n 3._o depose_v as_o witness_n 4._o accuse_v the_o guilty_a before_o the_o bind_a church_n 4._o nor_o may_v a_o corporation_n cast_v out_o a_o major_a by_o a_o authoritative_a power_n such_o as_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v mat._n 18._o 5._o we_o seek_v a_o warrant_n why_o the_o vote_n of_o woman_n in_o choose_v their_o pastor_n must_v more_o be_v include_v in_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o male_a than_o their_o be_v essential_a part_n of_o the_o redeem_a church_n be_v include_v in_o the_o male_n or_o their_o confess_v public_o that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n as_o many_o woman_n martyr_n and_o son_n and_o servant_n have_v glorious_o do_v and_o yet_o their_o confession_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o death_n must_v be_v personal_a and_o not_o include_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o husband_n or_o parent_n as_o mat._n 10._o 32._o mr._n h._n arg._n 5._o of_o mr._n r._n those_o to_o who_o the_o essence_n and_o definition_n 133._o of_o a_o ministerial_a church_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v do_v belong_v those_o and_o those_o only_o be_v understand_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n mat._n 18._o but_o the_o essence_n and_o definition_n of_o a_o ministerial_a church_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v do_v not_o necessary_o belong_v to_o a_o great_a company_n of_o believer_n assemble_v church-wise_a ans._n both_o proposition_n may_v be_v deny_v neither_o a_o church_n without_o officer_n nor_o as_o have_v they_o be_v here_o only_o understand_v but_o the_o second_o sense_n be_v here_o first_o attend_v for_o both_o people_n and_o elder_n have_v their_o power_n part_n and_o place_n in_o a_o right_a order_n and_o manner_n when_o it_o be_v say_v a_o ministerial_a church_n be_v here_o understand_v ministerial_a note_n either_o minister_n without_o the_o body_n exclusive_o and_o that_o be_v false_a or_o minister_n with_o the_o body_n inclusive_o now_o a_o ministerial_a church_n in_o the_o fair_a sense_n aim_v at_o both_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n the_o proposition_n be_v false_a in_o the_o second_o it_o do_v not_o conclude_v to_o who_o the_o essence_n and_o definition_n of_o a_o ministerial_a i._n e._n of_o a_o church_n of_o minister_n without_o the_o body_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v do_v necessary_o belong_v these_o and_o these_o only_o be_v here_o understand_v this_o mr._n r._n l._n 1._o p._n 226._o refuâeth_n 198._o ans._n well_o then_o mr._n h._n deny_v the_o conclusion_n then_o both_o a_o ministerial_a church_n and_o a_o church_n of_o redeem_a meet_v to_o partake_v of_o ordinance_n have_v their_o part_n here_o ergo_fw-la woman_n have_v their_o part_n here_o 2._o if_o a_o church_n in_o both_o sense_n be_v here_o understand_v when_o all_o the_o officer_n turn_v grievous_a wolf_n socinian_n papist_n familist_n such_o as_o say_v they_o be_v apostle_n and_o do_v liâ_n then_o 1._o must_v the_o people_n that_o be_v stumble_v complain_v to_o themselves_o this_o be_v not_o just_a to_o make_v the_o complain_v party_n say_v m._n h._n judge_n what_o if_o they_o unjust_o complain_v and_o say_v their_o officer_n be_v presbyterial_a and_o prelatical_a and_o be_v legal_a preacher_n and_o preach_v neither_o christ_n nor_o freegrace_n then_o have_v christ_n ordain_v they_o who_o lip_n preserve_v not_o knowledge_n to_o be_v the_o only_o judge_v and_o first_o church_n which_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v to_o be_v the_o mind_n first_o and_o only_o judges-of_a sound_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n in_o officer_n and_o suppose_v the_o church_n of_o people_n and_o officer_n be_v here_o first_o understand_v we_o can_v complain_v of_o the_o familist_n people_n of_o which_o there_o be_v too_o many_o in_o nâe_n to_o the_o elder_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n 2._o nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o people_n and_o elder_n the_o people_n must_v in_o judge_v be_v first_o by_o mr._n h._n have_v their_o power_n part_n and_o place_n in_o this_o work_n for_o all_o elder_n and_o people_n have_v equal_o a_o decisive_a voice_n except_o woman_n and_o child_n and_o servant_n and_o by_o what_o reason_n they_o want_v vote_n a_o reason_n ãâã_d yet_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o 3._o there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o bind_v and_o lose_v may_v be_v transact_v by_o only_a a_o power_n of_o judgement_n in_o people_n for_o then_o a_o say_v power_n of_o office_n be_v accidental_a to_o bind_v and_o lose_v how_o then_o can_v a_o society_n with_o both_o power_n of_o judgement_n and_o of_o office_n be_v understand_v here_o first_o as_o mr._n h._n say_v therefore_o i_o ask_v a_o reason_n why_o officer_n who_o be_v mere_a adjunct_n such_o aâ_n come_v in_o at_o the_o by_o and_o as_o latter_a in_o nature_n power_n and_o operation_n to_o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v have_v any_o hand_n in_o bind_v and_o lose_v since_o all_o officer_n be_v make_v and_o unmake_v ordain_v and_o cast_v out_o by_o the_o male-church_n by_o this_o way_n 4._o nor_o can_v the_o
not_o as_o a_o congregation_n so_o our_o brethren_n in_o this_o as_o in_o many_o other_o point_v abuse_v but_o expound_v not_o the_o word_n mr._n h._n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v in_o she_o the_o church_n congregational_a of_o believer_n as_o in_o the_o cause_n subordinate_o under_o christ_n and_o it_o may_v thereby_o here_o be_v act_v as_o potestas_fw-la judicii_fw-la in_o admission_n of_o member_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o minister_n in_o censure_v by_o admonition_n for_o each_o man_n be_v a_o judge_n of_o his_o brother_n and_o there_o be_v a_o judicial_a way_n of_o admonition_n when_o the_o party_n be_v in_o such_o a_o state_n as_o in_o foro_fw-la exteriori_fw-la they_o can_v make_v process_n juridicè_fw-la against_o each_o other_o so_o there_o be_v a_o power_n of_o gift_n in_o all_o election_n or_o else_o this_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v communicate_v from_o she_o to_o the_o officer_n the_o soul_n do_v not_o see_v but_o by_o a_o eye_n make_v a_o eye_n and_o see_v by_o it_o so_o that_o the_o church_n make_v a_o minister_n and_o dispense_v word_n and_o sacrament_n by_o officer_n answ._n we_o seek_v scripture_n and_o see_v only_a mr._n h._n his_o naked_a assertion_n 1._o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v radical_o in_o the_o church_n of_o redeem_a woman_n one_o to_o wit_n the_o male-church_n of_o redeem_a one_o a_o creature_n for_o name_n and_o thing_n not_o in_o the_o word_n 2._o that_o this_o male-church_n by_o a_o judicial_a power_n admit_v member_n prove_v that_o 3._o in_o the_o absence_n of_o minister_n this_o be_v do_v than_o minister_n and_o elder_n with_o the_o male-church_n exclude_v woman_n age_a child_n judicial_o admit_v member_n than_o all_o female_a member_n and_o child_n and_o servant_n with_o blind_a obedience_n must_v own_v these_o member_n and_o watch_v over_o they_o prove_v this_o for_o woman_n have_v neither_o consent_n nor_o vote_n 4._o that_o every_o one_o may_v judicial_o process_n another_o that_o be_v judicial_o accuse_v one_o another_o and_o complain_v and_o bring_v witness_n against_o one_o another_o and_o prove_v the_o scandal_n that_o be_v true_a and_o may_v judicial_o accuse_v before_o the_o church_n the_o daughter_n or_o servant_n woman_n yea_o or_o man_n that_o be_v incorrigible_a after_o private_a admonition_n but_o that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o male-church_n judge_v one_o another_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v the_o question_n give_v we_o scripture_n for_o it_o 5._o there_o be_v potestas_fw-la doni_fw-la a_o power_n of_o a_o gift_n in_o all_o election_n well_o a_o power_n of_o a_o gift_n of_o discern_v &_o try_v who_o shall_v be_v my_o pastor_n sure_a woman_n have_v their_o gift_n of_o discern_v why_o shall_v pastor_n be_v obtrude_v upon_o woman_n blind_o shall_v man_n have_v dominion_n over_o their_o faith_n i_o be_o glad_a that_o mr._n h._n give_v no_o juridical_a power_n to_o the_o call_n and_o make_v of_o officer_n but_o only_o a_o power_n of_o gift_n potestas_fw-la doni_fw-la but_o the_o church_n communicate_v this_o power_n of_o the_o key_n to_o the_o officer_n that_o be_v the_o male_a church_n of_o redeem_a brethren_n this_o be_v prove_v by_o no_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o a_o similitude_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v by_o poor_a physiology_n the_o soul_n make_v a_o eye_n and_o the_o brethren_n make_v their_o officer_n which_o we_o deny_v god_n make_v they_o by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o elder_n act_n 6._o 6._o 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o mr._n h._n the_o power_n of_o judgement_n be_v the_o church_n formaliter_fw-la ans._n it_o be_v often_o say_v never_o prove_v to_o be_v formaliter_fw-la in_o your_o male_a church_n chap._n iii_o whether_o mr._n hooker_n his_o argument_n conclude_v strong_o that_o the_o people_n have_v a_o power_n of_o judge_v mr._n h._n 197._o the_o power_n of_o judgement_n be_v in_o the_o ruler_n directive_o as_o formal_o in_o the_o people_n they_o out_o of_o a_o office_n power_n lead_v the_o whole_a proceed_n therein_o ans._n i_o never_o hear_v that_o a_o chief_a member_n either_o speaker_n in_o jurisdiction_n parliament_n or_o precedent_n in_o council_n or_o chairman_n in_o committee_n or_o moderator_n in_o assembly_n be_v a_o place_n of_o juridical_a power_n or_o office_n over_o the_o judicature_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n a_o place_n of_o priority_n of_o order_n it_o be_v which_o one_o may_v have_v to_o day_n and_o want_n to_o morrow_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o order_n require_v that_o one_o open_v the_o assembly_n and_o moderate_v the_o meeting_n if_o this_o be_v all_o the_o official_a power_n that_o mr._n h._n give_v to_o officer_n be_v weak_a and_o of_o no_o worth_n 2._o there_o be_v no_o power_n no_o act_n of_o rule_v and_o govern_v give_v to_o the_o pastor_n above_o the_o brethren_n for_o 1._o to_o call_v a_o assembly_n joâl_v 2._o be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o officer_n the_o assembly_n by_o its_o intrinsical_a power_n from_o christ_n may_v convene_v in_o his_o name_n nor_o 2._o to_o examine_v member_n whether_o they_o be_v apostle_n or_o not_o by_o their_o way_n can_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o elder_n rule_v for_o it_o agree_v to_o other_o member_n as_o welâ_n as_o to_o they_o 3._o ordination_n be_v and_o may_v be_v according_a to_o our_o brethren_n and_o create_v of_o officer_n though_o mr._n cotton_n make_v it_o peculiar_a to_o officer_n because_o of_o act._n 6._o 6._o 1_o tim_n 4._o 14._o as_o mr._n cotton_n cite_v yet_o mr._n h._n say_v the_o brethren_n may_v do_v it_o 4._o it_o be_v no_o act_n of_o the_o key_n of_o authority_n that_o the_o elder_n open_v the_o door_n of_o speech_n more_o than_o that_o one_o speak_v before_o another_o or_o that_o elihu_n speak_v more_o than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o friend_n be_v no_o act_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n nor_o 5._o be_v the_o prepare_n of_o matter_n and_o receive_v of_o complaint_n by_o our_o brethren_n way_n proper_a to_o they_o then_o to_o other_o officer_n more_o since_o mr._n h._n say_v all_o equal_o have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n from_o the_o church_n of_o brethren_n what_o power_n of_o the_o key_n the_o pastor_n have_v in_o preach_v and_o exhort_v they_o have_v it_o rather_o over_o the_o congregation_n then_o over_o the_o male-church_n of_o brethren_n nor_o be_v it_o so_o proper_o a_o superiority_n of_o rule_n as_o of_o doctrine_n which_o in_o synod_n they_o have_v over_o church_n nor_o can_v the_o pastor_n have_v a_o directive_n power_n as_o a_o pastor_n over_o the_o brethren_n since_o by_o m._n h._n his_o way_n they_o may_v judge_n and_o censure_v he_o can_v the_o king_n be_v their_o judge_n with_o a_o directive_n power_n who_o not_o be_v a_o parliament_n may_v judge_n authoritative_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v king_n or_o not_o and_o may_v dethrone_v he_o mr._n h._n arg._n 1._o ejusdem_fw-la ist_fw-mi instituere_fw-la &_o destituere_fw-la the_o people_n have_v power_n to_o censure_v and_o depose_v officer_n in_o case_n of_o heresy_n or_o otb_a iviquity_n for_o they_o give_v power_n by_o election_n to_o ruler_n ans._n it_o be_v ordinary_a to_o our_o brethren_n to_o prove_v in_o a_o circle_n the_o fraternity_n have_v power_n to_o choose_v officer_n ere_o they_o have_v power_n to_o depose_v and_o they_o have_v power_n to_o censure_v &_o excommunicate_v he_o whole_a be_v above_o the_o part_n ergo_fw-la they_o must_v have_v power_n to_o ordain_v we_o deny_v the_o fraternity_n can_v either_o make_v or_o unmake_v officer_n 2._o that_o be_v not_o so_o undeniable_a a_o proposition_n a_o assembly_n of_o officer_n a_o church_n of_o thirty_o may_v constitute_v themselves_o in_o a_o judicature_n and_o so_o may_v a_o parliament_n by_o a_o intrinsical_a power_n in_o themselves_o ergo_fw-la they_o may_v for_o heresy_n and_o scandal_n against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n destroy_v and_o censure_v themselves_o it_o follow_v not_o 3._o apostle_n be_v immediate_o call_v of_o god_n and_o make_v pastor_n preach_v habitu_fw-la by_o that_o call_n and_o special_a direction_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o stead_n of_o election_n paul_n be_v forbid_v to_o preach_v in_o bythinia_n and_o call_v to_o preach_v in_o macedonia_n how_o many_o time_n shall_v the_o pâostles_n be_v make_v pastor_n and_o unpastor_v again_o if_o the_o present_a call_n be_v that_o only_o which_o make_v they_o pastor_n levites_n be_v ordain_v to_o serve_v the_o tribe_n joint_o and_o when_o the_o tribe_n be_v disperse_v the_o levite_n be_v disperse_v and_o remain_v levites_n in_o whatever_o place_n they_o come_v to_o as_o mr._n hudson_n show_v 6._o 4._o if_o pastor_n be_v baptize_v and_o member_n of_o the_o churchon_o to_o which_o they_o be_v choose_v pastor_n then_o as_o to_o the_o former_a part_n they_o and_o all_o other_o baptize_v to_o one_o single_a
organic_n body_n but_o it_o have_v power_n to_o edâfie_v itself_o as_o totum_fw-la essentiale_fw-la ans._n christian_n edify_v one_o of_o another_o in_o divers_a congregation_n 1_o thes._n 5._o 12._o col._n 3._o 16._o heb._n 3._o 13._o by_o woman_n and_o child_n of_o age_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o a_o church_n edify_v without_o pastor_n or_o a_o perfect_a of_o the_o body_n without_o officer_n eph._n 4._o 11_o 12._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13_o &_o 28._o 1_o cor._n 14._o 4_o 12._o we_o find_v not_o 2_o your_o male-church_n edify_v without_o pastor_n must_v also_o edify_v as_o a_o organical_a body_n in_o it_o woman_n and_o child_n be_v silent_a and_o some_o unofficed_a pastor_n brother_n teach_v pray_v and_o preside_v in_o the_o create_v of_o officer_n and_o do_v the_o like_a when_o the_o officer_n turn_v grievous_a wolf_n and_o be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o for_o then_o some_o unofficed_a brother_n must_v be_v mouth_n and_o organ_n to_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o be_v the_o very_a charge_n that_o peter_n sustain_v in_o pastoral_a preach_n at_o the_o create_v of_o a_o officer_n and_o the_o apostle_n mathias_n act._n 1._o 15._o mr._n h._n let_v mr._n r._n tell_v how_o god_n set_v teacher_n in_o the_o church_n if_o teacher_n be_v before_o the_o church_n ans._n let_v mr._n h._n tell_v how_o god_n give_v breath_n to_o they_o that_o walk_v on_o the_o earth_n isa._n 42._o 5._o be_v there_o breath_n before_o there_o be_v a_o live_a officer_n man_n walk_v on_o the_o earth_n or_o be_v there_o a_o live_a man_n walk_v on_o the_o earth_n before_o there_o be_v breathe_v teacher_n be_v before_o convert_v as_o father_n be_v before_o child_n john_n baptist_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v before_o such_o as_o they_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o baptize_v noah_n before_o the_o vineyard_n which_o he_o dress_v god_n plant_v apostle_n and_o teacher_n even_o in_o the_o organical_a politic_a church_n before_o it_o be_v a_o politic_a organical_a church_n for_o by_o set_v organ_n in_o the_o body_n he_o make_v it_o a_o organical_a body_n but_o it_o be_v a_o senseless_a inference_n ergo_fw-la these_o organ_n who_o be_v both_o organ_n and_o father_n and_o cause_n procreant_a of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o be_v before_o the_o politic_a church_n have_v be_v for_o natural_a organ_n in_o a_o physical_a body_n be_v only_a organ_n but_o not_o cause_n of_o the_o natural_a body_n but_o politic_a organ_n may_v be_v both_o and_o in_o this_o case_n be_v both_o mr._n h._n to_o these_o be_v the_o key_n promise_v who_o be_v steward_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 4._o 1._o servant_n of_o his_o house_n 2_o cor._n 4._o 5._o ans._n the_o servant_n be_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o these_o place_n than_o the_o roll_a elder_a shall_v bear_v no_o key_n ans._n yet_o the_o conclusion_n be_v strong_a against_o the_o unofficed_a bearer_n mr._n cotton_n &_o the_o new_a england_n discipline_n and_o paul_n be_v herein_o 36._o as_o much_o cross_v as_o i_o be_o for_o to_o they_o the_o roll_a elder_n be_v steward_n apply_v in_o censure_n in_o the_o external_a court_n of_o christ_n the_o word_n as_o the_o teacher_n apply_v it_o concional_o mr._n cotton_n make_v the_o roll_a elder_n to_o be_v include_v with_o the_o teacher_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o and_o by_o the_o argument_n mr._n h._n may_v deny_v office-power_n of_o overseeing_a the_o house_n to_o all_o but_o to_o such_o as_o labour_v in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n mr._n h._n the_o place_n isa._n 9_o 6._o revel_v 3._o 7._o speak_v of_o monarchical_a power_n in_o christ_n only_o and_o prove_v not_o the_o point_n of_o delegated_a power_n ans._n nor_o do_v i_o bring_v they_o for_o any_o other_o end_n but_o to_o prove_v 2d_o that_o the_o key_n whoever_o bear_v they_o head_n or_o servant_n do_v signify_v a_o power_n of_o office_n steward_n oeconomus_fw-la commander_n of_o the_o castle_n and_o so_o be_v never_o give_v to_o unofficed_a brethren_n for_o which_o cause_n i_o bring_v father_n doctor_n divine_n protestant_n learned_a papist_n say_v the_o same_o and_o mr._n h._n pass_v they_o all_o without_o a_o answer_n so_o the_o learned_a pagâin_n mercerus_n shimlârus_n buxtorf_n ark_n of_o noah_n mr._n leigh_n and_o all_o dictionary_n expound_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d when_o give_v to_o house_n prison_n gaol_n kingdom_n and_o stephanus_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o mr._n h._n dictate_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o learned_a interpreter_n and_o linguist_n and_o tell_v we_o beside_o a_o office_n power_n it_o note_v matth._n 16._o a_o judicial_a power_n of_o the_o spouse_n and_o wife_n to_o admit_v unto_o or_o reject_v out_o in_o the_o family_n as_o cause_n require_v but_o 1._o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n he_o give_v not_o 2._o nor_o 209._o say_v christ_n matth._n 16._o any_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o give_v the_o key_n to_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o rock_n as_o the_o formal_a subject_n though_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v he_o give_v they_o for_o that_o church_n as_o the_o object_n and_o final_a cause_n mr._n h._n to_o these_o mat._n 16._o do_v christ_n give_v the_o key_n to_o who_o be_v give_v warrant_n and_o official_a authority_n for_o actual_a exercise_v of_o open_v and_o shut_v but_o this_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n as_o represent_v teacher_n and_o elder_n to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n etc._n etc._n so_o mr._n r._n ans._n all_o may_v be_v grant_v and_o the_o official_a authority_n may_v be_v formal_o in_o the_o officer_n and_o original_o and_o virtual_o in_o the_o church_n 2._o the_o proposition_n be_v fallâ_n to_o wit_n to_o they_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v first_o to_o who_o warrant_n and_o official_a authority_n be_v give_v for_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o same_o key_n for_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v large_a than_o office-power_n ans._n 1._o my_o argument_n be_v yet_o wrong_v to_o the_o same_o person_n guide_n to_o who_o he_o promise_v the_o power_n or_o key_n or_o the_o power_n in_o its_o essence_n actu_fw-la primo_fw-la to_o the_o same_o person_n he_o promise_v shall_v exercise_v the_o specific_a act_n of_o the_o power_n and_o the_o second_o act_n that_o must_v be_v the_o first_o formal_a subject_n to_o which_o god_n promise_v a_o ââ¦sonable_a soul_n and_o the_o second_o and_o specific_a act_n of_o discourse_v and_o that_o must_v be_v essential_o a_o man_n now_o unoffice_v brethren_n be_v not_o ambassador_n but_o they_o be_v only_o these_o to_o who_o the_o ambassador_n and_o officer_n be_v send_v 2._o by_o mr._n h._n the_o âeyes_n must_v in_o their_o official_a power_n begve_v to_o peter_n as_o represent_v the_o guide_n ând_v also_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o the_o power_n of_o rule_v must_v be_v give_v to_o peter_n as_o to_o the_o first_o subject_n represent_v believer_n if_o the_o text_n speak_v this_o it_o be_v a_o new_a conceit_n that_o never_o a_o interpreter_n dream_v of_o and_o it_o must_v be_v make_v out_o that_o peter_n iâ_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o text_n in_o that_o twofold_a relation_n but_o that_o peter_n bind_v and_o lose_v on_o earth_n be_v act_n of_o office_n or_o at_o least_o include_v act_n of_o office_n and_o act_n both_o of_o concional_a and_o also_o juridical_a remit_v and_o retain_v of_o sin_n and_o who_o despise_v peter_n and_o the_o officer_n in_o either_o despise_v christ_n and_o he_o that_o send_v he_o be_v clear_a and_o that_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n be_v a_o bind_v and_o lose_v can_v be_v deny_v and_o that_o remit_v before_o and_o retain_v of_o sin_n flow_v from_o christ_n call_v the_o disciple_n to_o a_o office_n be_v as_o clear_v john_n 20._o 21._o as_o my_o father_n apostle_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o pardon_v they_o be_v pardon_v etc._n etc._n and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o clear_a commission_n to_o peter_n and_o all_o officer_n in_o he_o to_o exercise_v a_o official_a power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v apparent_a by_o this_o text_n if_o by_o any_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o mr._n h._n against_o this_o clear_a text_n say_v here_o pastor_n have_v good_a warrant_n for_o their_o office_n power_n because_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v power_n to_o admit_v choose_v and_o refuse_v officer_n etc._n etc._n but_o because_o mr._n r_o say_v they_o have_v clear_a commission_n for_o the_o key_n both_o in_o power_n v_o 19_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o in_o the_o act_n and_o exercise_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o what_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n but_o though_o the_o place_n be_v clear_a and_o all_o interpreter_n teach_v it_o yet_o will_v not_o mr_n h._n grant_v
that_o by_o mat._n 16._o ãâã_d peter_n and_o other_o church-officer_n christ_n give_v both_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o the_o key_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o power_n v_o 10._o i_o will_v give_v to_o thou_o the_o key_n and_o whosoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v etc._n etc._n and_o if_o mr._n h._n say_v not_o this_o he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o these_o to_o wit_n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o actual_a exercise_n of_o the_o key_n which_o be_v clear_o hold_v forth_o v_o 19_o be_v give_v to_o peter_n so_o confess_v christ_n that_o be_v as_o he_o represent_v all_o believer_n so_o confess_v christ._n and_o so_o all_o such_o must_v have_v both_o the_o key_n and_o the_o formal_a exercise_n of_o pastoral_a bind_n for_o that_o pastoral_a bind_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n v_o 19_o and_o brethren_n and_o woman_n so_o confess_v must_v pastoral_o bind_v v_o 19_o then_o how_o can_v a_o official_a power_n be_v give_v to_o peter_n as_o he_o represent_v this_o male-church_n upon_o a_o mere_a allegiance_n as_o to_o the_o place_n matth._n 28._o 19_o it_o abundant_o preach_v warrant_v the_o disciple_n to_o a_o office-power_n but_o the_o question_n yet_o remain_v whether_o this_o place_n matth._n 16._o especial_o do_v not_o warrant_v more_o clear_o pastor_n as_o pastor_n to_o both_o the_o power_n and_o exercise_v of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o by_o this_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n must_v yet_o have_v this_o sense_n i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n to_o thou_o peter_n as_o represent_v both_o the_o pastor_n and_o believer_n of_o the_o male_a professor_n only_o yet_o peter_n give_v not_o that_o bless_a confession_n as_o a_o apostle_n but_o as_o a_o believer_n enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n aboâe_v flesh_n and_o blood_n nor_o be_v peter_n as_o a_o apostle_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n and_o above_o the_o prevail_a temptation_n of_o satan_n and_o hell_n except_o we_o hold_v from_o this_o place_n the_o pope_n infallibility_n but_o it_o be_v good_a that_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o by_o this_o place_n the_o key_n must_v be_v give_v to_o peter_n as_o represent_v the_o officer_n also_o for_o here_o say_v mr._n h._n pastor_n may_v have_v good_a warrant_n for_o their_o office_n power_n then_o be_v the_o thing_n we_o contend_v for_o also_o grant_v if_o m._n h._n will_v prove_v the_o other_o that_o here_o the_o male_a church_n exclude_v woman_n have_v good_a warrant_n as_o the_o first_o and_o proper_a subject_n to_o challenge_v the_o power_n and_o exercise_v of_o the_o key_n here_o speak_v of_o matth._n 16._o he_o have_v indeed_o perform_v a_o great_a point_n but_o this_o remain_v that_o the_o reader_n be_v leave_v in_o the_o mist_n what_o to_o make_v of_o our_o brethren_n way_n by_o these_o word_n upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o nor_o be_v it_o fair_a argue_v to_o flee_v to_o the_o old_a testament_n say_v judicious_a mr._n firmin_n because_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n numb_a 8._o 10._o lay_v testament_n hand_n upon_o the_o levite_n for_o what_o if_o one_o say_v moses_n the_o magistrate_n lay_v on_o hand_n 2._o if_o it_o be_v a_o good_a warrant_n where_o officer_n be_v as_o in_o the_o place_n be_v aaron_n son_n yet_o the_o people_n only_o and_o not_o the_o presbytery_n though_o there_o be_v a_o sufficient_a one_o must_v lay_v on_o hand_n 3._o aanon_n as_o mr._n firmin_n note_v verse_n 14._o complete_v the_o ordination_n for_o he_o do_v wave_v those_o levite_n before_o the_o lord_n 2._o how_o be_v it_o prove_v that_o moses_n gather_v the_o whole_a people_n numb_a 8._o 10._o thou_o shall_v gather_v the_o whole_a assembly_n the_o whole_a church_n and_o they_o shall_v offer_v they_o in_o sacrifice_n say_v vatablus_n and_o by_o that_o 87._o say_v menochius_fw-la who_o collect_v from_o r._n stephanus_n vatablus_n and_o other_o they_o do_v not_o author_v it_o ative_o ordain_v the_o levite_n but_o give_v over_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o service_n the_o levite_n deut._n 31._o 20._o gather_v to_o i_o all_o the_o elder_n v_o 30._o and_o moses_n speak_v into_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o congregation_n rehal_o junius_n diâdati_n english_a divine_v they_o consent_v to_o the_o call_v of_o the_o levite_n cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n and_o cyprian_a tertullian_n as_o leo_n magnus_n also_o say_v the_o people_n choose_v or_o the_o levite_n be_v call_v they_o be_v then_o present_a so_o beda_n praebere_fw-la lyranus_fw-la junius_n piscator_fw-la ainsworth_n say_v a_o part_n of_o the_o people_n lay_v on_o hand_n on_o the_o levite_n cajetan_a and_o lorinus_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o tribe_n in_o place_n of_o the_o people_n lay_v on_o hand_n and_o consent_v quia_fw-la offerens_fw-la say_v lyra_n debâbat_fw-la ponere_fw-la manum_fw-la super_fw-la oblationem_fw-la svam_fw-la so_o diodati_n they_o imitate_v such_o as_o offer_v by_o lay_v on_o the_o hand_n on_o the_o oblation_n now_o mr._n h._n his_o bind_n &_o lose_v comprehend_v bonum_fw-la eth_z all_o act_n of_o church-power_n not_o only_o by_o public_a â0_n preach_n for_o so_o the_o roll_a elder_n shall_v have_v no_o key_n but_o also_o by_o excommunication_n and_o admission_n admonition_n which_o issue_n from_o judge_a power_n as_o we_o prove_v ans._n that_o be_v say_v gratis_o admonition_n and_o consent_n to_o receive_v in_o and_o cast_v out_o member_n by_o cansent_n necessary_o agree_v to_o woman_n it_o so_o much_o concern_v their_o daily_a practice_n and_o conscience_n and_o they_o have_v no_o judicial_a power_n 2._o by_o no_o scripture_n can_v mr._n h._n prove_v that_o admonition_n of_o brethren_n be_v church-binding_a and_o lose_v ruler_n and_o that_o it_o be_v limit_v to_o one_o congregation_n nor_o can_v a_o single_a flock_n bind_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o a_o sojourn_v visible_a saint_n to_o church_n judge_v in_o one_o single_a congregation_n nor_o be_v there_o one_o jot_n in_o scripture_n to_o tie_v the_o brother_n mat._n 18._o 15._o if_o thy_o brother_n trâspss_n etc._n etc._n to_o a_o brother_n member_n of_o that_o only_a congregation_n of_o which_o the_o plaintiff_n be_v a_o member_n 3._o i_o say_v that_o bind_n and_o lose_v be_v word_n of_o official_a authority_n undue_a to_o unofficed_a brethren_n at_o the_o scripture_n say_v see_v the_o margin_n jer._n 40._o 4_o etc._n etc._n above_o mr._n h._n the_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o peter_n because_o of_o his_o confession_n in_o name_n of_o the_o believer_n ans._n the_o text_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o because_o of_o his_o confession_n 1._o he_o and_o all_o man_n and_o woman_n who_o so_o sincere_o confess_v be_v bless_v because_o real_o regenerate_v flesh_n and_o blood_n have_v not_o reveal_v that_o etc._n etc._n v._n 16._o 2._o because_o of_o this_o confession_n a_o promise_n of_o perseverance_n be_v make_v to_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n invisible_a than_o the_o way_n how_o to_o fulfil_v this_o promise_n be_v set_v down_o i_o will_v make_v this_o invisible_a etc._n church_n visible_a and_o i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n of_o word_n and_o censure_n to_o thou_o peter_n and_o to_o all_o the_o call_v pastor_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o church_n salvation_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o they_o may_v be_v keep_v invincible_a upon_o the_o rock_n mr._n h._n grant_n that_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o believer_n who_o may_v be_v hypocrite_n ans._n add_v and_o to_o they_o as_o the_o first_o formal_a subject_n this_o be_v before_o refute_v but_o it_o be_v ask_v why_o brethren_n believe_v and_o one_o as_o so_o incorporate_v shall_v be_v make_v the_o first_o subject_n of_o the_o key_n by_o this_o text_n and_o not_o also_o the_o first_o subject_n of_o the_o love_n of_o election_n and_o redemption_n by_o which_o they_o be_v build_v on_o the_o rock_n and_o make_v impregnable_a against_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n for_o the_o one_o be_v say_v of_o the_o church_n here_o and_o not_o one_o word_n that_o he_o will_v give_v the_o key_n to_o the_o church_n as_o also_o mr._n h._n grant_v that_o christ_n speak_v not_o to_o peter_n as_o represent_v all_o believer_n but_o only_o the_o disciple_n and_o male-believer_n but_o who_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o you_o disciple_n ans._n it_o be_v true_a he_o propound_v the_o question_n to_o the_o disciple_n only_o but_o say_v he_o that_o hence_o only_a man_n and_o unofficed_a brethren_n do_v of_o a_o single_a congregation_n who_o give_v such_o a_o sincere_a confession_n be_v bless_v and_o build_v on_o the_o rock_n so_o he_o say_v matth._n 13._o 10_o 11._o to_o the_o disciple_n only_o to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o they_o it_o be_v not_o give_v be_v there_o then_o none_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n man_n or_o
woman_n to_o who_o the_o grace_n of_o save_a faith_n be_v give_v but_o only_o the_o disciple_n so_o luke_n 22._o 28._o you_o be_v they_o that_o have_v continue_v with_o i_o in_o my_o temptation_n v._n 29._o and_o i_o appoint_v unto_o you_o a_o kingdom_n then_o to_o the_o disciple_n and_o man_n not_o to_o woman_n who_o suffer_v with_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o kingdom_n appoint_v upon_o this_o account_n all_o the_o promise_n and_o consolation_n of_o send_v the_o comforter_n of_o the_o many_o mansion_n in_o his_o father_n house_n which_o he_o be_v to_o prepare_v for_o they_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o disciple_n as_o brethren_n and_o as_o a_o male-church_n of_o a_o single_a flock_n without_o officer_n not_o choose_v woman_n age_a child_n that_o believe_v and_o therefore_o these_o word_n of_o mr._n h._n that_o christ_n spââ¦s_v not_o to_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o person_n of_o peter_n bless_a be_v you_o for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n etc._n etc._n most_o injurious_o bereave_v all_o woman_n all_o man_n that_o be_v not_o member_n by_o covenant_n of_o this_o male-congregation_n of_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o comfort_n which_o christ_n utter_v to_o his_o disciple_n only_o not_o to_o say_v what_o before_o i_o say_v that_o 1._o this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o text._n and_o 2._o contrary_n to_o the_o peace_n 2._o comfort_n 3._o joy_n 4._o blessedness_n confess_v in_o the_o state_n of_o regeneration_n 5._o faith_n of_o their_o perseverance_n and_o 6._o victory_n over_o temptation_n from_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n of_o all_o who_o contrary_a to_o sect_n and_o heresy_n and_o sundamental_a error_n touch_v christ_n his_o nature_n office_n and_o dignity_n sincere_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v they_o woman_n age_a child_n servant_n sincere_a visible_a saint_n of_o another_o congregation_n or_o sojourn_v saint_n mr._n h._n if_o believer_n say_v mr._n r._n ãâã_d give_v peter_n confession_n and_o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n christ_n be_v make_v a_o ministerial_a church_n than_o the_o official_a power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v shall_v be_v make_v as_o fiâm_v and_o sure_a from_o defection_n as_o the_o church_n of_o believer_n build_v on_o the_o rock_n ans._n the_o assumption_n be_v deny_v for_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o key_n be_v first_o give_v though_o they_o have_v a_o virtual_a power_n to_o call_v man_n to_o office_n yet_o they_o have_v not_o formal_o official_a power_n nor_o be_v official_a power_n which_o in_o great_a apostasy_n may_v fail_v of_o like_a stability_n with_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o can_v never_o total_o fail_v ans._n my_o argument_n be_v not_o faithful_o repeat_v of_o which_o i_o often_o complain_v if_o the_o ministerial_a formal_a power_n of_o rule_v and_o create_v and_o unmake_v of_o officer_n a_o virtual_a power_n of_o which_o he_o of_o new_a speak_v i_o know_v not_o for_o who_o have_v the_o formal_a power_n of_o call_v officer_n then_o be_v give_v to_o believer_n though_o destitute_a of_o pastor_n because_o believer_n be_v in_o a_o congregational_a frame_n 138._o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n nothing_o hinder_v but_o ministerial_a power_n that_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n give_v to_o believer_n which_o be_v but_o a_o gift_n give_v to_o hypocrite_n often_o shall_v be_v as_o firm_a as_o though_o believer_n be_v build_v on_o a_o rock_n mr._n h_n deny_v the_o assumption_n only_o and_o seem_v to_o yield_v the_o proposition_n i_o appeal_v to_o the_o reader_n if_o these_o word_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n in_o the_o frame_n of_o a_o congregation_n independent_a upon_o the_o rock_n christ_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o peter_n have_v any_o such_o sense_n for_o in_o all_o scripture_n the_o build_n upon_o the_o rock_n have_v no_o such_o sense_n but_o note_v christ_n building_n of_o real_a believer_n on_o himself_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a faith_n which_o building_n can_v sail_v and_o whereas_o mr._n h._n say_v the_o visible_a church_n can_v total_o fail_v as_o our_o divine_n say_v they_o mean_v the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n and_o not_o your_o independent_a congregation_n of_o which_o they_o know_v nothing_o who_o teach_v this_o doctrine_n so_o this_o argument_n of_o i_o stand_v promise_n of_o never_o fall_a be_v make_v in_o scripture_n to_o thing_n not_o to_o person_n as_o to_o the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o dominion_n of_o christ_n psal._n 72._o 8._o isa._n 9_o 7._o luke_n 1._o 33._o isa._n 55._o 11._o psal._n 110._o 2._o mat._n 24._o 14_o etc._n etc._n but_o ever_o in_o order_n to_o person_n especial_o to_o that_o excellent_a of_o person_n but_o of_o temptation_n to_o office_n and_o institution_n and_o promise_n to_o such_o as_o here_o we_o read_v not_o mr._n h._n those_o to_o who_o say_v mr._n r._n christ_n give_v the_o key_n do_v represent_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o who_o despise_v they_o despise_v christ_n and_o who_o honour_n they_o honour_n christ_n mat._n 10._o 40._o now_o scripture_n never_o say_v so_o of_o believer_n they_o that_o hear_v and_o obey_v believer_n hear_v and_o obey_v i_o ans._n the_o proposition_n be_v false_a to_o represent_v christ_n as_o steward_n belong_v only_o to_o they_o who_o have_v office_n power_n but_o the_o spouse_n have_v power_n in_o the_o family_n before_o the_o steward_n and_o officer_n be_v ans._n 1._o yet_o that_o must_v be_v mean_v of_o believer_n man_n and_o woman_n male-church_n he_o that_o despise_v the_o preach_v male_a church_n despise_v i_o 1._o the_o forgive_a or_o lose_v from_o excommunication_n as_o well_o as_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 2_o cor._n 2._o 10._o and_o excommunication_n itself_o which_o be_v give_v to_o unofficed_a brethren_n by_o mr._n h._n be_v do_v 1_o cor._n 5._o 4._o in_o the_o name_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d therefore_o they_o who_o despise_v the_o unofficed_a brethren_n excommunicate_v despise_v christ_n and_o excommunicate_v of_o heretic_n pastor_n or_o judicial_a reject_v there_o can_v be_v except_o unoffice_v brethren_n public_o rebuke_v 1_o tim._n 5._o 20._o and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n judicial_o declare_v the_o man_n a_o heretic_n and_o the_o doctrine_n heresy_n tit._n 3._o 10._o 2._o the_o comparison_n that_o make_v every_o male_a church_n a_o spouse_n christ._n of_o christ_n and_o so_o multiply_v spouse_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n make_v but_o one_o visible_a spouse_n on_o earth_n cant_v 4_o 1_o 2._o &_o 6._o 8._o 9_o &_o 7._o 1_o 2._o eph._n 5._o 26_o 27._o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12_o 12_o 13._o eph._n 1._o 23._o col._n 1._o 18._o will_v not_o furnish_v a_o argument_n for_o 1._o a_o spouse_n without_o steward_n may_v feed_v may_v therefore_o 94._o unofficed_a brethren_n preach_v and_o tender_a the_o seal_n as_o socinian_n say_v they_o may_v baptize_v one_o another_o 2._o a_o spouse_n may_v create_v servant_n of_o her_o own_o devise_v so_o may_v not_o unoffice_v brethren_n do_v 3._o the_o scripture_n make_v the_o catholic_n church_n christ_n spouse_n by_o faith_n what_o word_n of_o god_n warrant_v every_o male-society_n to_o be_v a_o spouse_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o new_a devise_v oath_n or_o covenant_n and_o our_o brethren_n can_v give_v we_o a_o scripture_n where_o the_o male_a congregation_n exclude_v woman_n be_v call_v the_o spouse_n body_n of_o christ_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n etc._n etc._n mr._n h._n those_o to_o who_o the_o key_n be_v give_v say_v mr._n r._n do_v authoritative_o forgive_v and_o retain_v sin_n the_o fraternity_n say_v mr._n h._n forgive_v judicial_o 2_o cor._n 2._o the_o officer_n authoritative_o ans._n brethren_n and_o sister_n forgive_v by_o way_n of_o charity_n the_o officer_n authoritative_o a_o judicial_a forgive_a distinct_a from_o both_o in_o a_o male-church_n be_v the_o question_n beg_v by_o mr._n h._n not_o prove_v 2._o he_o suppose_v paul_n write_v to_o this_o male-church_n void_a of_o pastor_n whereas_o there_o be_v many_o pastor_n there_o 1_o cor._n 14._o 29_o other_o 30_o 31._o &_o 4._o 15._o &_o 1._o 12._o nor_o can_v they_o without_o officer_n celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n as_o they_o do_v 1_o cor._n 1_o ãâã_d frequent_o 3._o he_o suppose_v they_o only_o be_v judicial_o to_o forgive_v the_o incestuous_a man_n whereas_o all_o in_o their_o own_o way_n man_n and_o woman_n be_v to_o forgive_v he_o and_o to_o converse_v with_o he_o as_o a_o brother_n 2_o cor._n 2_o 7_o 8._o as_o be_v say_v before_o chap._n vi_o what_o church_n it_o be_v that_o be_v build_v on_o the_o rock_n mat._n 16._o whether_o the_o visible_a or_o invisible_a church_n the_o catholic_n or_o the_o single_a independent_a church_n before_o i_o examine_v mr._n h._n his_o reason_n take_v notice_n of_o what_o 215._o mr._n h._n say_v which_o may_v conduce_v to_o this_o the_o key_n and_o power_n
it_o destroy_v the_o ministry_n &_o faithful_a apostle_n and_o 217._o pastor_n call_v who_o be_v send_v to_o gather_v into_o christ_n all_o the_o invisible_a member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n and_o to_o make_v they_o visible_a professor_n and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o this_o direction_n of_o paul_n to_o timothy_n be_v to_o continue_v to_o all_o succeed_a officer_n to_o the_o end_n and_o that_o in_o all_o particular_a charge_n give_v to_o they_o be_v truth_n see_v through_o a_o cloud_n 1._o this_o direction_n in_o these_o epistle_n be_v to_o continue_v to_o all_o succeed_a officer_n ergo_fw-la the_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n and_o ordain_v world_n watchman_n and_o bishop_n and_o this_o direction_n appoint_v elder_n faithful_a man_n able_a to_o teach_v and_o the_o rest_n belong_v to_o the_o key_n must_v bâ_n give_v to_o officer_n not_o to_o the_o male_a church_n 2._o here_o be_v some_o succession_n of_o godly_a pastor_n to_o the_o end_n to_o all_o pastor_n and_o elder_n with_o such_o qualification_n as_o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v blameless_a etc._n etc._n 1_o tim._n 2._o deacon_n must_v be_v such_o etc._n etc._n the_o direction_n be_v giuân_v to_o all_o succeed_a officer_n to_o the_o end_n why_o not_o rather_o to_o the_o first_o proper_a subject_n of_o the_o key_n to_o the_o male-church_n 3._o that_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o perfect_a and_o edify_v whereof_o eph._n 3._o 12._o christ_n give_v apostle_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n 10._o 11._o be_v the_o single_a particular_a independent_a church_n salvo_n mâliori_fw-la judicio_fw-la say_v mr._n h._n in_o his_o conjectural_a modesty_n be_v contrary_a to_o all_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a church_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v and_o upon_o this_o account_n hearken_v to_o mr._n h._n his_o rock_n distinction_n mr._n r._n propound_v a_o argument_n never_o yet_o answer_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n can_v be_v the_o single_a visible_a congregation_n against_o papist_n &_o socinian_o and_o our_o brethren_n that_o church_n be_v here_o mat._n 16._o understand_v against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v but_o against_o the_o visible_a independent_a congregationall_a the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n now_o be_v fall_v away_o church_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v ans._n this_o or_o that_o particular_a church_n or_o congregation_n may_v fall_v away_o but_o there_o must_v be_v a_o church_n universal_a exist_v in_o its_o particular_n this_o or_o that_o church_n which_o christ_n will_v have_v while_o the_o world_n continue_v eph._n 4._o 11._o d._n ames_n medulla_n l._n 1._o c._n 31._o 37._o ans._n to_o begin_v with_o what_o amesius_n say_v it_o be_v utter_o impertinent_a posse_fw-la the_o title_n of_o that_o chapter_n be_v of_o the_o mystical_a church_n the_o member_n of_o which_o can_v never_o fall_v away_o but_o must_v be_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o title_n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n be_v of_o the_o institute_v church_n yea_o amâsius_n say_v this_o place_n matth._n 16._o be_v a_o special_a promise_n make_v to_o those_o build_v on_o a_o rock_n to_o the_o militant_a catholic_n church_n and_o to_o real_a believer_n only_o not_o to_o hypocrite_n mr._n h._n by_o this_o teach_v the_o patron_n of_o the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o saint_n a_o distinction_n useful_a for_o their_o error_n so_o cinus_fw-la say_v the_o place_n which_o say_v they_o be_v save_v who_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n before_o the_o world_n be_v do_v not_o speak_v of_o some_o particular_a man_n thââ_n or_o that_o as_o mr._n h._n this_o or_o that_o single_a church_n may_v fall_v off_o the_o rock_n but_o some_o kind_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o mr._n h._n render_v this_o a_o comfortless_a doctrine_n which_o christ_n make_v a_o singular_a bulwark_n of_o faith_n and_o consolation_n to_o single_a person_n peter_n mary_n who_o believe_v and_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o rock_n that_o such_o shall_v never_o fall_v away_o but_o this_o or_o that_o congregation_n of_o some_o few_o person_n though_o true_a and_o real_a believer_n may_v and_o do_v fall_v away_o this_o be_v the_o downright_a apostasy_n of_o believer_n 2._o this_o strong_o savour_v of_o the_o jesuit_n ruiz_n his_o necessitas_fw-la vaga_fw-la though_o mr._n h._n hate_v doctrine_n and_o way_n when_o his_o sharp_a praeditum_fw-la engine_n see_v they_o when_o a_o thing_n be_v necessary_o to_o fall_v out_o in_o upon_z or_o about_o the_o kind_n of_o man_n but_o not_o in_o or_o upon_o this_o single_a man_n as_o it_o be_v infallible_a and_o necessary_a that_o there_o be_v war_n and_o be_v peace_n and_o that_o there_o be_v husbandman_n and_o be_v sailor_n but_o god_n determine_v and_o bow_v the_o heart_n of_o no_o single_a man_n to_o be_v a_o husbandman_n rather_o than_o a_o sailer_n he_o may_v say_v to_o be_v a_o king_n rather_o than_o a_o poor_a beggar_n this_o kind_n of_o necessity_n be_v against_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n special_a care_n as_o to_o great_a thing_n as_o to_o kingdom_n dan._n 4._o 32._o so_o to_o all_o small_a thing_n the_o stir_v of_o a_o sparrow_n wing_n mat._n 10._o 29_o &_o 30._o the_o hair_n of_o the_o head_n the_o grow_a and_o wither_v of_o a_o gourd_n jonah_n 4._o 6._o the_o motion_n of_o a_o worm_n eat_v the_o gourd_n which_o confuse_a providence_n suarez_n cumel_n 173._o ledesma_n forsake_v as_o shameful_a 3._o the_o particular_a independent_a congregation_n be_v either_o build_v upon_o the_o rock_n unmovable_o by_o a_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o no_o divine_a can_v deny_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o perseverance_n if_o such_o a_o grace_n as_o it_o must_v be_v be_v grant_v for_o by_o nature_n man_n persevere_v not_o be_v give_v by_o a_o gospel-promise_n or_o by_o no_o promise_n but_o man_n persevere_v dispositis_fw-la without_o any_o gospel-promise_n as_o the_o sea_n ebb_v the_o wind_n blow_v which_o yet_o can_v be_v say_v if_o a_o promise_n there_o be_v then_o when_o this_o particular_a church_n fall_v away_o now_o mr._n h._n grant_v the_o apostasy_n of_o this_o or_o that_o particular_a church_n of_o ephesus_n from_o the_o rock_n and_o the_o prevail_a of_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n against_o the_o single_a man_n or_o independent_a church_n of_o ephesus_n for_o he_o say_v the_o place_n mat._n 16._o the_o gate_n of_o hâll_n shall_v not_o prevail_v etc._n etc._n be_v to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o church_n congregational_a exist_v it_o its_o universal_a nature_n in_o its_o particular_a congregation_n than_o he_o must_v mean_v that_o some_o one_o single_a congregation_n of_o ephesus_n or_o sââ¦_n may_v and_o do_v fall_v off_o the_o rock_n which_o be_v a_o clear_a apostasy_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o it_o can_v be_v say_v this_o or_o that_o single_a church_n shall_v fall_v away_o so_o be_v they_o pray_v and_o watch_v for_o 1._o that_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n which_o the_o arminian_n and_o socinian_o say_v on_o this_o place_n that_o the_o church_n mat._n 16._o 18._o remain_a and_o persevere_v a_o true_a church_n remain_v unconquered_a by_o death_n and_o condemnation_n 2._o pray_v and_o persevere_v in_o pray_v and_o watch_v thereunto_o ephes._n 6_o 18._o be_v a_o great_a part_n of_o persevere_v and_o so_o persevere_v be_v promise_v upon_o condition_n of_o persevere_v and_o therefore_o mr._n h._n must_v betake_v himself_o to_o a_o more_o unthrifty_a shift_n and_o quit_v the_o place_n mat._n 16_o and_o so_o gratify_v arminian_n and_o socinian_o who_o say_v that_o it_o prove_v not_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o so_o must_v say_v that_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o rock_n be_v the_o lord_n continuate_a act_n of_o form_v single_a society_n upon_o the_o rock_n christ_n give_v they_o victory_n over_o hell_n so_o that_o he_o miscarry_v and_o ââlls_v from_o his_o intend_a end_n in_o keep_v this_o or_o that_o single_a man_n or_o church_n upon_o the_o rock_n but_o yet_o obtain_v his_o principal_a end_n in_o keep_v the_o universal_a nature_n of_o man_n and_o of_o a_o independent_a church_n upon_o the_o rock_n a_o more_o confuse_a providence_n than_o ever_o pelagius_n or_o any_o devise_v and_o a_o singular_a gratify_n of_o jesuit_n and_o sociniam_fw-la 3._o if_o the_o keep_n of_o believer_n ãâã_d saint_n upon_o the_o rock_n christ_n so_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o ãâã_d shall_v ãâã_d prevail_v to_o throw_v they_o off_o the_o rock_n and_o put_v those_o that_o once_o be_v justify_v and_o by_o faith_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n christ_n in_o a_o state_n of_o condemnation_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o deârce_n of_o god_n then_o must_v god_n have_v make_v the_o same_o general_a confuse_a
church_n for_o these_o that_o have_v be_v and_o now_o be_v glorify_v and_o shall_v be_v and_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v and_o that_o now_o be_v but_o none_o of_o the_o two_o former_a be_v capable_a subject_n of_o the_o key_n 2._o the_o proposition_n be_v not_o i_o nor_o the_o argument_n the_o key_n be_v give_v say_v i_o to_o the_o guide_v of_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n as_o to_o the_o formal_a subjectum_fw-la first_o and_o proper_a and_o be_v exercise_v by_o they_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n man_n or_o woman_n nor_o shall_v any_o new_a act_n of_o doctrine_n be_v pass_v or_o weighty_a point_n of_o discipline_n in_o assembly_n until_o the_o people_n hear_v of_o they_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o and_o for_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n of_o believer_n as_o the_o object_n and_o end_n for_o the_o gather_v they_o in_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n eph._n 4._o 11_o 12._o and_o as_o this_o visible_a church_n fall_v under_o the_o intention_n and_o decree_n of_o god_n to_o be_v save_v they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n with_o the_o invisible_a church_n as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n eph._n 4._o &_o 12._o be_v take_v for_o both_o the_o invisible_a body_n it_o be_v 2._o take_v more_o large_o as_o the_o catholic_n visible_a body_n comprehend_v all_o that_o hear_v and_o profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o gospel_n elect_v and_o reprobate_a and_o the_o lord_n give_v a_o ministry_n seal_n and_o visible_a membership_n to_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o this_o body_n to_o esan_n to_o jacob_n to_o judas_n the_o traitor_n as_o to_o peter_n a_o believer_n not_o to_o bring_v all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o for_o other_o unlike_a end_n finibus_fw-la disparibus_fw-la to_o save_v some_o to_o make_v other_o inexcusable_a mr._n h._n if_o all_o ministerial_a power_n say_v mr._n r._n be_v give_v to_o a_o congregation_n as_o our_o brethren_n say_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o flock_n of_o redeem_a â17_n one_o as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n act_v 20._o 28._o colos._n 1._o 18._o then_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o these_o title_n agree_v first_o to_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n colossian_n 1._o 18._o ephesian_n 1._o 25_o 26._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 15._o eph._n 2._o 19_o 20._o and_o so_o they_o come_v to_o our_o hand_n ans._n the_o catholic_n church_n admit_v of_o a_o threefold_a apprehension_n 1._o as_o it_o imply_v a_o covenant_a congregation_n of_o believer_n 2._o as_o it_o represent_v the_o whole_a ut_fw-la totum_fw-la representative_a a_o oecumenick_n council_n 3._o ut_fw-la totum_fw-la integrale_fw-la as_o it_o be_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n spread_v all_o the_o world_n over_o if_o mr._n r._n mean_v the_o first_o we_o agree_v but_o the_o guide_n can_v be_v the_o first_o subject_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o guide_n be_v different_a the_o second_o part_n mr._n r._n grant_v that_o the_o ministerial_a power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o a_o congregation_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o flock_n etc._n etc._n hence_o his_o cause_n must_v needs_o suffer_v shipwreck_n that_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n ans._n that_o the_o first_o member_n of_o your_o threefold_a apprehension_n have_v any_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n or_o sound_a divines_n be_v a_o mere_a apprehension_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v the_o catholic_n church_n aâ_n 1._o it_o imply_v a_o covenant_a congregation_n of_o believer_n etc._n give_v a_o warrant_n from_o scripture_n sound_a reason_n or_o divine_n for_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o whole_a body_n militant_a on_o earth_n exclude_v none_o but_o a_o congregation_n of_o covenant_a believer_n exclude_v all_o church_n on_o earth_n except_o forty_o or_o fifty_o person_n 2._o the_o catholic_n body_n organical_a of_o man_n include_v all_o the_o body_n and_o organ_n of_o it_o head_n eye_n mouth_n tongue_n feet_z etc._n etc._n now_o what_o sense_n be_v here_o the_o catholic_n organical_a body_n of_o man_n admit_v of_o a_o threefold_a apprehension_n 1._o it_o imply_v the_o congregation_n of_o five_o finger_n combine_v in_o the_o hand_n and_o the_o hand_n be_v predicate_v of_o this_o or_o that_o hand_n and_o so_o be_v the_o catholic_n body_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n organic_n body_n of_o man_n or_o to_o come_v to_o a_o politic_a body_n the_o catholic_n body_n of_o england_n admit_v of_o a_o threefold_a apprehension_n 1._o it_o imply_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o the_o city_n of_o york_n covenant_v together_o and_o the_o city_n of_o york_n be_v the_o catholic_n body_n of_o england_n which_o be_v predicate_v and_o affirm_v of_o this_o or_o that_o city_n of_o york_n no_o man_n speak_v so_o but_o only_a mr._n hooker_n that_o i_o know_v since_o the_o world_n be_v no_o man_n can_v say_v a_o single_a congregation_n take_v it_o either_o in_o the_o common_a nature_n of_o a_o congregation_n of_o a_o 1000_o or_o for_o this_o or_o that_o congregation_n that_o a_o congregation_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n no_o more_o than_o the_o hand_n be_v the_o catholic_n organical_a body_n of_o man_n 2._o mr._n r._n grant_v say_v he_o that_o the_o ministerial_a power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v to_o a_o congregation_n under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o flock_n etc._n etc._n answ._n read_v my_o word_n if_o i_o deny_v not_o that_o and_o speak_v only_o according_a to_o the_o grant_n and_o confession_n of_o our_o brethren_n 2._o only_o hypothetical_o if_o all_o power_n ministerial_a be_v give_v to_o a_o congregation_n by_o our_o brethren_n confession_n under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o flock_n of_o redeem_a one_o etc._n etc._n then_o it_o belong_v first_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n i._n e._n to_o the_o congregation_n i_o never_o dream_v that_o a_o congregation_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v craze_v in_o judgement_n if_o so_o i_o have_v speak_v and_o how_o subject_n the_o key_n be_v give_v or_o belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n integral_n body_n as_o the_o object_n and_o final_a cause_n to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o the_o first_o formal_a subject_n i_o often_o declare_v and_o what_o shipwreck_n or_o break_v of_o board_n be_v here_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n i_o difference_n between_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n by_o this_o mean_n but_o that_o mr._n h._n have_v say_v not_o one_o word_n to_o my_o arment_n if_o power_n privilege_n spiritual_a be_v give_v to_o the_o congregation_n as_o the_o redeem_a flock_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n then_o must_v power_n and_o privilege_n be_v give_v first_o and_o principal_o to_o such_o a_o company_n to_o which_o these_o style_n of_o the_o redeem_a of_o christ_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n agree_v first_o but_o to_o be_v the_o redeem_v of_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v his_o redeem_a one_o agree_v first_o not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n nor_o to_o any_o particular_a church_n national_a provincial_a presbyterial_a or_o congregational_a but_o to_o the_o whole_a catholic_n body_n joh._n 3._o 16._o &_o 10._o 11._o &_o 11._o 52._o 1_o joh._n 2._o &_o 2._o and_o when_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n eph._n 1._o 22._o coloss._n 1._o 18._o i_o shall_v judge_v he_o scarce_o worthy_a the_o name_n of_o a_o divine_a i_o can_v expound_v the_o place_n of_o a_o single_a congregation_n ãâã_d eph._n 1._o â2_n col._n 1._o 18._o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v of_o that_o body_n which_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o he_o who_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o eph._n 1._o and_o of_o the_o body_n of_o which_o christ_n iâ_n head_n as_o the_o first_o beget_v of_o the_o dead_a and_o of_o the_o whole_a body_n reconcile_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o cross_n if_o it_o be_v say_v the_o congregation_n in_o its_o common_a nature_n be_v the_o first_o subject_n of_o the_o key_n for_o it_o contain_v all_o the_o catholic_n church_n ans._n it_o contain_v no_o woman_n age_a child_n servant_n nor_o sojourner_n nor_o dismember_v visible_a saint_n and_o therefore_o the_o congregation_n independent_a in_o any_o sense_n be_v a_o narrow_a and_o impertinent_a subject_n of_o the_o key_n and_o this_o be_v shipwreck_n real_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o mr._n h._n as_o for_o that_o that_o the_o church_n cant._n 6._o be_v a_o congregation_n place_n in_o general_a and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o there_o genere_fw-la in_o kind_n it_o be_v against_o the_o text._n 1._o the_o congregation_n be_v not_o one_o but_o have_v threescore_o queen_n fourscore_o concubine_n virgin_n without_o number_n who_o be_v integral_a part_n of_o that_o one_o catholic_n church_n ver_fw-la 8._o but_o essential_a part_n of_o a_o congregation_n
follow_v they_o in_o as_o far_o as_o they_o follow_v christ._n nor_o be_v delegation_n the_o formalis_fw-la ratio_fw-la of_o determine_v synodical_o it_o be_v only_o a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o determine_v and_o of_o synodical_a judge_n obj._n but_o mr._n r._n say_v amen_o to_o this_o distinction_n of_o mr._n parker_n ans._n true_a these_o two_o fitness_n and_o gift_n together_o with_o a_o commission_n make_v a_o man_n a_o commissioner_n and_o messenger_n of_o the_o church_n but_o delegation_n make_v he_o not_o a_o formal_a definer_n and_o a_o judge_n nor_o do_v the_o church_n send_v they_o as_o officer_n but_o as_o such_o eminent_o able_a and_o faithful_a man_n who_o have_v hazard_v their_o life_n for_o the_o cause_n as_o act._n 15._o 25._o and_o they_o determine_v as_o such_o eminent_o holy_a and_o able_a officer_n their_o delegation_n be_v a_o thing_n of_o mere_a order_n because_o all_o can_v be_v send_v nor_o do_v it_o create_v they_o of_o new_a officer_n nor_o yet_o such_o eminent_a officer_n for_o they_o be_v both_o these_o before_o only_o their_o delegation_n put_v they_o in_o a_o actual_a orderly_a capacity_n to_o determine_v formal_o ut_fw-la approximatio_fw-la ligni_fw-la aridi_fw-la ad_fw-la ignem_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la formalis_fw-la ratio_fw-la comburendi_fw-la mr._n h._n mr._n r._n l._n 1._o p._n 305._o to_o 309._o run_v all_o upon_o this_o the_o power_n 232._o of_o the_o keyer_n by_o order_n of_o nature_n be_v only_o in_o the_o catholic_n representative_a body_n but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v before_o there_o be_v any_o representative_a some_o 300._o year_n when_o there_o be_v no_o oecumenick_n council_n and_o since_o the_o church_n give_v their_o power_n and_o officer_n to_o the_o assembly_n they_o have_v that_o power_n before_o the_o assembly_n synod_n ans._n read_v from_o c._n 10._o sect_n 10._o &_o p._n 289._o to_o p._n 346_o 347._o where_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n i_o say_v only_o that_o such_o a_o synodical_a power_n of_o the_o key_n as_o be_v dogmatic_a especial_o for_o light_n and_o peace_n as_o mr._n cotton_n speak_v be_v first_o by_o order_n of_o nature_n in_o the_o oecumenick_n council_n the_o doubt_v and_o contend_v church_n can_v bind_v ecclesia_fw-la dubitans_fw-la non_fw-la docet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la errans_fw-la non_fw-la judicat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la contendens_fw-la non_fw-la ligaân_fw-la on_o solvit_fw-la for_o the_o doubt_n the_o err_a the_o contend_v of_o church_n be_v no_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o err_v and_o contend_v church_n can_v heal_v themselves_o and_o therefore_o the_o heal_a power_n be_v seat_v by_o christ_n appointment_n in_o the_o synodical_a church_n which_o be_v more_o diffuse_v and_o strong_a as_o be_v clear_a when_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o judea_n be_v break_v renâand_v sick_a the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n act_n 15._o have_v appoint_v that_o these_o shall_v meet_v in_o a_o synod_n of_o the_o select_a and_o choice_a part_n apostle_n and_o godly_a elder_n ergo_fw-la the_o heal_a power_n of_o the_o key_n must_v be_v first_o in_o they_o 2._o mr._n r._n run_v not_o but_o assârts_n lent_o that_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o in_o open_v and_o shut_v heaven_n in_o the_o latitude_n of_o preach_v and_o censure_n mat._n 16._o be_v not_o before_o christ_n give_v it_o to_o the_o apostle_n the_o then_o representative_a of_o all_o the_o faithful_a guide_n to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n christian_n to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o this_o grant_n be_v make_v to_o peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n not_o as_o to_o such_o private_a man_n simon_n such_o fisher_n but_o by_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n truth_n 2._o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o sound_a antiquity_n 3._o the_o judgement_n of_o protestant_a divine_n 4._o canon_n of_o counsel_n 5._o the_o doctrine_n of_o sound_a ancient_a schoolman_n and_o popish_a doctor_n occam_fw-la alenâis_fw-la almain_n gerson_n bonâventure_n etc._n etc._n not_o only_o not_o 300._o year_n after_o but_o before_o christ_n death_n and_o confirm_v before_o his_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n that_o ever_o mr._n r._n say_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o their_o latitude_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v in_o a_o oecumenick_n council_n a_o representative_a of_o formal_o send_v church_n and_o a_o body_n of_o formal_o send_v commissioner_n be_v utter_o deny_v and_o no_o where_o to_o be_v see_v in_o any_o book_n that_o ever_o he_o write_v such_o as_o cite_v he_o at_o random_n will_v remember_v 3_o that_o i_o teach_v that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n 1._o in_o its_o latitude_n be_v first_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n mat._n 28._o 19_o 20._o mat._n 16._o 18_o 19_o john_n 20._o 21_o 22._o mark_v 16._o 15._o act._n 18._o as_o the_o only_a then_o catholic_n representative_a body_n sustain_v the_o person_n of_o all_o officer_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o the_o first_o formal_a subject_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o its_o latitude_n be_v not_o either_o the_o congregation_n or_o congregational_a eldership_n nor_o the_o presbytery_n or_o synod_n all_o these_o be_v but_o part_n and_o to_o make_v a_o quarter_n or_o a_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n the_o first_o and_o adequate_a subject_n of_o light_n and_o a_o quarter_n or_o a_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o element_n of_o water_n the_o first_o and_o adequate_a subject_n of_o the_o cold_a and_o moistness_n since_o these_o quality_n be_v kind_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o quarter_n and_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o element_n be_v bad_a philosophy_n so_o the_o adequate_a first_o complete_a formal_a subject_n of_o this_o power_n must_v be_v the_o integral_n catholic_n body_n of_o the_o guide_n as_o exist_v in_o their_o several_a church_n for_o this_o power_n be_v as_o kind_o and_o native_o in_o the_o guide_v of_o this_o church_n as_o in_o the_o guide_v of_o that_o church_n and_o equal_o in_o all_o 2._o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n as_o this_o power_n synodical_a be_v consider_v either_o in_o the_o breadth_n of_o synodical_a power_n and_o so_o to_o condemn_v be_v catholic_n error_n and_o heresy_n be_v in_o a_o oecumenick_n council_n and_o where_o the_o local_a distance_n of_o visible_a church_n be_v great_a and_o wide_a the_o external_a visible_a communion_n in_o be_v edify_v or_o scandalize_v be_v less_o and_o less_o use_n there_o be_v of_o censure_n a_o general_n council_n be_v only_o necessary_a for_o the_o optimum_fw-la esse_fw-la the_o most_o catholic_n union_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n &_o that_o such_o a_o council_n be_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n mr._n cot._n prove_v from_o act._n 15._o 3._o as_o the_o power_n be_v narrow_a it_o become_v narrow_a than_o ecumenical_a and_o descend_v to_o national_a to_o provincial_a to_o presbyterial_a to_o congregational_a and_o all_o these_o be_v part_n only_o 4._o though_o the_o church_n send_v officer_n to_o the_o synod_n and_o have_v some_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o their_o kind_n before_o the_o synod_n have_v be_v yet_o mr._n h._n can_v hence_o conclude_v nothing_o of_o his_o purpose_n against_o i_o for_o it_o follow_v not_o ergo_fw-la the_o male-congregation_n have_v the_o complete_a power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o its_o latitude_n before_o the_o synod_n have_v be_v nor_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o congregational_a 15._o church_n or_o presbyterial_a have_v that_o complete_a power_n before_o synod_n have_v be_v nor_o do_v they_o confer_v if_o we_o speak_v accurate_o a_o synodical_a power_n of_o the_o key_n they_o only_o send_v messenger_n who_o be_v material_n of_o the_o synod_n but_o the_o synodical_a power_n be_v in_o its_o part_n scatter_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o province_n and_o nation_n as_o imme_n of_o gold_n in_o divers_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o synodical_a power_n come_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n who_o promise_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n as_o mat._n 28._o 20._o compare_v with_o act._n 15._o 28._o nor_o can_v the_o scatter_a church_n bring_v forth_o of_o themselves_o any_o synodical_a power_n of_o the_o key_n when_o they_o be_v meet_v in_o a_o synod_n the_o promise_n make_v to_o such_o as_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n do_v the_o business_n and_o therefore_o that_o be_v soon_o blow_v away_o it_o be_v unpossible_a that_o a_o proper_a quality_n can_v be_v either_o in_o nature_n or_o time_n before_o its_o subject_a thâ_n give_v it_o be_v but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v 300._o year_n before_o there_o be_v any_o general_a council_n in_o the_o world_n for_o this_o prove_v only_o that_o some_o certain_a power_n to_o wit_n formal_o synodical_a can_v be_v until_o the_o synod_n be_v 2._o grave_a divine_n judge_v the_o synod_n act._n 15._o to_o be_v a_o general_n council_n but_o though_o it_o be_v
shall_v not_o be_v the_o same_o spiritual_o politic_a body_n visible_a be_v of_o divers_a congregation_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n expound_v by_o mr._n h._n and_o mr._n cotton_n we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n visible_a and_o visible_a of_o twenty_o congregation_n partake_v all_o of_o one_o bread_n and_o body_n of_o christ._n now_o by_o this_o as_o a_o finger_n cut_v off_o paul_n be_v not_o a_o finger_n cut_v off_o john_n for_o john_n have_v all_o his_o ten_o finger_n entire_a and_o paul_n have_v his_o nine_o finger_n only_o so_o also_o if_o thomas_n disobedient_a he_o cast_v out_o of_o only_a his_o own_o congregation_n he_o be_v never_o cast_v out_o of_o church-right_a to_o christ_n and_o ordinance_n in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o congregation_n for_o excommunication_n by_o consequence_n be_v only_o a_o declare_v by_o witness_n as_o mr._n h._n say_v pag._n 242._o that_o the_o man_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o own_o congregation_n now_o the_o declare_v that_o paul_n finger_n be_v cut_v off_o be_v not_o a_o cut_n off_o of_o his_o finger_n that_o be_v impossible_a far_o less_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o declare_v that_o paul_n finger_n be_v cut_v off_o can_v be_v either_o a_o declare_v that_o peter_n finger_n be_v cut_v off_o or_o that_o that_o declare_v be_v a_o cut_n off_o of_o paul_n finger_n or_o a_o cut_n off_o of_o peter_n finger_n therefore_o peter_n be_v cast_v one_o of_o his_o own_o church-right_a and_o church_n only_o be_v no_o cast_v of_o he_o out_o of_o other_o church_n or_o real_a remove_n of_o his_o church-right_a to_o ordinance_n in_o other_o church_n for_o that_o which_o be_v never_o real_o remove_v and_o peter_n once_o have_v it_o must_v remain_v with_o peter_n yet_o now_o peter_n be_v never_o a_o member_n of_o any_o congregation_n but_o of_o one_o then_o membership_n to_o another_o congregation_n can_v be_v take_v from_o he_o 4._o a_o member_n be_v cast_v out_o as_o real_o scandalous_a his_o adultery_n obstinate_o continue_v in_o make_v he_o be_v deprive_v of_o christian_a fellowship_n with_o brethren_n as_o brethren_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o christian_a fellowship_n of_o all_o brethren_n for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d follow_v upon_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o 5._o it_o be_v thus_o confirm_v his_o visible_a scandal_n be_v a_o church-offence_n to_o one_o of_o a_o sister-congregation_n and_o be_v apt_a to_o bring_v a_o church-contagion_n to_o these_o of_o another_o congregation_n who_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d one_o body_n with_o he_o at_o the_o lord_n table_n and_o therefore_o be_v they_o now_o to_o look_v on_o he_o as_o a_o heathen_a but_o who_o put_v he_o in_o that_o state_n if_o he_o be_v not_o real_o and_o formal_o cast_v out_o way_n of_o that_o body_n when_o his_o own_o church_n excommunicate_v he_o 6._o he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n hear_v not_o christ_n and_o he_o that_o despise_v any_o pastor_n send_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n despise_v christ_n mat._n 10._o 4._o luke_n 10._o 16._o john_n 13._o 20._o now_o if_o this_o stand_v good_a one_o that_o despise_v his_o own_o pastor_n only_o and_o his_o own_o congregation_n only_o though_o he_o despise_v all_o the_o godly_a prophet_n pastor_n and_o sound_a church_n on_o earth_n despise_v not_o christ_n nor_o his_o father_n that_o send_v he_o nor_o be_v he_o first_o in_o foro_fw-la dei_fw-la bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o guilty_a before_o god_n nor_o deserve_v he_o to_o be_v excommunicate_a for_o he_o have_v not_o fail_v against_o that_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o for_o that_o be_v true_a only_a when_o any_o despise_v their_o own_o pastor_n or_o their_o own_o congregation_n and_o if_o so_o then_o when_o one_o be_v cast_v out_o and_o judge_v a_o heathen_a for_o not_o hear_v of_o his_o own_o church_n he_o be_v not_o heathen_a in_o heaven_n and_o in_o foro_fw-la dei_fw-la as_o touch_v his_o communion_n with_o other_o pastor_n and_o other_o congregation_n 7._o peter_z before_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v have_v a_o real_a right_n to_o the_o lord_n table_n in_o all_o church_n on_o earth_n and_o so_o a_o sort_n of_o membership_n and_o visible_a communion_n with_o all_o these_o church_n now_o if_o by_o the_o act_n of_o excommunication_n in_o his_o own_o church_n this_o right_n be_v not_o take_v from_o he_o then_o must_v it_o be_v take_v from_o he_o by_o all_o the_o church_n and_o so_o all_o the_o church_n must_v excommunicate_v when_o one_o excommunicate_v and_o by_o the_o like_a all_o must_v admit_v one_o into_o membership_n when_o one_o admit_v into_o membership_n mr._n h._n the_o sister_n church_n mr._n r._n receive_v member_n of_o other_o church_n to_o communion_n by_o a_o intrinsical_a church_n power_n ans._n by_o a_o authoritative_a church_n power_n we_o can_v enjoin_v our_o own_o member_n to_o come_v to_o the_o seal_n or_o else_o censure_v they_o but_o we_o can_v so_o deal_v with_o other_o if_o it_o shall_v seem_v good_a to_o they_o to_o refuse_v ans._n this_o only_o follow_v that_o the_o congregation_n have_v a_o large_a church_n power_n over_o their_o own_o member_n both_o to_o censure_v they_o if_o they_o come_v not_o and_o positive_o to_o admit_v they_o if_o they_o come_v but_o mr._n h._n must_v confess_v that_o the_o congregation_n admit_v stranger_n of_o other_o congregation_n by_o a_o mere_a private_a pâwer_fw-fr and_o by_o no_o church_n power_n which_o be_v gross_a erastianisme_n and_o make_v it_o arbitrary_a to_o one_o single_a pastor_n to_o admit_v some_o to_o the_o communion_n as_o he_o please_v and_o some_o not_o 2._o by_o no_o church_n power_n be_v the_o sacrament_n tender_v to_o stranger_n of_o another_o congregation_n so_o may_v the_o minister_n give_v this_o communion_n seal_n to_o a_o stranger_n in_o his_o chamber_n which_o be_v a_o private_a communion_n for_o there_o be_v no_o authoritative_a church_n power_n require_v to_o give_v it_o to_o some_o whereas_o paul_n say_v it_o be_v a_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n come_v together_o to_o eat_v the_o lord_n body_n 1_o cor._n 11._o 17_o 18_o 21._o 1_o cor._n 10._o 17._o 3._o this_o supper_n must_v be_v give_v to_o our_o own_o church_n member_n by_o church_n authority_n to_o stranger_n by_o no_o church_n authority_n 4._o it_o be_v by_o accident_n that_o the_o congregation_n can_v compel_v stranger_n to_o come_v to_o this_o seal_n for_o in_o collegio_fw-la the_o elder_n of_o the_o congregation_n may_v joint_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o presbytery_n censure_v these_o of_o another_o flock_n who_o altogether_o refuse_v the_o seal_n 5._o mr._n h._n grant_v that_o a_o congregation_n excommunicate_v in_o the_o 240._o general_a nature_n of_o a_o congregation_n well_o then_o the_o general_a nature_n discourse_v in_o man_n and_o so_o do_v a_o church_n in_o a_o island_n excommunicate_a ergo_fw-la that_o church_n proceed_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christ_n cast_v the_o man_n formal_o out_o of_o all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n mr._n h._n add_v yea_o the_o neighbour_n church_n be_v say_v mr._n r._n to_o 242._o exercise_v the_o punishment_n of_o avoid_v the_o excommunicate_a person_n as_o a_o heathen_a which_o follow_v from_o a_o power_n which_o be_v no_o way_n in_o they_o what_o conscience_n be_v here_o ans._n a_o good_a conscience_n if_o we_o may_v carry_v ourselves_o to_o a_o scandalous_a mân_z so_o declare_v by_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n as_o we_o avoid_v his_o company_n far_o more_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n be_v we_o to_o avoid_v his_o company_n ans._n then_o nothing_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o neighbour_n church_n but_o be_v he_o excommunicate_v or_o not_o by_o one_o only_a congregation_n they_o have_v no_o hand_n in_o it_o only_o they_o must_v believe_v the_o man_n be_v right_o cast_v out_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o five_o or_o six_o of_o the_o male-church_n who_o be_v both_o judge_n and_o party_n this_o be_v what_o i_o say_v a_o declararation_n of_o excommunication_n be_v no_o excommunication_n and_o then_o must_v the_o congregation_n about_o with_o the_o mere_a judgement_n of_o discretion_n which_o woman_n have_v eschew_v the_o man_n as_o a_o pagan_a obj._n by_o mr._n r._n his_o way_n you_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n only_o which_o do_v excommunicate_a ans._n yea_o place_n be_v leave_v to_o many_o church_n and_o synod_n to_o judge_n this_o be_v another_o matter_n than_o four_o of_o the_o male-church_n that_o be_v both_o judge_n and_o party_n who_o declare_v he_o be_v cast_v out_o mr._n h._n one_o classical_a church_n excommunicate_v not_o antecedenter_n but_o a_o man_n in_o the_o confine_n of_o two_o presbytery_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o presbytery_n only_o of_o which_o he_o be_v a_o member_n say_v mr._n r._n ans._n what_o rope_n can_v tie_v the_o consequent_a with_o the_o antecedent_n what_o mr._n r._n
militant_a redeem_v body_n and_o mystical_a well_o near_o of_o a_o equal_a breadth_n and_o latitude_n not_o but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v and_o be_v many_o believer_n member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n who_o have_v little_a or_o no_o visible_a profession_n but_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o assert_v as_o truth_n that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n be_v both_o invisible_a mystical_a and_o the_o save_v body_n and_o also_o visible_a and_o clothe_v with_o a_o real_a sincere_a profession_n and_o that_o both_o these_o agree_v to_o the_o catholic_n integral_n militant_a church_n though_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o hypocrite_n in_o this_o great_a body_n who_o ministerial_a act_n be_v valid_a but_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n in_o that_o latitude_n be_v not_o then_o both_o subject_n object_n and_o intend_a end_n of_o all_o ordinance_n and_o i_o speak_v now_o of_o it_o mr._n h._n i_o can_v think_v that_o mr._n r._n take_v the_o catholic_n church_n for_o the_o whole_a integral_a body_n ans._n it_o be_v mistake_v charity_n of_o i_o mr._n h._n that_o church_n be_v mean_v 1_o cor._n 12._o in_o which_o god_n set_v teacher_n help_n ordinary_a officer_n first_o v_o 28._o but_o god_n set_v not_o such_o in_o the_o integral_a body_n for_o they_o be_v set_v by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o people_n in_o particular_a congregation_n act_n 14._o 23._o &_o 6._o 5._o tit._n 1._o 5._o ans._n this_o be_v my_o own_o argument_n but_o not_o right_o form_v that_o church_n be_v here_o mean_v in_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v respective_o place_v first_o apostle_n and_o teacher_n both_o extraordinary_a and_o ordinary_a officer_n but_o god_n have_v not_o set_v apostles_n fix_o and_o first_o over_o congregation_n they_o be_v organ_n of_o the_o catholic_n integral_n body_n and_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v to_o heathen_a who_o after_o be_v church_n as_o it_o be_v say_v jacob_n serve_v for_o a_o wife_n to_o be_v marry_v not_o marry_v as_o yet_o who_o can_v not_o choose_v the_o apostle_n as_o their_o pastor_n 2._o worker_n of_o miracle_n be_v not_o choose_v by_o a_o single_a congregation_n noâ_n such_o as_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n 1_o cor._n 14._o 22._o tongue_n be_v for_o a_o sign_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v church_n not_o see_v the_o divine_n on_o the_o place_n miracle_n and_o tongue_n be_v to_o persuade_v unbeliever_n and_o be_v not_o first_o set_v to_o congregation_n nor_o can_v have_v any_o imaginable_a election_n and_o call_v from_o they_o 3._o the_o place_n as_o elsewhere_o be_v say_v prove_v not_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o point_n mr._n h._n arg._n 2._o in_o what_o church_n pastor_n be_v first_o set_v over_o they_o they_o have_v first_o and_o primary_o pastoral_a power_n in_o dispence_a act_n of_o rule_v and_o preach_v but_o ordinary_a teacher_n have_v not_o this_o over_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n congregation_n may_v just_o refuse_v to_o hear_v other_o teacher_n than_o their_o own_o but_o their_o own_o may_v preach_v to_o they_o though_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v ans._n every_o word_n be_v censurable_a 1._o apostle_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d first_o both_o in_o regard_n of_o dignity_n of_o office_n and_o of_o apostolic_a universality_n send_v to_o all_o nation_n to_o preach_v not_o to_o a_o single_a congregation_n to_o exercise_v pastoral_a act_n first_o over_o it_o as_o fix_v pastor_n 2._o by_o a_o catholic_a church_n mr_n h._n mean_n sed_fw-la suis_fw-la musis_fw-la solus_fw-la canit_fw-la a_o congregation_n now_o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v first_o set_v in_o the_o congregation_n in_o general_n they_o must_v be_v secondary_o set_v in_o this_o individual_a congregation_n then_o must_v the_o ordinary_a teacher_n be_v set_v before_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v often_o his_o sender_n in_o the_o individual_a congregation_n 3._o the_o proposition_n be_v false_a a_o pastor_n may_v tender_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o hundred_o of_o a_o sister-congregation_n but_o mr._n h._n i_o hope_v will_v not_o say_v that_o a_o pastor_n be_v set_v over_o and_o first_o over_o hundred_o of_o another_o congregation_n the_o antecedent_n and_o consequence_n be_v both_o mr._n hooker_n 4._o it_o be_v false_a that_o ordinary_a teacher_n have_v not_o power_n to_o exercise_v pastoral_a act_n to_o those_o of_o other_o congregation_n nor_o be_v it_o prove_v they_o can_v exercise_v pastoral_a act_n over_o they_o because_o they_o can_v censure_v they_o it_o be_v a_o illogical_a consequence_n ordinary_a to_o mr._n h._n the_o apostle_n both_o as_o apostle_n by_o miracle_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n plant_v church_n among_o the_o heathen_a and_o as_o pastor_n they_o exercise_v ordinary_a pastoral_a act_n to_o the_o heathen_a in_o excommunicate_v plant_v and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o they_o but_o they_o can_v not_o draw_v out_o church-censure_n against_o the_o heathen_a yet_o remain_v heathen_a because_o of_o the_o incapacity_n of_o the_o object_n they_o can_v not_o cast_v they_o out_o who_o be_v not_o yet_o within_o 1_o cor._n 5._o 12_o 13._o but_o this_o they_o can_v not_o do_v not_o through_o want_n of_o pastoral_a power_n over_o they_o 5._o it_o be_v false_a that_o other_o church_n may_v just_o refuse_v to_o hear_v other_o teacher_n than_o their_o own_o for_o if_o their_o own_o be_v sick_a and_o dead_a or_o if_o other_o teacher_n have_v a_o earnest_a suit_n and_o desire_v from_o their_o own_o officer_n and_o some_o one_o of_o the_o congregation_n they_o most_o unjust_o refuse_v to_o hear_v and_o come_v under_o the_o guilt_n of_o despise_v christ_n in_o despise_v his_o messenger_n as_o mat._n 10._o 40._o luke_n 10._o 16._o joh._n 13_o 20._o except_o the_o sense_n be_v he_o that_o receive_v not_o his_o own_o congregational_a pastor_n receive_v not_o i_o otherwise_o not_o a_o strange_a and_o new_a sense_n 6._o if_o the_o flock_n refuse_v all_o their_o own_o pastor_n to_o hear_v they_o as_o be_v raven_a wolf_n they_o unpastor_n they_o and_o recall_v the_o official_a be_v which_o our_o brethren_n say_v they_o give_v they_o in_o election_n and_o so_o unjust_o refuse_v to_o hear_v they_o and_o they_o can_v just_o preach_v to_o they_o who_o so_o refuse_v to_o hear_v for_o they_o just_o refuse_v aâ_n mr._n h._n teach_v mr._n h._n god_n must_v either_o say_v mr._n h_n have_v plââed_v in_o all_o the_o 248._o church_n catholic_n apostles_n teacher_n which_o we_o say_v or_o then_o in_o some_o part_n of_o it_o only_o and_o what_o be_v that_o part_n which_o be_v except_v sure_o he_o intend_v not_o salvation_n to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o which_o he_o set_v no_o teacher_n ans._n at_o the_o common_a nature_n of_o a_o corporation_n exist_v in_o all_o corporation_n so_o the_o congregation-nature_n exist_v in_o this_o or_o this_o congregation_n so_o if_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o corporation_n be_v common_a to_o all_o and_o the_o king_n have_v set_v major_a and_o common-council_n in_o all_o and_o every_o town_n therefore_o the_o major_a of_o one_o town_n may_v rule_v in_o another_o so_o all_o state_n set_v general_n colonel_n captain_n in_o the_o army_n the_o king_n set_v constable_n in_o all_o town_n sheriff_n in_o all_o county_n because_o constable_n be_v common_a to_o all_o town_n therefore_o a_o constable_n may_v exercise_v his_o office_n in_o another_o town_n ans._n 1._o the_o argument_n must_v run_v thus_o as_o the_o king_n have_v set_v in_o england_n the_o lord_n keeper_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n the_o lord_n chief_a justice_n the_o sheriff_n the_o constable_n in_o every_o county_n and_o church_n town_n so_o have_v god_n set_v in_o his_o church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o congregation_n first_o apostle_n secondary_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n after_o that_o miracle_n than_o gift_n of_o healing_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o king_n have_v set_v in_o england_n the_o lord_n keeper_n the_o lord_n chief_z justice_z the_o constable_n in_o every_o county_n in_o every_o town_n how_o many_o great_a seal_n how_o many_o lord_n of_o chief_a justice_n shall_v then_o be_v in_o england_n and_o do_v not_o our_o âound_n divine_v condemn_v in_o papist_n the_o argument_n from_o civil_a government_n and_o honour_v due_a to_o person_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o government_n of_o god_n house_n and_o of_o adore_v of_o god_n in_o image_n he_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o bellarmine_n valentia_n suarez_n vasquez_n tanerus_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o to_o our_o divine_n reynold_n chamier_n calvin_n bucanus_n tilenus_n daneus_n chemnitius_n luther_n etc._n etc._n who_o know_v not_o this_o 2._o neither_o major_a proposition_n nor_o assumption_n have_v any_o truth_n for_o have_v god_n set_v the_o apostle_n the_o planter_n and_o framer_n of_o church_n out_o of_o heathen_a society_n in_o no_o chair_n but_o fix_v they_o to_o a_o congregational_a pulpit_n only_o the_o apostle_n have_v care_n of_o all_o thing_n
2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o command_n schismatic_a church_n 2_o cor._n 10._o 8._o plant_n and_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o church_n as_o wise_a master-builder_n act_n 16._o 12._o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16._o &_o 18._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 1_o cor._n 3._o 6._o 11._o appoint_v new_a office_n in_o the_o church_n act_v 6._o 6._o state_n now_o if_o god_n have_v seat_v the_o apostle_n in_o such_o a_o way_n in_o every_o congregation_n as_o ordinary_a teacher_n be_v than_o the_o apostle_n proper_a place_n must_v be_v only_o to_o water_n and_o confirm_v visible_a convert_n and_o member_n of_o a_o fix_a and_o frame_v congregation_n where_o than_o be_v the_o apostle_n letter_n patent_n to_o build_v to_o plant_v to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n 3._o when_o it_o be_v say_v as_o it_o must_v be_v or_o it_o come_v not_o home_n the_o king_n have_v place_v in_o england_n the_o whole_a integral_a body_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n the_o lord_n keeper_n the_o lord_n chief_a justice_n the_o constable_n as_o he_o have_v place_v in_o the_o church_n apostles_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o whole_a integral_a church_n these_o extraordinary_a and_o ordinary_a officer_n it_o can_v be_v mean_v the_o king_n have_v place_v a_o lord_n keeper_n and_o a_o lord_n chief_a justice_n in_o every_o town_n and_o city_n of_o england_n so_o neither_o have_v the_o lord_n place_v a_o apostle_n in_o every_o congregation_n upon_o the_o same_o account_n and_o he_o who_o be_v a_o apostle_n in_o one_o congregation_n can_v no_o more_o be_v a_o apostle_n in_o another_o than_o a_o major_n of_o one_o city_n can_v be_v a_o major_a in_o another_o and_o it_o must_v run_v so_o the_o state_n have_v place_v a_o general_n colonel_n captain_n in_o their_o army_n i._n e._n in_o every_o particular_a society_n of_o the_o army_n and_o so_o every_o company_n must_v have_v a_o general_n therefore_o have_v the_o state_n set_v general_n colonel_n captain_n in_o their_o army_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n now_o the_o state_n have_v set_v but_o one_o general_n over_o all_o the_o army_n as_o the_o church_n be_v but_o one_o 4._o if_o the_o argument_n run_v thus_o as_o the_o major_a of_o norwich_n survey_v may_v not_o rule_v as_o major_a of_o york_n so_o neither_o may_v a_o pastor_n in_o one_o congregation_n teach_v &_o rule_v as_o a_o pastor_n in_o another_o congregation_n this_o be_v utter_o false_a and_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n like_o this_o as_o god_n have_v confine_v ruler_n to_o one_o society_n only_o in_o the_o civil_a state_n so_o have_v he_o confine_v the_o officer_n of_o his_o son_n house_n one_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o shall_v silence_n mr._n r._n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o devise_v parallel_n between_o the_o civil_a state_n and_o christ_n kingdom_n suppose_v all_o the_o major_n ruler_n citizen_n of_o all_o the_o city_n and_o town_n in_o england_n have_v the_o same_o divine_a right_a to_o command_v in_o all_o the_o city_n and_o town_n in_o england_n and_o that_o these_o major_n be_v ruler_n equal_o and_o in_o common_a to_o all_o those_o town_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o providential_a order_n not_o of_o divine_a jurisdiction_n that_o a._n b._n shall_v be_v fix_v major_a of_o norwich_n and_o c._n d._n fix_a major_n of_o york_n and_o so_o forth_o then_o if_o c._n d._n by_o providence_n shall_v be_v at_o norwich_n he_o may_v rule_v as_o a_o major_a at_o norwich_n or_o any_o town_n or_o city_n of_o england_n as_o well_o as_o at_o york_n and_o so_o be_v here_o the_o matter_n a_o call_v pastor_n be_v a_o pastor_n and_o may_v act_v pastoral_o and_o dispense_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n to_o those_o of_o another_o congregation_n say_v our_o brethren_n and_o so_o to_o another_o whole_a congregation_n for_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n in_o both_o so_o all_o visible_a professor_n have_v the_o same_o divine_a church-right_a to_o the_o same_o christ_n the_o head_n 2._o to_o the_o same_o gospel_n and_o covenant_n of_o grace_n for_o distinct_a church-covenant_n be_v man_n lawless_a invention_n as_o use_v by_o our_o brethren_n 3._o to_o the_o same_o lord_n supper_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 17._o 4._o to_o the_o same_o eternal_a life_n so_o mr._n h._n shall_v gain_v nothing_o by_o this_o but_o lose_v for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o right_a civil_a common_a to_o civil_a ruler_n and_o civil_a citizen_n one_o town_n have_v city_n privilege_n that_o no_o other_o town_n in_o the_o kingdom_n have_v mr._n h._n right_o of_o jurisdiction_n flow_v from_o office-call_a a_o pastor_n have_v not_o save_v in_o his_o own_o congregation_n ans._n there_o must_v be_v one_o call_v or_o other_o for_o a_o pastor_n to_o exercise_v his_o office_n but_o a_o new_a office_n or_o new_a right_n of_o jurisdiction_n jurisdiction_n other_o then_o pastoral_a which_o he_o receive_v in_o ordination_n be_v not_o requisite_a for_o a_o pastor_n to_o act_v as_o a_o pastor_n yea_o he_o sin_n against_o his_o office-charge_n and_o talon_n if_o in_o all_o congregation_n he_o do_v not_o preach_v the_o word_n be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n not_o at_o ephesus_n only_o for_o a_o evangelist_n such_o as_o timothy_n be_v not_o a_o ordinary_a fix_a teacher_n if_o he_o do_v not_o reprove_v rebuke_n and_o exhort_v with_o all_o long-suffering_a 2_o tim._n 4._o 1_o 2._o the_o danger_n of_o perish_v of_o soul_n or_o the_o absence_n or_o removal_n of_o the_o pastor_n by_o death_n be_v a_o fit_a call_n of_o god_n though_o the_o great_a part_n of_o sardis_n love_v not_o to_o be_v rebuke_v mr._n h._n god_n have_v set_v in_o his_o church_n i._n e._n in_o the_o congregation_n exist_v in_o its_o particular_n apostle_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o all_o congregation_n church_n be_v here_o intend_v ans._n 1._o by_o this_o god_n have_v set_v apostle_n miracle_n in_o the_o single_a congregation_n whether_o as_o apostle_n or_o as_o pastor_n if_o the_o former_a speak_v with_o tongue_n work_v of_o miracle_n which_o be_v for_o unbeliever_n and_o heathen_a 1_o cor._n 14._o 22._o shall_v be_v officer_n or_o gift_n ordain_v for_o visible_a saint_n convert_v by_o what_o scripture_n 2._o though_o the_o church_n exclude_v not_o the_o congregation_n but_o in_o some_o respect_n include_v they_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o body_n call_v christ_n mystical_a v_o 12._o to_o which_o christ_n be_v head_n by_o influence_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o bring_v no_o small_a consolation_n to_o we_o as_o beza_n calvin_n pet._n martyr_n who_o make_v this_o the_o catholic_n church_n 3._o whereas_o mr._n h._n his_o single_a congregation_n of_o magus_n and_o judas_n can_v hardly_o stand_v under_o the_o weight_n of_o that_o denomination_n nor_o 4_o can_v it_o well_o be_v say_v that_o great_a apostle_n prophet_n worker_n of_o miracle_n such_o as_o speak_v with_o tongue_n be_v eye_n and_o ear_n fix_v in_o single_a congregation_n for_o this_o be_v such_o a_o organical_a body_n v_o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o never_o interpreter_n neither_o occumenius_n nor_o augustine_n nor_o beza_n calvin_n martyr_n pareus_n nor_o only_o judicious_a papist_n victorinus_n carthusian_n estius_n cajetanus_n expound_v it_o as_o mr._n h._n of_o a_o single_a congregation_n but_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n say_v martyr_n of_o man_n of_o all_o nation_n say_v pareus_n though_o they_o dwell_v in_o divers_a place_n of_o the_o earth_n say_v pareus_n this_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n say_v estius_n membra_fw-la autem_fw-la omnes_fw-la fideles_fw-la the_o member_n be_v all_o the_o faithful_a he_o prove_v say_v cajetanus_n omnes_fw-la christianos_n esse_fw-la unum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la all_o christian_n behold_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v the_o one_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v all_o beget_v into_o one_o spirit_n by_o baptism_n 4._o the_o church_n here_o be_v the_o church_n all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n whither_o jew_n or_o gentile_n whether_o bond_n or_o free_n which_o all_o drink_v the_o same_o drink_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n mr._n h._n in_o all_o these_o congregation_n be_v comprehend_v both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n for_o the_o whole_a nature_n of_o the_o general_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o particular_n well_o and_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o all_o the_o body_n must_v be_v one_o genere_fw-la and_o the_o drink_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n must_v be_v one_o genere_fw-la and_o so_o must_v the_o christ_n of_o which_o we_o partake_v be_v one_o genere_fw-la hence_o there_o be_v many_o species_n and_o kind_n of_o congregation_n different_a in_o nature_n there_o must_v be_v many_o christ_n different_a in_o nature_n many_o spirit_n many_o body_n many_o lord_n supper_n different_a in_o species_n and_o nature_n of_o which_o we_o partake_v who_o ever_o hear_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n many_o christ_n many_o baptism_n yet_o mr._n h._n make_v many_o congregation_n so_o
and_o gentile_n baptize_v unto_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 21_o 22._o to_o tender_a the_o supper_n upon_o occasion_n to_o they_o and_o their_o member_n as_o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 10._o 16_o 17._o and_o our_o brethren_n teach_v and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o the_o church-praying_a church-praising_a church_n confirmation_n by_o pastoral_a teach_n of_o eminent_a teacher_n and_o of_o church_n suffer_v etc._n etc._n by_o martyrdom_n and_o otherwise_o then_o must_v that_o congregation_n be_v a_o visible_a member_n with_o all_o visible_a congregaâions_n on_o earth_n and_o by_o good_a logic_n all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n be_v one_o integral_a catholic_a visible_a church_n 11._o if_o the_o apostle_n here_o condemn_v a_o schism_n and_o rent_n not_o from_o one_o single_a congregation_n only_o but_o from_o the_o body_n of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n baptize_v into_o one_o spirit_n ver_fw-la 12_o 13._o &_o 25._o from_o the_o church_n of_o galatia_n gal._n 5_o 20._o from_o all_o church_n jude_n v._n 19_o and_o commend_v union_n with_o all_o church_n because_o of_o one_o faith_n one_o lord_n one_o baptism_n eph._n 4._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o then_o he_o suppose_v they_o be_v one_o body_n cyprian_n b._n of_o carthage_n cornelius_n b._n of_o 101._o rome_n just_o excommunicate_v novatus_n deny_v mercy_n to_o they_o that_o fall_v ergo_fw-la those_o great_a church_n make_v one_o visible_a body_n and_o the_o novatian_o be_v not_o schismatic_n because_o they_o separate_v from_o one_o single_a congregation_n but_o say_v socrates_n they_o hinder_v the_o church_n from_o union_n augustine_n and_o optatus_n melivit_fw-la and_o the_o father_n make_v the_o donatists_n schismatic_n in_o separate_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o church_n but_o their_o own_o in_o one_o part_n of_o africa_n see_v pet._n martyr_n learned_o dispute_v about_o schism_n and_o calvin_n see_v aug._n and_o opt._n melivitan_n 12._o it_o be_v true_a say_v mr._n h._n of_o all_o congregation_n that_o the_o member_n do_v and_o shall_v care_v one_o for_o another_o ans._n and_o this_o 12_o i_o bring_v for_o one_o argument_n if_o this_o gloss_n of_o mr._n h._n remove_v all_o member-care_n and_o all_o organical-care_n of_o suffering_n and_o joy_n such_o as_o be_v betwixt_o the_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n from_o congregation_n towards_o all_o other_o congregation_n as_o towards_o their_o fellow-member_n and_o limit_v member_n care_n and_o member_n fellow-feeling_n to_o only_a member_n of_o the_o same_o congregation_n then_o this_o gloss_n must_v contradict_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 26._o and_o whether_o one_o member_n suffer_v all_o the_o member_n suffer_v with_o it_o or_o one_o member_n be_v honour_v all_o the_o member_n rejoice_v with_o it_o for_o this_o gloss_n say_v i_o the_o church_n of_o boston_n complete_a and_o independent_a within_o myself_o care_v not_o with_o member_n care_n for_o all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n though_o they_o utter_o perish_v nor_o do_v i_o rejoice_v with_o the_o fellow-feeling_n joy_n of_o fellow-member_n at_o the_o honour_n and_o spiritual_a good_a of_o all_o the_o congregation_n on_o earth_n sure_o this_o doctrine_n can_v body_n be_v of_o god_n which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n for_o that_o be_v not_o typical_a in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n shall_v sorrow_n and_o rejoice_v with_o member_n of_o that_o covenant_v nation_n as_o with_o those_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n as_o david_n psal._n 19_o 2._o &_o 122._o 1_o 2_o 6_o 7_o 8_o &_o 119._o 63._o moses_n exod._n 2._o 11._o heb._n 11._o 24_o 25._o mordecai_n and_o esther_n esth._n 2._o 1_o 2._o ver_fw-la 15_o 16_o 17._o cap._n 21_o 22._o and_o the_o captive_a people_n psal._n 137._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o and_o jeremiah_n cap._n 9_o 1_o 2_o 3._o ezekiel_n cap._n 9_o 8._o &_o 11._o 13._o daniel_n cap._n 9_o 16_o 17_o 18_o etc._n etc._n but_o we_o be_v not_o to_o mourn_v with_o those_o that_o mourn_v nor_o to_o rejoice_v with_o those_o that_o rejoice_v as_o rom._n 12._o 15_o with_o a_o fellow-feeling_n affection_n as_o with_o member_n of_o the_o same_o visible_a body_n though_o their_o weal_n and_o woe_n be_v most_o visible_a to_o we_o as_o their_o church_n and_o saintship_n be_v except_o with_o those_o only_o who_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o independent_a congregation_n for_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o body_n of_o which_o we_o be_v member_n as_o the_o body_n of_o socrates_n feel_v no_o member_n pain_n when_o the_o finger_n of_o john_n be_v cut_v off_o 7._o there_o be_v a_o body_n to_o be_v gather_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n 7._o and_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n a_o body_n to_o be_v glorify_v eph._n 4._o 13._o now_o this_o be_v the_o catholic_n body_n of_o christ_n visible_a and_o the_o lord_n end_v why_o he_o give_v apostle_n prophet_n and_o doctor_n till_o we_o be_v all_o glorify_a and_o this_o church_n be_v visible_a because_o gather_v and_o edify_v by_o a_o ministry_n they_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n which_o be_v feed_v by_o minister_n the_o church_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o 8._o hell_n can_v prevail_v can_v be_v no_o single_a congregation_n for_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v against_o the_o single_a congregation_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n church_n which_o only_o continue_v to_o the_o church_n end_n and_o this_o church_n be_v visible_a for_o to_o the_o minister_n thereof_o be_v the_o key_n give_v to_o open_a and_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n by_o the_o word_n preach_v seal_n and_o censure_n matth._n 16._o ergo_fw-la there_o be_v a_o catholic_n integral_n militant_a church_n visible_a if_o christ_n reign_v by_o the_o preach_v word_n seal_n and_o censure_n over_o 9_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n rev._n 11._o 15._o over_o the_o nation_n isa._n 2._o 1_o 2._o psal._n 2_o 8_o 9_o psal._n 22._o 27_o 28._o psal._n 96._o 10_o 11_o 12._o psal._n 97._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o etc._n etc._n psal._n 98._o 7_o 8_o 9_o psal._n 99_o 1_o 2_o 3._o and_o have_v a_o visible_a government_n in_o the_o house_n of_o david_n isa._n 9_o 7._o over_o the_o earth_n isa._n 11._o 4_o 10_o 11._o from_o sea_n to_o sea_n psal._n 72._o 8_o etc._n etc._n then_o be_v there_o a_o catholic_n integral_n visible_a church_n but_o the_o former_a be_v true_a obj._n all_o our_o divine_n say_v it_o be_v a_o popish_a tenet_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v visible_a our_o divine_n acknowledge_v no_o church_n visible_a but_o only_o a_o particular_a church_n ans._n mr._n hudson_n a_o learned_a and_o godly_a man_n reap_v so_o clean_o hudson_n that_o i_o shall_v not_o cast_v any_o sickle_n into_o his_o field_n noâ_n be_v there_o need_n 1._o the_o papist_n contend_v for_o a_o catholic_a visible_a church_n to_o set_v their_o man_n of_o sin_n over_o it_o this_o church_n include_v some_o of_o they_o say_v purgatory_n and_o heaven_n and_o hell_n of_o both_o which_o he_o bear_v excinduntur_fw-la the_o key_n salmeron_n cornel_n à _fw-la lapide_fw-la they_o may_v be_v loose_v that_o be_v under_o the_o earth_n by_o key_n as_o member_n of_o the_o body_n he_o give_v say_v cornelius_n à _fw-la lapide_fw-la pardon_v to_o the_o dead_a invisible_a member_n indeed_o not_o by_o way_n of_o juridical_a absolution_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v no_o long_o subject_n on_o earth_n but_o by_o way_n of_o suffrage_n bâllarmin_n prove_v from_o pet._n cluniacens_n that_o the_o dead_a in_o purgatory_n be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o pope_n say_v bellarmin_n as_o the_o chief_a dispenser_n of_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n may_v bestow_v upon_o those_o in_o purgatory_n bona_fw-la opera_fw-la poenalia_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o thesauro_fw-la sunt_fw-la the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o godly_a do_v by_o way_n of_o suffer_v in_o this_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v be_v visible_a 2._o the_o papist_n contend_v for_o a_o catholic_a church_n visible_a such_o as_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n so_o bellarmin_n make_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n all_o one_o and_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o tree_n from_o which_o through_o divers_a time_n and_o age_n branch_n have_v be_v cut_v and_o so_o must_v be_v as_o rodericus_fw-la de_fw-fr arriaga_n catholic_n extend_v itself_o 33._o all_o the_o world_n over_o in_o divers_a age_n and_o time_n ad._n tannerus_n the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n for_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o universality_n of_o time_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n endure_v âor_a ever_o and_o for_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o place_n now_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o this_o
place_n eph._n 1._o 22_o 23._o refer_v for_o which_o see_v calvin_n beza_n zanchius_n on_o the_o place_n and_o especial_o solid_o learn_v d._n d._n boyd_n of_o trochrigge_n learned_a and_o sharp_a mr._n paul_n baines_n in_o their_o learned_a commentary_n on_o ephes._n 1._o 21_o 22._o hence_o augustine_n it_o contain_v all_o the_o sanctify_a one_o but_o we_o do_v not_o now_o contend_v with_o papist_n concern_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o sunt_fw-la its_o latitude_n of_o these_o two_o acception_n as_o 1._o whether_o the_o elect_a angel_n and_o the_o glorify_a in_o heaven_n and_o these_o that_o be_v to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_a visible_a church_n but_o be_v not_o yet_o bear_v be_v visible_a member_n 2._o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v visible_a head_n and_o have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n to_o feed_v with_o word_n censure_n and_o seal_n the_o elect_a angel_n the_o patriarch_n prophet_n martyr_n etc._n etc._n who_o be_v now_o prefer_v in_o glory_n 3._o whether_o the_o church_n catholic_a in_o that_o latitude_n contain_v such_o noble_a member_n can_v err_v in_o a_o general_a council_n or_o out_o of_o it_o or_o can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o and_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n as_o to_o the_o latter_a acception_n our_o divine_n condemn_v papist_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o visible_a catholic_a church_n we_o say_v we_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n but_o visible_a it_o be_v not_o and_o neither_o mr._n hudson_n nor_o i_o nor_o any_o of_o we_o do_v dispute_v for_o a_o catholic_a integral_n visible_a church_n or_o for_o a_o catholic_a body_n of_o presbyter_n and_o officer_n that_o be_v have_v be_v and_o now_o be_v glorify_v and_o shall_v be_v bear_v as_o if_o they_o be_v the_o first_o formal_a subject_n of_o the_o key_n mr._n h._n lose_v his_o time_n in_o blot_v paper_n to_o make_v we_o dispute_v any_o such_o question_n and_o to_o bring_v in_o popish_a inference_n against_o we_o in_o that_o but_o 3._o there_o be_v a_o integral_a catholic_a visible_a church_n to_o and_o visible_a for_o which_o eph._n 4._o 11_o 12_o 13._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13_o etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n have_v give_v all_o his_o ordinance_n as_o by_o succession_n of_o age_n it_o exi_v on_o earth_n see_v the_o accurate_a confession_n of_o faith_n see_v judicious_a dispute_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o leyden_n by_o anton._n walaeus_n worthy_a to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o in_o which_o they_o solid_o observe_v that_o many_o confound_v the_o particular_a church_n and_o the_o visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v indeed_o to_o be_v distinguish_v for_o the_o universal_a integral_a church_n be_v in_o its_o own_o way_n visible_a 1._o in_o its_o part_n as_o be_v say_v before_o 2._o in_o the_o community_n of_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n both_o in_o preach_v confession_n and_o write_n so_o that_o it_o have_v no_o sense_n to_o limit_v visibility_n to_o one_o single_a congregation_n as_o our_o brethren_n do_v for_o our_o eye_n may_v as_o well_o see_v two_o congregation_n and_o many_o to_o be_v visible_a saint_n and_o to_o worship_n in_o a_o churchway_n the_o same_o lord_n jesus_n as_o we_o see_v the_o member_n of_o our_o own_o one_o congregation_n 3._o whether_o synod_n be_v for_o counsel_n and_o advice_n only_o as_o our_o brethren_n say_v or_o 2._o for_o pastoral_a teach_n and_o dogmatic_a determine_n of_o truth_n for_o edification_n as_o mr._n cotton_n contrary_a to_o his_o brethren_n teach_v or_o 3_o for_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v against_o common_a sense_n to_o deny_v that_o the_o integral_a catholic_a church_n be_v visible_a in_o synod_n whether_o ecumenical_a or_o national_a or_o provincial_a for_o the_o representative_a be_v as_o visible_a as_o the_o congregation_n and_o whereas_o our_o divine_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a because_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o specific_a and_o constitutive_a form_n of_o the_o church_n be_v invisible_a and_o know_v only_o to_o god_n the_o searcher_n of_o heart_n they_o be_v not_o so_o to_o be_v expound_v as_o if_o this_o be_v their_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o the_o congregation_n only_o visible_a visible_a nor_o do_v they_o use_v such_o a_o argument_n for_o such_o a_o conclusion_n for_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o a_o congregation_n be_v as_o invisible_a and_o know_v to_o god_n only_o yea_o the_o faith_n of_o one_o single_a member_n be_v as_o latent_fw-la and_o invisible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o sense_n and_o more_o latent_fw-la than_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a visible_a church_n for_o faith_n be_v persuade_v there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o seed_n but_o the_o scripture_n say_v not_o that_o this_o or_o that_o man_n or_o that_o this_o congregation_n have_v save_v faith_n it_o be_v true_a the_o profession_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v because_o of_o the_o universality_n of_o saint_n remote_a from_o our_o sense_n and_o so_o less_o visible_a which_o hinder_v not_o that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o our_o divine_n say_v that_o in_o time_n of_o great_a persecution_n the_o church_n know_v not_o one_o another_o as_o say_v augustine_n who_o also_o compare_v she_o to_o the_o moon_n which_o faciunt_fw-la be_v often_o âid_v as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o elias_n and_o jerom_n tell_v that_o the_o christian_a world_n sigh_v under_o arrianism_n the_o pope_n by_o cruel_a war_n banish_v those_o call_v waldenses_n albigenses_n pauperes_fw-la de_fw-fr lugduno_n picardi_n until_o wickliff_n rise_v there_o be_v say_v d._n fulk_n about_o the_o time_n of_o 350._o year_n great_a darkness_n see_v cartwright_n nor_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o mr._n h._n to_o prove_v that_o when_o our_o divine_n do_v say_v particular_a church_n be_v visible_a that_o they_o mean_v mr._n h._n his_o particular_a independent_a congregation_n only_o he_o be_v a_o great_a stranger_n in_o our_o divine_n write_n who_o know_v not_o that_o from_o matth._n 18._o tell_v the_o church_n they_o prove_v that_o a_o general_a council_n have_v juridical_a power_n to_o censure_n peter_n or_o the_o pope_n since_o learning_n be_v it_o be_v never_o count_v a_o point_n of_o popery_n except_o all_o our_o reformer_n be_v papist_n which_o mr._n h._n cit_v from_o turrianus_n if_o it_o be_v speak_v in_o thesi_fw-la but_o he_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o visible_a body_n under_o the_o pope_n in_o hypothesi_fw-la for_o it_o be_v but_o what_o beda_n and_o other_o say_v from_o scripture_n eph._n 4._o 1_o 2._o but_o as_o papist_n in_o thest_n speak_v sound_o in_o the_o attribute_n of_o omnipotency_n so_o here_o when_o in_o hypothe_v apply_v the_o doctrine_n of_o omnipotency_n to_o their_o apol_n miracle_n to_o transubstantiation_n to_o adoration_n of_o image_n they_o vanish_v in_o vain_a speculation_n nor_o can_v we_o deny_v but_o some_o of_o our_o own_o have_v go_v too_o far_o one_o in_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o so_o numerous_a but_o they_o meet_v all_o in_o one_o place_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n hierapolis_n jerusalem_n be_v congregation_n that_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n they_o will_v explain_v their_o mind_n in_o that_o point_n more_o circumstantiate_o if_o they_o be_v to_o speak_v thereof_o again_o but_o their_o purpose_n be_v in_o the_o point_n of_o prelacy_n to_o prove_v a_o true_a conclusion_n of_o p._n bains_n that_o the_o scripture_n give_v no_o warrant_n to_o a_o diocesan_n church_n that_o be_v to_o 60_o or_o 100_o congregational_a church_n to_o be_v feed_v by_o word_n seal_n and_o censure_n by_o one_o little_a monarch_n call_v a_o prelate_n whereas_o the_o church_n feed_v so_o as_o be_v say_v be_v a_o single_a congregation_n meet_v in_o the_o same_o place_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 2._o there_o can_v be_v a_o ordinary_a exercise_n of_o the_o key_n by_o the_o weekly_a converse_n of_o the_o officer_n of_o 80_o or_o 100_o church_n so_o many_o mile_n separate_v one_o from_o another_o 3._o it_o be_v true_a eusebius_n in_o divers_a place_n call_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n hierapolis_n etc._n etc._n parââcias_n congregational_a meeting_n and_o ignatius_n write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n that_o they_o shall_v convene_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o tertullian_n say_v the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n meet_v in_o one_o body_n all_o which_o be_v true_a of_o the_o church_n distributive_o but_o cyprian_n shall_v resute_n they_o who_o say_v the_o church_n of_o carthage_n be_v one_o congregation_n scripture_n reason_n father_n shall_v quick_o speak_v against_o they_o who_o shall_v say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o constantinople_n be_v one_o congregational_a church_n under_o cornelius_n and_o chrysostome_n chap._n vii_o ordination_n not_o election_n of_o the_o people_n give_v the_o
this_o flock_n choice_n give_v he_o causative_o right_a and_o be_v not_o simple_o to_o be_v a_o pastor_n ordination_n of_o the_o elder_n act._n 6._o 6._o 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22_o etc._n etc._n do_v that_o but_o to_o be_v this_o flock_n fix_v pastor_n for_o we_o must_v distinguish_v betwixt_o a_o pastor_n and_o this_o people_n pastor_n a_o pastor_n actu_fw-la primo_fw-la and_o a_o fix_a pastor_n in_o the_o second_o act_n and_o exercise_n of_o his_o call_n hic_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la to_o this_o people_n as_o touch_v their_o formales_fw-la rationes_fw-la if_o our_o brethren_n will_v give_v we_o leave_v if_o not_o we_o value_v not_o scripture_n and_o good_a logic_n be_v for_o we_o 3._o mr._n ball_n and_o mr._n r._n say_v not_o in_o several_a place_n yes_o no_o where_o that_o the_o people_n may_v preach_v and_o baptize_v if_o they_o give_v causative_o be_v to_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n but_o the_o people_n may_v then_o do_v and_o perform_v as_o high_a act_n official_a and_o juridical_a to_o the_o impertinent_a instance_n of_o alderman_n and_o major_a i_o have_v answer_v 4._o it_o be_v but_o ânsis_fw-la and_o gladius_fw-la that_o be_v in_o the_o reply_n for_o the_o people_n deliver_v up_o themselves_o by_o voluntary_a subjection_n to_o be_v rule_v by_o he_o give_v he_o no_o more_o be_v and_o right_a to_o be_v a_o pastor_n but_o only_o right_a to_o be_v their_o pastor_n which_o be_v accidental_a to_o their_o call_n than_o the_o sick_a man_n voluntary_a subjection_n of_o and_o deliver_v up_o of_o his_o body_n and_o health_n under_o the_o lord_n and_o creator_n of_o life_n to_o thomas_n a_o skilled_a physician_n to_o follow_v all_o his_o medicinal_a injunction_n give_v causative_o be_v to_o thomas_n to_o be_v physician_n whereas_o he_o be_v a_o physician_n many_o year_n before_o mr._n h._n ordination_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n but_o 74._o of_o order_n rather_o it_o give_v not_o be_v nor_o constitution_n to_o a_o officer_n but_o be_v rather_o the_o admission_n and_o confirmation_n of_o he_o in_o his_o office_n ans._n that_o be_v say_v not_o prove_v if_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o order_n and_o command_v of_o god_n aâ_n where_o the_o regulate_v of_o a_o thing_n that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d rash_o be_v command_v there_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v command_v 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o then_o your_o ordinatihn_n by_o the_o sole_a male_a church_n void_a of_o all_o officer_n and_o call_v of_o 66._o officer_n without_o officer_n a_o thing_n without_o example_n in_o the_o scripture_n except_o where_o god_n call_v immediate_o want_v a_o act_n of_o order_n command_v of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o a_o ordinary_a way_n for_o your_o way_n be_v in_o ordinary_a the_o church_n be_v before_o the_o officer_n and_o give_v be_v to_o the_o officer_n 2._o if_o ordination_n be_v but_o a_o approbation_n of_o the_o officer_n who_o have_v already_o be_v and_o not_o necessary_a that_o ordination_n shall_v be_v where_o there_o be_v election_n of_o people_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v strange_a that_o there_o be_v officer_n at_o all_o the_o call_n of_o officer_n we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n who_o yet_o need_v not_o be_v there_o but_o be_v ex_fw-la superabundanti_fw-la present_a as_o act._n 1._o act._n 6._o act._n 13._o 1_o 2_o 3._o act._n 14._o 23._o 1_o tim._n 4._o 14_o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o tit._n 1._o 5._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 10_o etc._n etc._n and_o no_o where_o be_v there_o vola_fw-la vel_fw-la vestigium_fw-la of_o a_o command_n or_o promise_v to_o the_o church_n destitute_a of_o officer_n to_o call_v and_o give_v be_v to_o officer_n nor_o any_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o it_o and_o i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o own_v such_o a_o logic_n as_o mr._n h._n put_v upon_o i_o the_o church_n have_v not_o receive_v power_n of_o excommunicate_v all_o their_o officer_n ergo_fw-la they_o have_v not_o receive_v that_o power_n aâ_n neither_o thing_n nor_o word_n be_v in_o my_o mind_n or_o book_n but_o i_o ordination_n provoke_v all_o the_o brethren_n for_o a_o warrant_n or_o shadow_n of_o a_o warrant_n by_o precept_n by_o promise_n by_o practice_n in_o scripture_n for_o a_o church_n void_a of_o officer_n that_o have_v power_n to_o call_v and_o give_v be_v to_o officer_n or_o admit_v in_o or_o cast_v out_o member_n or_o perform_v any_o church_n worship_n 3._o let_v it_o be_v consider_v if_o christ_n have_v give_v any_o jurisdiction_n at_o all_o it_o must_v be_v in_o call_v and_o in_o give_v be_v to_o the_o officer_n of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n but_o the_o specific_a act_n of_o give_v be_v to_o the_o officer_n be_v to_o set_v man_n over_o the_o work_n act._n 6._o 3._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o separate_v and_o set_v apart_o for_o the_o call_n act._n 13._o 2._o to_o prove_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d before_o they_o be_v put_v in_o the_o ministry_n whether_o they_o have_v the_o requisite_a qualification_n or_o not_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 10._o to_o lay_v hand_n on_o man_n for_o the_o office_n cautelous_o 1_o tim._n 5._o 2d_o to_o commit_v the_o charge_n to_o faithful_a man_n able_a to_o teach_v other_o 2_o tim._n 2._o 2._o tit._n 1._o 5._o be_v ascribe_v to_o elder_n to_o prophet_n to_o ãâã_d pastor_n show_v i_o the_o like_v ascribe_v to_o your_o church_n want_v officer_n mr._n r._n his_o comparison_n of_o a_o ambassador_n etc._n etc._n must_v stand_v then_o till_o you_o answer_v these_o often_o propose_a argument_n it_o be_v weak_a that_o mr._n h._n that_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n be_v congregational_a 86._o mr._n h._n answer_v not_o my_o argument_n on_o the_o contrary_a nor_o touch_v they_o 2._o it_o be_v most_o weak_a to_o say_v do_v paul_n exhort_v the_o elder_n when_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o classis_fw-la to_o watch_n against_o rauâning_a wolf_n or_o do_v they_o not_o this_o in_o their_o special_a charge_n as_o if_o a_o judicature_n of_o civil_a watchman_n a_o college_n of_o physician_n be_v not_o both_o alone_a and_o in_o their_o respective_a assembly_n to_o watch_v over_o the_o city_n and_o the_o sick_a mr._n h._n when_o church_n be_v complete_v with_o all_o officer_n that_o 83._o then_o ordination_n be_v act_v by_o a_o college_n of_o pastor_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o text_n say_v any_o such_o thing_n ans._n the_o homogeneal_a church_n yet_o want_v officer_n say_v mr._n h._n be_v complete_a to_o create_v and_o call_v its_o officer_n and_o aâ_n independent_a in_o a_o island_n without_o officer_n and_o have_v that_o power_n 91._o and_o no_o word_n of_o precept_n or_o promise_n or_o any_o such_o practice_n for_o such_o a_o church_n create_v their_o officer_n paul_n shall_v have_v bid_v they_o use_v their_o power_n of_o ordain_v as_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n act._n 6._o hid_n they_o use_v their_o power_n of_o choose_v and_o paul_n shall_v not_o have_v charge_v timothy_n to_o usurp_v ordain_v of_o officer_n where_o there_o be_v a_o church_n in_o a_o orderly_a way_n be_v the_o first_o formal_a subject_n of_o the_o key_n to_o do_v it_o and_o mr._n r._n give_v instance_n where_o the_o elder_n be_v command_v to_o ordain_v and_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o say_v this_o command_n or_o practice_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o word_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o people_n my_o four_o argument_n stand_v because_o every_o twelve_o in_o a_o family_n family_n be_v a_o homogeneous_a church_n true_o say_v mr._n h._n but_o they_o watch_v one_o over_o another_o by_o family_n rule_v ans._n that_o be_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o a_o family_n combination_n have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o a_o church_n combination_n if_o the_o church_n be_v take_v for_o a_o homogeneal_a association_n and_o want_v only_o the_o name_n for_o they_o can_v watch_v over_o one_o another_o as_o touch_v seal_n and_o no_o more_o can_v any_o homogeneous_a church_n of_o divers_a family_n so_o watch_v over_o one_o another_o chap._n viii_o whether_o covenant-right_a to_o baptism_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o near_a parent_n only_o or_o from_o the_o remote_a the_o grandfather_n mr._n h._n it_o belong_v not_o to_o any_o ââ¦d_a ââssors_n either_o near_o or_o 13._o further_o off_o remove_v it_o be_v from_o the_o next_o parent_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o first_o to_o give_v covenant_n right_a of_o baptism_n to_o their_o child_n ãâã_d when_o i_o say_v predecessor_n near_o eââ¦r_n further_o off_o i_o include_v and_o comprohend_v all_o beside_o the_o next_o parent_n now_o covenant_n right_o agree_v etc._n not_o to_o all_o other_o foâ_n they_o nor_o can_v the_o pââ¦_n ãâã_d this_o ãâã_d out_o the_o next_o parent_n in_o church_n covenant_n who_o be_v the_o adequateâââsâ_n of_o derive_v these_o
privilege_n ans._n 1._o when_o mr._n h._n say_v it_o belong_v not_o to_o remote_a parent_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o fist_o to_o convey_v covenant_n right_a to_o the_o child_n he_o will_v make_v the_o reader_n believe_v that_o remote_a parent_n have_v some_o causative_a influence_n but_o not_o primary_n as_o the_o first_o subject_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v if_o the_o near_a parent_n be_v the_o adequate_a cause_n of_o conveyance_n as_o âe_n say_v then_o shall_v he_o not_o leave_v any_o influence_n at_o all_o to_o remote_a parent_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o the_o near_a parent_n as_o visible_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n grace_n but_o as_o visible_o in_o church-covenant_n independent_a wise_a by_o mr._n h._n his_o doctrine_n for_o say_v mr._n h._n ibid._n the_o next_o parent_n can_v give_v the_o privilege_n and_o title_n to_o baptism_n without_o any_o help_n of_o the_o predecessor_n hence_o 1._o more_o weight_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o church-covenant_n 29._o than_o upon_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n be_v heighten_v above_o the_o gospel_n and_o command_n of_o god_n for_o suppose_v that_o judas_n magus_n jezabel_n who_o be_v under_o the_o church-covenant_n be_v never_o discover_v nor_o judicial_o cast_v out_o they_o convey_v covenant-right_a to_o baptism_n but_o 1._o these_o of_o approve_a godliness_n and_o visible_a saint_n who_o can_v in_o conscience_n submit_v to_o their_o church-covenant_n be_v seclude_v from_o the_o seal_n and_o their_o seed_n from_o baptism_n as_o the_o place_n in_o the_o margin_n clear_a and_o magus_n and_o jezabel_n their_o child_n be_v admit_v to_o baptism_n for_o the_o new_a church-covenant_n and_o other_o famous_o know_v to_o be_v godly_a to_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o congregational_a way_n and_o who_o bring_v sufficient_a testimonial_n with_o they_o as_o their_o own_o word_n be_v though_o the_o testimonial_n be_v from_o private_a christian_n yet_o because_o the_o testimonial_n be_v not_o from_o a_o church_n a_o church_n know_v to_o they_o to_o be_v under_o a_o church-covenant_n either_o implicit_o or_o explicit_o be_v not_o admit_v to_o church-ordinance_n and_o so_o neither_o their_o seed_n to_o baptism_n 2._o godly_a so_o journer_n know_v to_o be_v such_o and_o visible_a member_n break_v off_o from_o church-membership_a through_o no_o sin_n or_o scandal_n 10._o in_o they_o but_o either_o through_o violence_n of_o persecution_n or_o some_o stroke_n of_o judgement_n as_o pestilence_n that_o have_v scatter_v they_o and_o remove_v the_o elder_n by_o death_n can_v have_v no_o baptism_n to_o their_o child_n though_o they_o be_v visible_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n yet_o the_o seed_n of_o magus_n and_o jezabel_n upon_o the_o sole_a account_n of_o the_o church-covenant_n so_o that_o opus_fw-la operaâum_fw-la the_o deed_n do_v the_o want_n of_o the_o formality_n of_o their_o membership_n without_o the_o contempt_n reign_v here_o as_o in_o popery_n 3._o then_o by_o this_o they_o can_v have_v a_o wedding-garment_n to_o man_n discern_v who_o be_v not_o inchurch_v their_o way_n 4._o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n nor_o the_o visible_o call_v of_o god_n nor_n 5._o member_n visible_a of_o christ_n body_n but_o as_o pagan_n and_o publican_n who_o be_v not_o thus_o inchurch_v in_o the_o near_a parent_n and_o their_o seed_n unclean_a and_o pagan-seed_n 6._o then_o the_o seal_n be_v never_o administer_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n until_o the_o independent_a church_n arise_v 7._o nor_o can_v egypt_n assyria_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o son_n christ_n as_o isa._n 19_o 25._o &_o 2._o 1_o 3._o rev._n 11._o 15._o except_o only_o in_o the_o near_a father_n and_o mother_n inchurch_v by_o the_o church-covenant_n the_o ââed_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o their_o offspring_n bless_v of_o the_o lord_n isa._n 61._o 9_o their_o seed_n and_o their_o seed_n seed_n isa._n 59_o 21._o the_o endure_a seed_n of_o christ_n psa._n 89_o 29_o 36._o isa._n 53._o 10._o gen._n 13._o 15._o isa._n 45_o 25_o by_o our_o brethren_n way_n be_v but_o only_o the_o near_a son_n and_o daughter_n etc._n of_o the_o only_a near_a father_n and_o mother_n in_o church_n covenant_n so_o christ_n be_v not_o david_n seed_n for_o david_n be_v not_o i_o judge_v his_o near_a father_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v bless_v psal._n 37._o 26._o his_o seed_n be_v mighty_a on_o earth_n psââ_n 12._o 2._o it_o must_v be_v only_o his_o near_a son_n and_o daughter_n not_o the_o thousand_o generation_n exod._n 20._o and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v praise_v he_o all_o you_o seed_n of_o jacob_n psal._n 22._o v_o 23._o none_o be_v then_o invite_v to_o praise_n god_n but_o the_o near_a son_n and_o daughter_n of_o the_o near_a parent_n for_o our_o brethren_n from_o whence_o be_v the_o marrow_n of_o mr._n h._n his_o book_n tell_v we_o the_o 1_o corinth_n 7._o 14._o seem_v to_o limit_v the_o foederal_a sanctity_n or_o holiness_n to_o the_o child_n who_o next_o parent_n one_o or_o both_o be_v believer_n for_o if_o we_o go_v one_o degree_n beyond_o the_o next_o parent_n we_o may_v baptize_v the_o child_n of_o all_o the_o turk_n and_o of_o all_o the_o indian_n and_o if_o so_o all_o the_o huge_a multitude_n of_o son_n and_o daughter_n come_v in_o to_o the_o church_n that_o make_v a_o eternal_a excellency_n isa._n 60_o 4_o 15._o and_o the_o joy_n of_o many_o generation_n who_o shall_v inherit_v the_o land_n for_o ever_o v_o 21._o to_o who_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v a_o everlasting_a light_n v_o 19_o shall_v be_v the_o child_n only_o who_o next_o parent_n one_o or_o both_o be_v believer_n but_o we_o think_v the_o second_o command_n exod._n 20._o take_v the_o brethren_n off_o that_o scripture_n 8._o and_o such_o up_n and_o down_n and_o leap_v like_o locust_n and_o frog_n from_o earth_n to_o water_n and_o from_o water_n to_o earth_n have_v not_o be_v hear_v for_o how_o often_o be_v independent_a member_n in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o christian_n and_o out_o of_o it_o again_o as_o pagan_n and_o their_o seed_n pagan_n and_o their_o seed_n seed_v pagan_n if_o all_o the_o fasten_n of_o a_o everlasting_a covenant_n to_o a_o kingdom_n be_v only_o near_a parent_n and_o if_o they_o break_v the_o charter_n of_o heaven_n all_o covenant-mercy_n be_v cancel_v to_o the_o seed_n and_o the_o seed_n seed_n 9_o if_o we_o speak_v with_o scripture_n the_o adequate_a cause_n of_o covenant_n grace_n love_n to_o father_n and_o son_n be_v the_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n deut._n 7._o 7_o 8._o &_o 10._o 15_o 2_o sam._n 7._o 23._o 24._o luke_n 1._o 50_o 68_o 69._o eph._n 2._o 4._o the_o convey_v subordinate_a cause_n be_v sometime_o a_o family_n as_o abraham_n not_o as_o a_o physical_a parent_n only_o to_o convey_v the_o covenant-right_a only_o in_o the_o direct_a blood_n thread_n or_o blood-line_n from_o parent_n to_o child_n but_o as_o both_o physical_a and_o moral_a or_o oeconomick_a parent_n for_o abraham_n get_v the_o covenant-charter_n give_v to_o he_o and_o not_o only_o to_o his_o blood-seed_n but_o to_o stranger_n and_o servant_n bear_v under_o he_o to_o the_o son_n of_o his_o servant_n gen._n 17._o 7._o 12._o it_o be_v give_v to_o cornelius_n and_o his_o house_n act._n 10._o 48._o &_o 16._o 33._o sometime_o to_o samaria_n a_o great_a city_n act._n 8._o to_o macedonia_n to_o a_o great_a kingdom_n exod._n 3â_n i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o father_n the_o god_n of_o abraham_n now_o abraham_n be_v not_o their_o next_o parent_n deut._n 10._o 11._o he_o give_v the_o land_n promise_v to_o the_o father_n luke_n 1._o 72._o he_o save_v we_o to_o perform_v the_o mercy_n promise_v to_o our_o father_n v._n 73._o to_o remember_v his_o holy_a covenant_n v._n 74._o the_o oath_n which_o he_o swear_v to_o our_o father_n abraham_n act_n 2._o the_o promise_n v._n 39_o be_v to_o you_o and_o to_o your_o child_n what_o only_o to_o your_o near_a child_n yea_o &_o to_o all_o that_o be_v afar_o off_o even_o as_o many_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n shall_v call_v 2_o cor._n 6_o 16._o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n seed_n according_a to_o that_o i_o will_v be_v thy_o god_n and_o the_o god_n of_o thy_o seed_n gen._n 17._o 7._o either_o must_v this_o fail_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o we_o have_v no_o more_o right_a to_o the_o promise_v make_v to_o abraham_n than_o the_o child_n of_o pagan_n have_v for_o if_o their_o near_a parent_n believe_v they_o have_v covenant_n right_a but_o that_o be_v but_o a_o yesterday_n charter_n yea_o though_o the_o child_n do_v worse_o and_o corrupt_v themselves_o more_o than_o their_o father_n
counsel_v mr._n cotton_n for_o command_n and_o use_v of_o the_o key_n yield_v also_o so_o the_o question_n shall_v not_o be_v of_o the_o subject_n but_o of_o the_o power_n and_o of_o the_o bound_n where_o act_n of_o free_a choice_n of_o rectify_a reason_n for_o civil_a end_n also_o have_v place_n but_o the_o conclusion_n be_v naught_o so_o that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n say_v he_o be_v a_o device_n of_o man_n i_o assume_v the_o 10._o frame_n of_o the_o meetinghouse_n for_o congregational_a worship_n the_o number_n name_n trade_n calling_n of_o member_n the_o quantity_n of_o they_o water_n in_o baptism_n the_o quantity_n of_o bread_n that_o every_o one_o eat_v aâ_n the_o lord_n supper_n be_v no_o more_o in_o scripture_n than_o the_o territory_n or_o bound_n of_o presbytery_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o for_o that_o humane_a device_n mr._n h._n it_o be_v doubtful_a that_o all_o our_o singular_a action_n as_o mr._n r._n say_v be_v mix_v for_o eat_v and_o drink_v must_v be_v for_o god_n glory_n and_o omnis_fw-la actio_fw-la in_o individuo_fw-la est_fw-la moraliter_fw-la bona_fw-la vel_fw-la mala_fw-la ans._n if_o mr._n h._n doubt_v of_o this_o ames_n didoclavius_n can_v speak_v debitum_fw-la to_o it_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o a_o action_n indifferent_a as_o augustine_n say_v or_o rather_o jerome_n that_o be_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a but_o it_o be_v not_o a_o humane_a action_n proper_o as_o to_o spit_v or_o purge_v the_o nose_n but_o see_v all_o the_o schoolman_n scotus_n thomas_n lombard_n and_o all_o that_o write_v upon_o they_o and_o you_o shall_v never_o read_v this_o new_a axiom_n omnis_fw-la actio_fw-la in_o individuo_fw-la est_fw-la moraliter_fw-la bona_fw-la uâl_fw-la mala_fw-la durandus_fw-la indeed_o and_o the_o schoolman_n say_v that_o every_o act_n individual_a which_o follow_v deliberate_a reason_n be_v necessary_o either_o moral_o good_a or_o evil_n see_v greg._n de_fw-fr valentia_n 2._o for_o the_o mixture_n of_o our_o action_n its_o clear_a there_o be_v something_o physical_a in_o eat_v at_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o the_o word_n have_v not_o set_v a_o rule_n concern_v the_o physical_a quantity_n of_o bread_n and_o win_n so_o there_o be_v not_o too_o much_o for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o feed_v the_o body_n nor_o too_o little_a for_o it_o must_v work_v upon_o the_o sense_n and_o there_o be_v in_o pray_v preach_v the_o tone_n the_o accent_n of_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o voice_n and_o their_o motion_n so_o that_o we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o god_n and_o sober_o and_o seasonable_o be_v moral_a and_o square_v by_o the_o word_n but_o a_o man_n sin_n not_o in_o eat_v quick_o or_o lent_o in_o the_o house_n or_o in_o the_o garden_n or_o sometime_o in_o his_o bed_n sometime_o at_o midnight_n upon_o necessity_n mr._n hooker_n err_v not_o a_o little_a in_o call_v the_o act_n of_o the_o synod_n act._n 15._o counsel_n such_o as_o godly_a man_n and_o woman_n who_o be_v not_o apostle_n and_o elder_n may_v give_v to_o other_o for_o counsel_n be_v not_o burden_n lay_v upon_o the_o people_n and_o church_n by_o the_o wisdom_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o by_o apostle_n and_o elder_n who_o sharp_o rebuke_v the_o presser_n of_o circumcision_n as_o subverter_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o people_n 3._o neither_o be_v they_o indifferent_a advice_n âhich_v they_o may_v reject_v but_o these_o they_o can_v not_o reject_v without_o despise_v god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o very_a thing_n that_o the_o lord_n say_v he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o a_o counsel_n of_o the_o heathen_a man_n to_o a_o christian._n it_o be_v say_v mr._n cotton_n a_o counsel_v act_n of_o the_o bind_a power_n of_o the_o key_n to_o bind_v burden_n as_o act_n 15._o 27._o 4._o the_o decree_n of_o no_o proper_o so_o call_v church_n on_o earth_n be_v call_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o decree_n of_o apostle_n and_o elder_n mr._n h._n call_v they_o only_a advice_n and_o counsel_n be_v it_o not_o safe_a to_o believe_v luke_n act._n 16._o 4._o then_o mr._n h_n but_o a_o synod_n be_v never_o call_v a_o church_n say_v they_o this_o be_v but_o to_o contend_v for_o name_n for_o the_o word_n church_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v three_o time_n act._n 19_o 32_o 39_o 40._o give_v to_o a_o civil_a meeting_n and_o mr._n h._n will_v not_o have_v it_o give_v to_o body_n meet_v for_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n mr._n h._n where_o there_o be_v no_o delegation_n of_o messenger_n by_o mutual_a consent_n there_o be_v no_o right_a of_o jurisdiction_n decree_v only_o bind_v the_o church_n who_o send_v they_o ans._n antioch_n act._n 15._o 2._o and_o jerusalem_n send_v messenger_n therefore_o two_o church_n at_o least_o be_v send_v and_o be_v bind_v as_o obedience_n for_o delegation_n we_o shall_v speak_v hereafter_o of_o it_o 2._o if_o they_o ought_v to_o send_v and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o light_n and_o peace_n and_o send_v not_o they_o be_v the_o same_o way_n tie_v that_o some_o hundred_o absent_a when_o jezabel_n be_v sentence_v and_o excommunicate_a be_v oblige_v to_o withdraw_v from_o communion_n from_o she_o though_o they_o be_v not_o present_a to_o consent_v to_o the_o sentence_n mr._n h._n it_o be_v no_o prejudice_n to_o the_o care_n and_o wisdom_n of_o our_o saviour_n that_o the_o punish_v of_o the_o congregational_a throne_n be_v reserve_v to_o god_n 60._o only_o ans._n when_o scandal_n between_o congregation_n and_o congregation_n and_o member_n of_o divers_a church_n be_v great_a in_o number_n and_o church_n offence_n and_o necessity_n of_o edify_v and_o scandalize_a great_a his_o wisdom_n must_v provide_v for_o the_o more_o rather_o than_o the_o less_o mr._n h._n if_o when_o a_o church_n offend_v i_o must_v tell_v a_o high_a then_o must_v i_o at_o length_n tell_v a_o oecumenick_n or_o general_n council_n ans._n general_a counsel_n be_v more_o abstract_v from_o infect_v scandal_n of_o conversation_n be_v rather_o doctrinal_a remedy_n nor_o be_v censure_n the_o ordinary_a possible_a adequate_a way_n of_o remove_v of_o scandal_n the_o word_n and_o censure_n exercise_v in_o the_o catholic_n integral_n visible_a church_n in_o part_n integral_a be_v the_o adequate_a cause_n mr._n h._n if_o every_o man_n be_v allow_v his_o appeal_n to_o a_o high_a than_o also_o to_o a_o general_n council_n then_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n while_o the_o appeal_n be_v discuss_v pendent_fw-la appellatione_fw-la the_o appealer_n can_v be_v censure_v ans._n we_o allow_v only_o just_a appeal_n in_o case_n of_o oppression_n to_o relieve_v the_o oppress_v allow_v 2._o in_o difficult_a case_n deut._n 17._o which_o rare_o be_v such_o as_o call_v for_o a_o general_a council_n in_o case_n of_o general_a defection_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n such_o may_v be_v and_o the_o inferior_a church_n that_o truth_n suffer_v not_o be_v to_o declare_v for_o the_o truth_n 2._o we_o allow_v only_o what_o man_n jure_v may_v do_v 3._o the_o argument_n suppose_v that_o we_o approve_v a_o tower_a up_o of_o appeal_n even_o to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o a_o liberty_n of_o every_o member_n whatever_o unjust_a prejudice_n be_v in_o it_o and_o that_o every_o such_o appeal_n may_v stop_v the_o act_n of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n and_o call_v pastor_n christ_n have_v give_v no_o power_n to_o sin_n mr._n h._n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o because_o church_n may_v rebuke_v yea_o christian_n may_v rebuke_v heathen_n though_o not_o in_o a_o church_n way_n that_o therefore_o the_o synod_n have_v a_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n paul_n rebuke_v the_o athenian_n act_n 17._o a_o ãâã_d these_o act_n of_o church_n communion_n ans._n my_o argument_n be_v not_o à _fw-la genere_fw-la ad_fw-la speciem_fw-la sed_fw-la specie_fw-la ad_fw-la genus_fw-la these_o convene_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o holy_a etc._n ghost_n who_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d with_o one_o consent_n by_o way_n of_o suffrage_n and_o judgement_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d act._n 15._o 9_o &_o 21._o 25._o rebuke_n perverter_n of_o soul_n act._n 24._o 28._o and_o lay_v on_o burden_n and_o command_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o observe_v act._n 21._o 25._o and_o keep_v such_o thing_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o abstain_v from_o such_o thing_n act._n 15._o 29._o and_o give_v decree_n by_o which_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v in_o peace_n and_o truth_n act._n 16._o 4_o 5._o these_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o refuser_n of_o such_o act_n according_a to_o matth._n 18._o for_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v scandalize_v and_o complain_v to_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n act._n 1._o who_o send_v they_o to_o complain_v to_o a_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n act._n 15._o 2_o 3_o 6._o and_o these_o who_o in_o a_o churchway_n determine_v
pastoral_a care_n of_o apostle_n for_o vacant_a charge_n for_o plant_v of_o new_a church_n relief_n of_o the_o poor_a remove_v division_n etc._n etc._n act._n 1._o &_o 6_o &_o 4._o 35._o &_o 11._o 1_o 2._o &_o 15_o 22_o 23_o 24_o etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 11._o 28._o act._n 8._o 14._o &_o 21._o 18._o &_o 20._o 38._o &_o 13._o 1_o 2_o 3._o be_v temporary_a and_o apostolic_a stirringâ_n not_o pastoral_a duty_n now_o but_o such_o as_o die_v with_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o christ._n mr._n h._n if_o government_n by_o independent_a congregation_n be_v insufficient_a because_o it_o authorize_v not_o person_n to_o be_v pastor_n over_o pagan_n 37._o government_n by_o synod_n be_v sick_a of_o the_o same_o disease_n ans._n we_o judge_v the_o essence_n of_o a_o pastor_n not_o to_o stand_v in_o the_o send_v call_n and_o choice_n of_o those_o to_o who_o they_o be_v pastor_n for_o it_o make_v paul_n barnabas_n and_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v no_o pastor_n to_o the_o gentile_n and_o to_o the_o heathen_a to_o who_o they_o preach_v and_o make_v the_o apostle_n as_o apostle_n to_o be_v no_o pastor_n 2._o synod_n from_o act._n 15._o and_o act._n 13._o may_v lend_v man_n authorize_v apostle_n with_o pastoral_a power_n to_o heathen_n to_o spread_v the_o gospel_n and_o private_a man_n as_o no_o pastor_n but_o as_o private_a man_n be_v intruder_n authorize_v by_o mr._n h._n for_o they_o have_v no_o promise_n such_o as_o pastor_n have_v by_o mat._n 28._o 19_o 20._o mark_v 16._o 15_o 17._o jer._n 1._o 6_o 17_o 18._o to_o plant_n church_n among_o the_o heathen_n nor_o be_v there_o a_o warrant_n to_o say_v that_o evangelist_n be_v ordinary_a officer_n leave_v by_o christ_n to_o plant_v church_n if_o richard_n hooker_n have_v any_o ground_n from_o eusebius_n or_o scripture_n 34._o for_o evangelist_n now_o or_o in_o trajan's_n time_n he_o must_v show_v that_o they_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n for_o how_o can_v evangelist_n be_v fellow-helper_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o be_v not_o a_o extraordinary_a office_n only_o see_v those_o divine_n in_o the_o margin_n and_o my_o learned_a and_o dear_a brother_n extraordinarii_fw-la m._n george_n gillespy_n miscel._n quest_n c._n 7._o if_o the_o church_n shall_v send_v any_o to_o the_o heathen_a any_o way_n ripâ_n for_o the_o gospel_n these_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o ordinary_a pastor_n to_o they_o i_o omit_v that_o of_o mr._n h._n there_o be_v nothing_o act._n 1._o but_o any_o one_o may_v have_v do_v ans._n if_o he_o mean_v that_o any_o one_o private_a man_n may_v have_v choose_v apostle_n he_o speak_v wonder_n if_o he_o mean_v peter_n may_v have_v call_v mathias_n to_o be_v a_o apostle_n 1._o it_o be_v without_o practice_n that_o apostle_n can_v call_v apostle_n 2._o it_o follow_v not_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o synod_n paul_n do_v more_o in_o write_v scripture_n than_o if_o alone_o he_o have_v pen_v the_o decree_n act_n 15._o &_o 16._o 4._o but_o mr._n cotton_n and_o all_o his_o brethren_n will_v deny_v m._n h._n his_o consequence_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o synod_n at_o all_o act._n 15._o mr._n h._n if_o the_o apostle_n by_o extraordinary_a power_n care_v for_o the_o poor_a act_v 4._o ergo_fw-la there_o be_v a_o synod_n ans._n the_o antecedent_n be_v not_o i_o but_o false_a 2._o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o ordinary_a pastor_n may_v oversee_v the_o poor_n good_n of_o many_o church_n chap._n xi_o of_o the_o national_a church_n and_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o a_o national_a covenant_n mr._n h._n the_o great_a authority_n of_o the_o politic_a whole_a body_n 40._o say_v mr._n r._n shall_v help_v the_o weak_a part_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 23_o 26._o ans._n it_o be_v true_a but_o there_o be_v no_o national_a church_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o help_v the_o congregational_a church_n nor_o be_v churches_n christian_n now_o in_o worse_a âase_n than_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o they_o have_v a_o highpriest_n and_o a_o national_a worship_n at_o which_o they_o be_v to_o meet_v three_o time_n in_o the_o year_n ans._n that_o there_o be_v a_o integral_a church_n catholic_n which_o be_v church_n more_o than_o national_a be_v prove_v 2._o our_o brethren_n allow_v the_o association_n of_o many_o church_n for_o help_n of_o counsel_n and_o the_o proposition_n that_o be_v grant_v by_o m._n h._n be_v as_o true_a for_o church_n help_v as_o be_v say_v associate_v church_n can_v not_o yield_v for_o union_n in_o peace_n and_o truth_n except_o they_o make_v one_o visible_a body_n unite_v natura_fw-la conjugatorum_fw-la hoc_fw-la âvincit_fw-la 3._o visible_a and_o profess_a covenant_v with_o god_n make_v a_o visible_a church_n gen_n 17._o 7._o deut._n 7._o 6._o for_o thou_o be_v a_o holy_a people_n unto_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n deut._n 10_o 15._o only_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o delight_n in_o thy_o father_n abraham_n isaac_n as_o a_o covenant_v seed_n and_o church_n gen._n 12_o 1_o 2_o 3._o &_o 17_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o to_o love_v they_o and_o their_o seed_n after_o they_o now_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n visible_a covenant_v ãâã_d by_o m._n h._n his_o confession_n be_v a_o visible_a church_n before_o they_o have_v a_o highpriest_n or_o a_o temple_n or_o a_o national_a worship_n in_o abraham_n house_n ergo_fw-la the_o high_a priesthood_n and_o national_a worship_n be_v accidental_a to_o the_o visible_a jewish_a church_n if_o it_o be_v say_v yeâ_n but_o they_o be_v in_o abraham_n time_n a_o congregational_a church_n it_o be_v answer_v yet_o then_o priesthood_n temple_n and_o national_a worship_n difference_v not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n from_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n our_o brethren_n argument_n in_o this_o be_v of_o the_o same_o stamp_n with_o that_o of_o the_o murderer_n of_o steven_n act_v 7._o steven_n all_o along_o in_o his_o apology_n refute_v they_o and_o âaith_n the_o jew_n be_v a_o true_a church_n in_o egypt_n when_o they_o have_v no_o temple_n no_o ceremony_n no_o national_a worship_n but_o by_o faith_n only_o rest_v upon_o the_o promise_n so_o calvin_n gualther_n bullinger_n brentius_n marloratus_n beza_n contend_v that_o steven_n his_o apology_n have_v be_v impertinent_a if_o this_o etc._n have_v not_o be_v his_o scope_n 2._o they_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n in_o egypt_n multiply_v above_o a_o hundred_o congregation_n exod._n 1._o 9_o 11_o 15._o more_o in_o number_n than_o the_o egyptian_n and_o the_o lord_n covenant_v church_n exod._n 3._o 6_o 7_o 8._o &_o 6._o 7._o 8._o oblige_v to_o sacrifice_v to_o god_n exod._n 8._o 29._o and_o do_v eat_v the_o passover_n and_o be_v circumcise_v in_o egypt_n exod._n 4._o 24_o 25_o 26_o &_o 12._o 1_o 2_o 3_o etc._n etc._n when_o as_o yet_o aaron_n be_v not_o consecrate_v highpriest_n and_o there_o be_v no_o temple_n nor_o any_o national_a temple-worship_n thrice_o a_o year_n at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o world_n 3._o when_o priesthood_n temple-national-worship_n thrice_o a_o year_n sacrifice_v be_v remove_v judah_n remain_v in_o the_o babylonish_n captivity_n the_o visible_o covenant_v people_n of_o god_n oblige_v to_o pray_v to_o he_o with_o their_o face_n towards_o the_o temple_n 1_o king_n 8._o 35._o dan._n 6_o 10_o 11._o and_o this_o be_v no_o more_o one_o national_a worship_n than_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o receive_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o n_o t._n be_v one_o national_a worship_n to_o all_o the_o protestant_a church-member_n in_o scotland_n 4._o that_o which_o be_v common_a to_o god_n people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o egypt_n and_o assyria_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o the_o gentile_n be_v no_o distinguish_a character_n difference_v the_o jewish_a church_n as_o national_a from_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o not_o national_a quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la communia_fw-la âa_n non_fw-la distingunnt_n but_o to_o profess_v say_v and_o swear_v by_o the_o lord_n and_o give_v he_o public_a church-worship_n agree_v to_o egypt_n and_o assyria_n and_o to_o kingdom_n and_o nation_n of_o the_o new_a jew_n testament_n as_o to_o the_o jewish_a nation_n as_o isa._n 2._o 2._o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o last_o day_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n v._n 3._o that_o many_o people_n shall_v go_v and_o say_v come_v you_o and_o let_v we_o go_v up_o to_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o of_o âù_fw-fr way_n etc._n etc._n so_o isa._n 19_o 25._o god_n shall_v bless_v thus_o say_v bless_a be_v egypt_n my_o people_n and_o assyria_n the_o work_n of_o my_o hand_n and_o israel_n my_o inheritance_n which_o the_o seven_o angel_n declare_v to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n rev._n 11._o 15._o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o
all_o gospel-vow_n to_o be_v unnecessary_a and_o will_v worship_v under_o the_o new_a testament_n whereas_o papist_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o mass_n they_o make_v a_o general_a vow_n of_o obedience_n to_o god_n see_v durantus_n and_o gab._n biel._n mr._n h._n for_o if_o the_o magistrate_n be_v bind_v to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n 57_o of_o the_o church_n and_o ministry_n if_o they_o shall_v judge_v a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n lawful_a or_o judge_v the_o false_a to_o be_v true_a he_o then_o be_v bind_v to_o nurse_v the_o false_a religion_n and_o false_a church_n ans._n 1._o no_o shadow_n of_o consequence_n be_v here_o for_o neither_o magistrate_n nor_o people_n can_v be_v bind_v to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n or_o ministry_n far_o than_o they_o follow_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n they_o follow_v their_o judgement_n conditional_o not_o absolute_o and_o simple_o and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a calumny_n of_o mr._n burton_n not_o and_o our_o brethren_n that_o we_o lay_v band_n on_o the_o conscience_n of_o prince_n and_o people_n to_o follow_v the_o act_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n be_v they_o true_a or_o false_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v to_o appeal_v to_o the_o next_o or_o a_o better_o inform_v synod_n and_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o collective_a church_n of_o the_o godly_a judicious_a professor_n and_o to_o protest_v and_o deny_v obedience_n to_o err_a assembly_n if_o it_o be_v say_v but_o where_o be_v there_o a_o judge_n to_o determine_v whether_o this_o or_o another_o well_o inform_v synod_n or_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o collective_a body_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v right_a this_o argument_n fall_v with_o equal_a weight_n upon_o all_o judicature_n all_o judge_n parliament_z prince_z and_o councillor_n with_o he_o &_o upon_o all_o assembly_n for_o what_o they_o determine_v be_v it_o toleration_n of_o all_o blasphemy_n or_o a_o strict_a uniformity_n in_o worship_n and_o religion_n it_o have_v no_o power_n to_o bind_v the_o conscientious_a and_o moral_a practice_n of_o prince_n or_o people_n more_o than_o to_o bind_v their_o conscience_n by_o this_o for_o the_o fraternity_n and_o whole_a church_n be_v tie_v to_o follow_v the_o dogmatic_a determination_n of_o officer_n in_o preach_v or_o in_o sentence_v delinquent_n without_o gainsaying_n what_o the_o officer_n decree_n say_v mr._n h._n it_o be_v to_o all_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o mr._n h._n must_v answer_v we_o church_n 41._o and_o ministry_n be_v bind_v either_o absolute_o or_o conditional_o to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n who_o judge_v popery_n be_v the_o only_a true_a religion_n to_o which_o he_o can_v tender_v protection_n if_o the_o former_a what_o tyranny_n be_v we_o under_o who_o must_v submit_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o prince_n or_o be_v denude_v of_o all_o protection_n and_o expose_v to_o fire_n and_o sword_n if_o the_o latter_a be_v say_v to_o wit_n that_o church_n and_o ministry_n be_v only_o conditional_o to_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n so_o they_o find_v it_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n otherwise_o not_o than_o it_o must_v be_v false_a which_o mr._n h._n say_v that_o the_o prince_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o true_a and_o false_a religion_n to_o say_v they_o must_v either_o obey_v or_o suffer_v say_v that_o christ_n expose_v all_o to_o martyrdom_n mr._n h._n if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o magistrate_n power_n lawful_o to_o forbid_v and_o hinder_v than_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o do_v lawfullye_o for_o 57_o then_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o same_o regard_n both_o lawful_a and_o unlawfulââ¦_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o providence_n shall_v be_v opposite_a one_o to_o another_o but_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n may_v hinder_v any_o of_o another_o nation_n to_o come_v into_o his_o kingdom_n or_o his_o own_o subject_n to_o go_v out_o otherwise_o he_o shall_v want_v power_n to_o oppose_v they_o who_o come_v to_o lay_v waste_v the_o state_n and_o shall_v not_o have_v power_n to_o require_v homage_n of_o his_o own_o people_n ans._n 1._o the_o probation_n of_o the_o proposition_n be_v most_o false_a for_o assembly_n the_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v not_o to_o forbid_v or_o command_v what_o he_o please_v but_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o church_n power_n be_v the_o same_o if_o both_o the_o power_n be_v lawful_a their_o object_n can_v be_v contradictory_n for_o god_n have_v not_o give_v to_o two_o lawful_a power_n any_o lawful_a liberty_n that_o the_o one_o may_v command_v what_o be_v lawful_a and_o the_o other_o what_o be_v unlawful_a for_o than_o he_o shall_v give_v a_o power_n to_o command_v unlawful_a thing_n and_o the_o command_n of_o a_o create_a power_n shall_v make_v it_o lawful_a which_o be_v blasphemous_a this_o argument_n fall_v with_o weight_n upon_o the_o independent_a way_n there_o be_v a_o jezabel_n in_o the_o independent_a church_n of_o thyatira_n and_o another_o jezabel_n in_o the_o church_n of_o pergamus_n each_o church_n say_v our_o brethren_n have_v a_o immediate_a independent_a thing_n church-power_n to_o excommunicate_v thyatira_n use_v their_o power_n and_o excommunicate_v jezabel_n which_o be_v under_o they_o pergamus_n absolve_v and_o defend_v their_o jezabel_n both_o power_n be_v high_a and_o immediate_a and_o countable_a to_o no_o juridical_a power_n on_o earth_n both_o be_v lawful_a power_n then_o must_v it_o follow_v if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o one_o church_n to_o wiâ_n of_o pergamus_n lawful_o to_o forbid_v and_o hinder_v the_o excommunication_n of_o their_o equal_o guilty_a jezabel_n and_o the_o cââ¦ning_n of_o her_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n for_o pergamus_n absolve_v their_o ââ¦l_n and_o commend_v and_o defend_v her_o doctrine_n as_o soââ¦d_v and_o ââ¦g_v than_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o tââ¦_n lawful_o to_o excommunicate_v their_o jezabel_n and_o condemn_v heâ_n plasphemous_a doctrine_n for_o it_o shall_v follow_v that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n must_v be_v in_o the_o same_o regard_n both_o lawful_a and_o sound_n and_o edify_v say_v the_o lawful_a power_n of_o pergamus_n and_o ãâã_d unlawful_a and_o unsound_a and_o destructive_a to_o soul_n say_v the_o lawful_a power_n of_o thyatira_n 2._o the_o probation_n be_v feeble_a and_o wacery_n the_o king_n have_v sufficient_a power_n to_o oppose_v waster_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o to_o require_v homage_n 151._o of_o his_o subject_n suppose_v he_o have_v not_o a_o unlimited_a power_n to_o forbid_v these_o of_o other_o nation_n and_o church_n and_o his_o own_o to_o go_v to_o a_o synod_n within_o or_o without_o his_o nation_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o church_n in_o necessary_a peace_n and_o truth_n if_o the_o church_n must_v seek_v liberty_n and_o counsel_n for_o their_o soul_n good_a and_o edification_n nor_o have_v he_o any_o lawful_a power_n from_o god_n to_o hinder_v his_o own_o subject_n to_o send_v commissioner_n to_o sound_n and_o godly_a synod_n for_o counsel_n and_o synodical_a light_n more_o than_o jeroboam_fw-la can_v lawful_o forbid_v the_o people_n to_o go_v and_o worship_n at_o jerusalem_n upon_o pretence_n that_o they_o may_v be_v persuade_v to_o cleave_v to_o rehoboam_n their_o lawful_a prince_n and_o waste_v his_o new_a kingdom_n nor_o have_v the_o prince_n a_o unlimited_a and_o absolute_a power_n to_o exact_v such_o absolute_a homage_n of_o his_o people_n nor_o such_o a_o power_n over_o their_o move_n from_o place_n for_o so_o the_o church_n independent_a of_o jerusalem_n confi_v man_n of_o ten_o thousand_o if_o not_o more_o shall_v have_v no_o intrinsical_a power_n to_o meet_v for_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o god_n but_o the_o prince_n must_v have_v a_o lawful_a power_n to_o hinder_v their_o meeting_n or_o then_o the_o church_n can_v have_v a_o lawful_a power_n to_o meet_v for_o the_o convening_n of_o ten_o thousand_o if_o abuse_v be_v as_o dangerous_a for_o waste_v of_o a_o kingdom_n in_o its_o own_o way_n as_o the_o convening_n of_o a_o national_a synod_n be_v or_o may_v be_v destructive_a to_o peace_n mr._n h._n to_o appoint_v such_o solemn_a public_a assembly_n be_v a_o act_n mere_o civil_a ergo_fw-la the_o prince_n may_v do_v it_o a_o civil_a act_n belong_v not_o to_o a_o ecclesiastic_a power_n a_o right_a opinion_n rectus_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la sensus_fw-la &_o cultus_fw-la of_o god_n and_o a_o right_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v a_o mere_o civil_a act_n ans._n there_o be_v nothing_o here_o sound_a but_o evil_a and_o worse_o christ_n ââ¦h_v give_v a_o ecclesiastic_a intrinsical_a power_n to_o his_o church_n to_o meet_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o his_o free_a kingdom_n and_o he_o himself_o a_o free_a king_n suppose_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n oppose_v ps._n 2._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o ps._n 110._o 1_o 2_o 3._o
comprobata_fw-la &_o foelicissimo_fw-la epist._n 42._o vol._n l._n 2._o epist._n 10._o cyprian_a cornelio_n epist._n 45._o al._n l._n 4._o ep._n 8._o cyprian_a antoniano_n de_fw-fr cornelio_n &_o novatiano_n epist._n 42._o al._n l._n 4._o ep._n 2._o cornelius_n factus_fw-la est_fw-la episcopus_fw-la à _fw-la plarimis_fw-la collegis_fw-la nostris_fw-la qui_fw-la tunc_fw-la in_o urbe_fw-la roma_fw-it aderant_fw-la qui_fw-la aa_o nos_fw-la literas_fw-la honorificas_fw-la &_o âaudabiles_fw-la &_o testimonio_fw-la suae_fw-la praedicationis_fw-la illustres_fw-la de_fw-la ejus_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la miserunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n ib._n pag._n 119._o quod_fw-la vero_fw-la ad_fw-la novatiani_n personam_fw-la pertinet_fw-la quisquis_fw-la ille_fw-la &_o qualiscunque_fw-la est_fw-la christianus_n non_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o christi_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la si_fw-la episcopus_fw-la tibi_fw-la videtur_fw-la qui_fw-la episcopo_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la à _fw-la sâdeciâ_n coepiscopis_fw-la facto_fw-la adulter_fw-la atque_fw-la extraneus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la fieri_fw-la à _fw-la desertoribus_fw-la per_fw-la ambitum_fw-la nititur_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la sit_fw-la à _fw-la chricto_fw-la una_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la per_fw-la tolum_fw-la mundum_fw-la in_o multa_fw-la concorbra_fw-la aivisa_fw-la item_n episcopatus_fw-la unus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la multorum_fw-la concordi_fw-la numârofitate_fw-la diffusus_fw-la isse_fw-la post_fw-la dei_fw-la traditionem_fw-la post_fw-la connexam_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la conjunctam_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la unitatem_fw-la humanam_fw-la conetur_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la facere_fw-la etc._n etc._n mr._n h._n who_o cry_v out_o against_o i_o because_o i_o teach_v that_o he_o who_o be_v a_o pastor_n of_o one_o church_n be_v a_o pastor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o earth_n may_v cry_v out_o against_o cyprian_a see_v cyprian_n cum_fw-la collegis_fw-la lucio_n papae_fw-la roman_n ep._n 58._o al._n l._n 3._o ep._n 1._o cyprianus_n ad_fw-la stephanum_n de_fw-la martiaâo_fw-la arelatensi_fw-la qui_fw-la novatiano_n consensit_fw-la epist._n 67._o aâ_n l._n 3._o epist._n 13._o in_o all_o which_o this_o be_v clear_a to_o cyprian_a episcopatus_fw-la unus_fw-la quamvisplures_fw-la episcopi_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la which_o throw_v down_o mr._n h._n his_o way_n of_o a_o pastor_n marry_v to_o one_o single_a congregation_n see_v my_o reverend_a brother_n mr._n baily_n vindication_n of_o his_o dissuasive_a ann_n 1655._o especial_o to_o mr._n cotton_n cap._n 4._o sect_n 2._o pag_n 49_o 50._o there_o be_v a_o equality_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o this_o age_n among_o the_o church_n but_o that_o these_o writer_n mean_v not_o single_a congregation_n as_o such_o that_o every_o congregation_n have_v power_n to_o call_v and_o depose_v officer_n i_o do_v not_o concide_v for_o they_o deny_v a_o supremacy_n cabââ¦_n to_o the_o church_n they_o speak_v of_o here_o ãâã_d ãâã_d rome_n constantinople_n but_o these_o as_o mother_n cathedral_n church_n not_o as_o single_a congregation_n claim_v supremacy_n as_o here_o also_o they_o ascribe_v jurisdiction_n to_o associate_v church_n observe_v also_o that_o they_o say_v the_o form_n of_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v almost_o like_a to_o popular_a government_n not_o a_o democracy_n itself_o it_o be_v like_a in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o meeting_n of_o christian_n be_v early_o in_o the_o morning_n at_o the_o time_n of_o receive_v of_o heathen_n to_o baptism_n in_o which_o all_o the_o christian_n as_o well_o as_o the_o one_o baptise_v congregation_n be_v interest_v and_o in_o the_o lord_n day_n act_n of_o discipline_n have_v be_v few_o the_o magdeburgenses_n tell_v we_o from_o justinus_n from_o plinius_n his_o epistle_n to_o trajan_n 8â_n from_o eusebius_n l._n 4._o c._n 23._o as_o dienysius_fw-la corinthus_n in_o that_o place_n say_v they_o read_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n a_o pastor_n exhort_v to_o follow_v what_o be_v read_v the_o whole_a company_n stand_v up_o and_o pray_v and_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o thereby_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o walk_v as_o christian_n not_o to_o kill_v not_o to_o whore_n etc._n etc._n by_o doctor_n and_o ruler_n minister_n be_v ordain_v as_o the_o history_n â3_n of_o the_o apostle_n john_n witness_n and_o cast_v of_o lot_n in_o the_o election_n of_o pastor_n hence_o the_o name_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o clergy_n no_o shadow_n of_o a_o male-church_n here_o tortullian_n show_v that_o in_o church-meeting_n there_o be_v exhortation_n athan._n correction_n and_o divine_a censure_n and_o the_o whole_a elder_n that_o be_v approve_v rule_n in_o the_o meeting_n elder_n faith_n he_o who_o have_v obtain_v that_o honour_n not_o by_o price_n but_o by_o a_o good_a testimony_n now_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o whole_a congregation_n meet_v for_o public_a prayer_n can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o the_o people_n and_o by_o woman_n except_o consent_v for_o tertullian_n say_v de_fw-fr veland_n virg_n non_fw-la permittitur_fw-la muliâri_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la loqui_fw-la sed_fw-la nec_fw-la docere_fw-la nec_fw-la tingere_fw-la eusebius_n l._n 6._o c._n 8._o when_o origen_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n sai_z and_o cyprian_a l._n 2._o epist._n 10._o ad_fw-la coânâl_n all_o the_o near_a bishop_n of_o the_o province_n come_v and_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o prasente_a plebe_fw-la say_v cyprian_n the_o four_o age_n show_v what_o be_v true_a and_o false_a antiquity_n and_o whereas_o there_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n thereof_o a_o sad_a desolation_n through_o the_o persecution_n of_o dioclesian_n so_o also_o there_o come_v a_o change_n in_o a_o glorious_a manner_n most_o sudden_o by_o constantine_n eusebius_n l._n 3._o de_fw-la vita_fw-la constan._n mention_n the_o synod_n of_o nice_a famous_a like_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o pentecost_n act_v 2._o as_o the_o magdeburgenses_n cen_n 4._o c._n 2._o p_o 2._o say_v now_o since_o the_o gospel_n be_v spread_v through_o europe_n africa_n and_o asia_n as_o eusebius_n and_o as_o aâkanafius_n from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n and_o the_o magdeburgenses_n cite_v julius_n firmicus_n maternus_n optat._n milevitanus_fw-la basilius_n teach_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v all_o the_o 72._o world_n over_o where_o the_o sun_n do_v shine_v east_n and_o west_n south_n and_o north._n let_v the_o impartial_a reader_n judge_n if_o it_o have_v a_o shadow_n of_o reason_n that_o the_o church_n who_o send_v commissioner_n to_o this_o famous_a synod_n of_o nice_a be_v only_o congregational_a church_n 1._o the_o magdeburgenses_n set_v down_o numerous_a and_o famous_a 11._o church_n in_o asia_n in_o palestine_n caesârea_n tyrus_n and_o zidon_n in_o gaza_n arabia_n syria_n mesopotamia_n pamphilia_n cilicia_n lydia_n phrygia_n biâhynia_n hâllespontus_n galatia_n paphlagânia_n cappadocia_n persia_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o isle_n in_o europe_n in_o africa_n most_o of_o all_o send_v messenger_n to_o this_o synod_n what_o a_o assembly_n must_v this_o be_v if_o petty_a congregational_a church_n send_v commissioner_n what_o house_n can_v contain_v they_o there_o be_v 2._o a_o catalogue_n of_o bishop_n send_v to_o this_o synod_n before_o this_o call_v overseer_n and_o prapositi_fw-la by_o cyprian_a not_o pastor_n simple_o of_o one_o single_a congregation_n 3._o eusebius_n tell_v of_o provincial_a synod_n and_o so_o of_o provincial_a 2._o church_n which_o must_v have_v send_v commissioner_n there_o be_v a_o synod_n of_o tyrus_n under_o constantint_n a_o synod_n in_o sâlâucia_n see_v the_o magdeburgenses_n 4._o the_o number_n of_o those_o add_v to_o the_o church_n say_v that_o they_o can_v not_o only_o be_v congregational_a church_n theodoret_n say_v that_o constantine_n write_v to_o eusebius_n nicomediensis_n there_o synodi_fw-la be_v a_o great_a multitude_n in_o the_o town_n name_v from_o himself_o add_v to_o the_o church_n so_o that_o they_o behove_v to_o be_v divide_v into_o many_o church_n and_o who_o will_v deny_v this_o to_o be_v a_o presbyterial_a church_n nicephorus_n say_v when_o constantine_n be_v baptize_v more_o than_o twelve_o thousand_o man_n beside_o woman_n and_o child_n be_v baptize_v and_o many_o add_v to_o the_o church_n it_o be_v apparent_a the_o very_a nature_n of_o christian_a religion_n require_v congregational_a and_o synodical_a meeting_n galerius_n maximinus_n have_v give_v toleration_n for_o christian_a religion_n though_o he_o condemn_v the_o religion_n itself_o incontinent_a in_o every_o city_n congragation_n be_v erect_v and_o synod_n or_o presbytery_n keep_v say_v the_o magdeburgeuse_n from_o eusâbius_n donatist_n excuse_v their_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n because_o in_o 14._o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n mali_fw-la maculent_fw-la bonos_fw-es august_n for_o ordination_n and_o election_n of_o minister_n by_o the_o vote_n and_o lay_v on_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n without_o the_o device_n of_o a_o male-congregation_n destitute_a of_o officer_n see_v the_o magdeburgenses_n cent_n 4._o c._n 6._o p._n 244_o 245._o who_o cite_v bosil_n epist._n 58._o ad_fw-la mâlât_fw-la thââdor_n l._n 1._o c._n 19_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o niâânâ_n council_n to_o they_o of_o alexandria_n as_o thââdoret_n cite_v it_o l._n 4._o c._n 10._o the_o history_n of_o ambroââus_n
mediolââ¦_n as_o secrate_v have_v it_o l._n 4._o c._n 30_o etc._n etc._n say_v the_o same_o see_v magdiburg_n vol._n 3._o cant_fw-la 11._o c._n 6._o p._n 140._o see_v vol._n 3._o cent_n 13._o c._n 6._o p._n 260_o 261._o the_o magdeburgenses_n say_v the_o reason_n of_o multiply_v of_o officer_n bishop_n presbyter_n deacon_n lector_n canon_n exorcist_n 307._o etc._n etc._n be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o age_n ecclesiastic_a congregation_n begin_v to_o be_v multiply_v 2._o metropolitan_o archbishop_n bishop_n deacon_n archdeacon_n in_o rome_n in_o constantinople_n as_o sozomen_n l._n 4._o c._n 2._o in_o alexandria_n as_o sozomen_n l._n 7._o c._n 19_o and_o optat._n milâvitanus_n l._n 1._o contr_n parmen_fw-la and_o the_o 14_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o neocaesarea_n ordain_v that_o in_o amplu_fw-fr civitatibus_fw-la in_o large_a city_n there_o shall_v not_o be_v above_o seven_o deacon_n now_o sense_n and_o reason_n will_v say_v there_o can_v be_v no_o ground_n of_o appoint_v such_o a_o number_n of_o officer_n if_o rome_n constantinople_n antioch_n alexandria_n have_v be_v all_o one_o single_a congregation_n meet_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d within_o the_o same_o wall_n and_o not_o a_o large_a presbyterial_a church_n 3._o they_o must_v be_v great_a stranger_n to_o rome_n who_o know_v not_o that_o there_o be_v at_o rome_n many_o church_n and_o meeting-place_n consecrate_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a as_o ruffian_n and_o athanasius_n say_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o care_n for_o the_o church_n of_o the_o suburb_n as_o the_o magdeburgenses_n say_v yet_o all_o be_v call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n see_v the_o magd._a burgense_n vol._n 2._o cent_n 5._o c._n 6._o p._n 357_o 358._o of_o the_o church_n mixture_n of_o wheat_n and_o chaff_n see_v aâgustins_n aâeam_fw-la and_o prosper_n who_o say_v evil_a man_n if_o they_o infect_v not_o must_v be_v tolerate_v and_o the_o good_a not_o separate_v from_o because_o of_o the_o evil_n know_v to_o be_v such_o otherwise_o donatus_n and_o his_o never_o teach_v man_n to_o separate_v from_o latent_fw-la hypocrite_n which_o be_v seem_v and_o visible_a saint_n as_o also_o they_o must_v be_v tolerate_v that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v augustine_n assert_v a_o catholic_a integral_n visible_a church_n in_o ps._n 56._o corpus_fw-la autem_fw-la ejus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ista_fw-la aââ_n illa_fw-la ecclâsâa_fw-la sed_fw-la tâtâ_n orbe_fw-la diffusa_fw-la for_o the_o whole_a church_n say_v he_o be_v make_v up_o of_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v christ_n for_o their_o head_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o pastor_n 378._o by_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o hand_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n seâ_n the_o magdeburgenses_n so_o be_v chrysostoâââ_n ordain_o consânsu_fw-la cleri_fw-la &_o populi_fw-la constantinopolitanis_n as_o socrates_n l._n 6._o c._n 2._o and_o sozomen_n l._n 8._o c._n 2._o witness_n so_o say_v augustine_n that_o not_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n only_o and_o of_o numidia_n sed_fw-la propinquiores_fw-la episcopi_fw-la the_o near_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n lay_v on_o hand_n see_v the_o magdeburg_n for_o association_n of_o church_n see_v the_o magdeb._n vol._n 2._o cont_n 5._o c._n 7._o p._n 417_o 418._o 422_o 493._o the_o magdeburgenses_n tell_v we_o of_o famous_a and_o celebrious_a church_n 66._o in_o the_o six_o age_n in_o asiââ_n africa_n and_o europe_n in_o renown_a cââies_n which_o have_v eminent_a bishop_n in_o they_o and_o new_a church_n builâ_n especial_o justiman_n the_o emperor_n build_v in_o constantinople_n in_o thraâiâ_n the_o noble_a church_n of_o sophia_n incomparable_a for_o magnificence_n to_o any_o inthe_a world_n say_v eâagrâus_n and_o nicephorus_n and_o where_o there_o be_v many_o place_n of_o meeting_n for_o worship_n in_o great_a city_n constantinopie_n autiâch_n the_o church_n of_o that_o city_n must_v be_v presbyterial_n not_o congregational_a to_o sound_a antiquity_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o meet_v congregational_o the_o multitude_n of_o church_n dedicate_v to_o saint_n do_v evince_v magdeb._n cent_n 6._o c._n 6_o p._n 181._o quod_fw-la saepe_fw-la in_o publicis_fw-la locis_fw-la romae_fw-la christiani_n ad_fw-la sacra_fw-la peragenda_fw-la convenerint_fw-la âestantur_fw-la innuâera_fw-la âlla_fw-la delubra_fw-la ãâã_d sabellico_n expressa_fw-la ut_fw-la templum_fw-la cosinae_fw-la &_o damiani_n saturnii_n vaticanum_n batjonae_fw-la sopâiae_fw-la euphemiae_fw-la marcelli_n pancratii_fw-la mentionâââ_n facit_fw-fr gregorius_n papa_n templorum_fw-la petri_n &_o pââli_fw-la romae_fw-la agathae_n caesaâii_fw-la martyris_fw-la &_o julâi_n mariae_fw-la agnetis_fw-gr &_o foelicitatis_fw-la stephani_fw-la andreae_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v true_a many_o of_o these_o church_n say_v the_o magdeburgââses_n be_v build_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n as_o for_o superââ¦_n etc._n yet_o no_o sober_a man_n can_v say_v the_o christianâ_n in_o roââ_n can_v mâââ_n in_o one_o congregation_n but_o that_o many_o church_n be_v needful_a see_v for_o association_n of_o church_n the_o magdeburgââs_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v make_v up_o of_o good_a and_o evil_n see_v the_o magdeburg_n who_o âiâe_v hayme_v and_o other_o though_o in_o this_o and_o former_a age_n gross_a corruption_n daily_o grow_v so_o the_o magdeburgââses_n vol._n 3._o cent_n 10._o cite_v thophylact_v for_o the_o same_o and_o vol._n 3._o cânt_fw-la 12._o c._n 7._o p._n 457_o 458._o and_o cent_n 13._o c._n 4._o p._n 185._o the_o magdeburgenses_n ascribe_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n matth._n 182._o 16._o to_o peter_n represent_v pastor_n and_o for_o this_o they_o cite_v theophylactus_n and_o radulphus_fw-la ausbertus_n ausââ¦s_o give_v so_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v to_o the_o priest_n eâââ_n in_o evang._n as_o excommunication_n shouââ_n ãâã_d by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n the_o priest_n for_o when_o the_o priest_n excommunicate_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n act_v in_o he_o see_v the_o magdeb._n cent_n 11._o ausel_n in_o mat._n 18._o quârââ_n reââseritis_fw-la nec_fw-la ãâã_d apostolis_n sed_fw-la âânibus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la prââ¦_n haec_fw-la potest_fw-la as_o concesââ_n est_fw-la see_v the_o magdeburgânses_n cite_v the_o schoolman_n thomas_n aquââââ_n bââ¦tura_n albertus_n to_o this_o purpose_n also_o for_o the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o dark_a midnight_n of_o popery_n petr._n waldensis_n in_o france_n ann_n 1160._o teach_v the_o same_o with_o we_o and_o yet_o mr._n hooker_n refuse_v these_o mark_n tell_v we_o truth_n be_v the_o daughter_n of_o time_n and_o excellent_o do_v the_o twelf_v age_n agree_v with_o the_o first_o age._n of_o pet._n waldensis_n be_v the_o waldenses_n the_o sincere_a part_n of_o the_o church_n give_v testimony_n against_o the_o daily_a grow_a corruption_n of_o rome_n the_o magdeburgenses_n in_o their_o preface_n to_o the_o three_o volume_n of_o their_o history_n cent._n 10._o sunt_fw-la autem_fw-la notâ_n ãâã_d soâ_n propââââ_n ãâã_d gaâmanae_fw-la perseverantia_fw-la ecclisiae_fw-la christi_fw-la verbi_fw-la dei_fw-la predicate_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d sacramentoruâ_n usus_a iustitutââ_n à _fw-la christo_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d study_v conjunctus_fw-la these_o man_n know_v true_a antiquity_n well_o hââ¦_n wâlif_n jerome_n of_o prague_n and_o the_o renown_a martyr_n of_o christ_n seal_v with_o their_o blood_n the_o same_o truth_n as_o antiquity_n witness_n of_o they_o mr._n ãâã_d call_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o common_a adjunct_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o appeal_v to_o antiquity_n though_o the_o scripture_n be_v above_o all_o for_o a_o warrant_n of_o their_o church_n 207._o tertullian_n offend_v at_o such_o who_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v ignorant_a of_o any_o thing_n to_o who_o the_o lord_n give_v the_o key_n to_o open_a and_o ãâã_d heaven_n which_o secret_n the_o people_n know_v not_o and_o the_o apostle_n dâ_n that_o in_o open_v and_o sâutting_v heaven_n which_o only_o god_n can_v 618._o ãâã_d 482._o christ_n gaââ_n the_o kââ¦_n &_o per_fw-la âum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la to_o peter_n and_o by_o he_o to_o the_o chârch_n epiphâniââ_n ãâã_d assââââ_n ãâã_d universal_a integral_a church_n though_o the_o tongue_n be_v divers_a and_o god_n keep_v careful_o his_o church_n spread_v through_o all_o the_o world_n as_o dwell_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o house_n ãâã_d ãâã_d it_o be_v not_o in_o pârygia_n cilicia_n and_o paâphylia_n only_o but_o all_o the_o world_n over_o and_o he_o cite_v that_o of_o christ_n this_o can_v be_v a_o congregation_n dei_fw-la lactantius_n be_v for_o our_o note_n of_o the_o church_n not_o for_o mr._n h._n the_o phâyges_n novatiani_n valentiniani_n marcionitae_n authae_fw-la piani_fw-la aut_fw-la aâriani_n leave_v off_o to_o be_v christian_n that_o then_o be_v the_o only_a catholic_a church_n which_o retain_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n eusebius_n pamphil._n facit_fw-la the_o church_n be_v diffuse_v all_o the_o world_n over_o east_n and_o west_n south_n and_o north._n he_o expound_v matth._n 16._o the_o church_n upon_o the_o rock_n to_o be_v
the_o church_n from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o weââ_n which_o fill_v all_o the_o world_n de_fw-fr prop._n evangil_n l._n 1._o c._n 3._o pag._n 8._o then_o it_o be_v not_o one_o single_a congregation_n gregorius_n nuzianzânus_n orat._n â8_o de_fw-fr ãâã_d partis_fw-la the_o people_n give_v their_o consent_n only_o to_o ordain_v the_o bishop_n and_o this_o election_n of_o bishop_n ibid._n page_n 480._o iâ_n to_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o clean_a part_n of_o the_o people_n to_o sacred_a minister_n and_o to_o our_o nazarite_n and_o not_o to_o the_o foolish_a and_o rash_a common_a people_n tum_fw-la eximia_fw-la ac_fw-la purissimae_fw-la pâputi_fw-la parti_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la &_o ãâã_d ministris_fw-la &_o nostris_fw-la nazarââ_n quibus_fw-la vil_fw-mi solâ_n vel_fw-la potâssimum_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ill_n commitis_n opârtebat_fw-la sic_fw-la enim_fw-la nunââ¦_n ecclesia_fw-la ãâã_d esseâ_n ac_fw-la non_fw-la ãâã_d qui_fw-la opibus_fw-la &_o potentia_fw-la ãâã_d magistratee_n notat_fw-la aââ_n stultae_fw-la ac_fw-la teâerariae_fw-la plebi_fw-la it_o be_v clear_a that_o nazianzen_n give_v a_o presidency_n to_o teacher_n over_o the_o church_n when_o honorantibus_fw-la he_o forbid_v that_o young_a man_n before_o they_o have_v hair_n on_o their_o face_n be_v ãâã_d to_o reach_v old_a man_n and_o they_o object_v say_v he_o daniel_n but_o that_o which_o rare_o fall_v out_o be_v no_o law_n to_o the_o church_n one_o swallow_n make_v not_o the_o spring_n but_o election_n here_o by_o nazianzen_n be_v put_v for_o the_o whole_a call_n of_o man_n to_o the_o ministry_n the_o church_n of_o byzanââ¦_n ãâã_d commend_v for_o discipline_n by_o nazianzen_n see_v in_o the_o church_n a_o council_n of_o prebyter_n decore_v with_o age_n and_o wisdom_n a_o high_a senate_n which_o they_o all_o honour_a nor_o do_v he_o in_o a_o grave_a synod_n decââ¦_n the_o praise_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o a_o single_a congregation_n gubernatur_fw-la nazianzen_n have_v a_o savoury_a discourse_n of_o the_o order_n and_o gift_n and_o variety_n of_o member_n in_o christ_n body_n and_o cite_v 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o not_o of_o a_o single_a congregation_n for_o 1._o he_o say_v we_o be_v all_o one_o body_n in_o christ_n 2._o he_o say_v there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n apostles_n prophet_n etc._n etc._n the_o eye_n walk_v not_o but_o be_v the_o captain_n nor_o do_v the_o foot_n fee_n but_o walk_v and_o move_v from_o place_n to_o place_n nor_o do_v the_o tongue_n receive_v sound_n that_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o hear_n nor_o do_v the_o âongue_z speak_v but_o the_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n and_o 3._o he_o speak_v of_o a_o number_n of_o prophet_n of_o which_o two_n or_o three_o pprophecy_n by_o course_n and_o one_o interpret_v basilius_n magnus_fw-la nicopolitanis_fw-la presbyteris_fw-la epist._n 10._o tom._n ult_n ãâã_d ex_fw-la albo_fw-la vestââ_n defecis_fw-la &_o ãâã_d unus_fw-la &_o alter_fw-la conseculus_fw-la est_fw-la ãâã_d adhuâ_n corpus_fw-la vestrum_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la die_fw-la gratiam_fw-la ãâã_d basil._n ciââbus_fw-la nicopolitanis_fw-la disp_n epist._n 13._o tom._n ult_n dispensationes_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la fiunt_fw-la quidem_fw-la per_fw-la ãâã_d quibus_fw-la est_fw-la illorum_fw-la cura_fw-la conoredita_fw-la verum_fw-la à _fw-la plobe_n confirâantur_fw-la basil._n epist._n 18._o vol._n ult_n presbyteris_fw-la aâtiochiae_fw-la solicitudinem_fw-la illam_fw-la quam_fw-la ãâã_d ecclistis_n dââ¦_n ex_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d qui_fw-la vobis_fw-la tâtius_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d charitateâ_n &_o affectum_fw-la exponâi_fw-la at_o the_o first_o read_v a_o presbyterial_a body_n over_o divers_a congregation_n appear_v theophylact._n 19_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v the_o church_n and_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o if_o we_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n confess_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o we_o that_o be_v sin_n 2._o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v he_o expound_v to_o be_v the_o power_n of_o remit_v of_o sin_n which_o peter_n have_v and_o such_o as_o have_v the_o office_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o a_o overseeâ_n 1._o theoph._n if_o thy_o brother_n offend_v thou_o thy_o brother_n only_o of_o the_o same_o congregation_n whereof_o thou_o act_v a_o member_n say_v mr._n hââker_n nay_o say_v theophylact_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 20._o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v see_v say_v he_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o priest_n for_o it_o god_n who_o forgive_v sin_n but_o they_o be_v honour_v as_o god_n 5._o on_o these_o word_n we_o judge_v those_o thââ_n be_v within_o be_v not_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d christian_n judge_v by_o we_o but_o a_o more_o terrible_a judge_n shall_v judge_v those_o that_o be_v withââ_n p._n isidorus_n hispalens_n episcopus_fw-la the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n quasi_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d for_o it_o be_v not_o limit_v to_o some_o country_n as_o the_o conventiole_n of_o heretic_n but_o spread_v all_o the_o world_n over_o the_o conââ¦tions_n of_o heretic_n be_v only_o in_o ordinary_a not_o catholic_a but_o very_o rare_o see_v he_o p_o elsewhere_o what_o say_v these_o call_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n deserve_v i_o dispute_v not_o they_o ãâã_d allow_v no_o bishop_n to_o he_o ordain_v without_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n the_o 310._o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n that_o be_v from_o all_o church_n not_o congregation_n that_o be_v impossible_a be_v at_o the_o first_o nicâns_n council_n 318._o in_o number_n subscribe_v 4._o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v ordain_v by_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n if_o that_o be_v hear_v by_o three_o the_o rest_n consent_v by_o their_o letter_n 757._o more_o than_o two_o hundred_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n condemn_v nestorius_n among_o the_o article_n of_o joh._n wiclif_n this_o be_v the_o seven_o if_o a_o man_n be_v due_o contrite_a for_o sin_n any_o far_a confession_n be_v needless_a superflua_fw-la so_o our_o brethren_n and_o mr._n h._n his_o judicial_a confession_n before_o the_o church_n be_v as_o superfluous_a and_o scriptureless_a before_o they_o be_v admit_v and_o engage_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n on_o the_o other_o extremity_n they_o fail_v who_o condemn_v wiclif_n his_o eleven_o article_n that_o a_o minister_n ought_v not_o to_o excommunicate_v except_o he_o know_v first_o the_o man_n deo_fw-la to_o be_v excommunicate_a of_o god_n and_o joh._n hush_o be_v unjust_o condemn_v for_o descend_v wiclif_n in_o these_o and_o the_o 1600._o like_a nor_o be_v it_o a_o damnable_a error_n that_o joh._n hush_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o universal_a holy_a church_n as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o certain_a number_n of_o man_n predestinate_a to_o glory_n mr._n hââker_n his_o new_a catholic_a abstract_a congregation_n divide_v in_o so_o many_o thousand_o little_a catholic_a church_n be_v too_o near_o to_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o john_n hush_o etc._n before_o his_o judge_n and_o accuser_n often_o profess_v that_o christ_n limit_v not_o jurisdiction_n and_o rule_v of_o the_o church_n militant_a to_o peter_n only_o but_o give_v it_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o true_a pastor_n but_o never_o to_o mr._n h._n his_o male_a church_n hush_o 2._o theodores_o judge_v the_o church_n build_v upon_o the_o rock_n mat._n 16._o not_o to_o be_v a_o single_a visible_a congregation_n with_o mr._n h._n which_o certain_o perish_v but_o the_o company_n of_o choose_a believer_n build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n whoâe_v corner_n stone_n be_v christ._n and_o though_o this_o be_v one_o catholic_a church_n divide_v all_o the_o world_n over_o habet_fw-la domos_fw-la à se_fw-la inuicem_fw-la divisas_fw-la and_o be_v 747._o one_o body_n of_o which_o christ_n be_v head_n one_o company_n one_o city_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o one_o single_a congregation_n and_o credidetunt_fw-la 1_o cor._n 12._o you_o be_v all_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o you_o only_o but_o all_o they_o who_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n believe_v theodoret_n on_o 1_o tim._n 5._o show_n that_o there_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d praefectura_fw-la a_o power_n of_o receive_v witness_n against_o elder_n and_o of_o examine_v they_o before_o they_o be_v ordain_v this_o sunt_fw-la ambrose_n show_v make_v jew_n and_o gentile_n one_o body_n have_v one_o baptism_n and_o the_o apostle_n caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la the_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o etc._n the_o doctor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n dissemble_v or_o careless_o censure_v the_o incest_n as_o eli_n the_o priest_n do_v his_o son_n then_o there_o be_v a_o presbytery_n to_o cast_v he_o out_o see_v if_o 291_o ambrose_n give_v the_o key_n to_o peter_n yes_o to_o peter_n and_o paul_n only_o and_o to_o the_o ruler_n only_o he_o say_v inter_fw-la ipsos_fw-la petrum_fw-la &_o paulum_fw-la quis_fw-la ãâã_d proponatur_fw-la incertum_fw-la the_o same_o say_v 2._o ephraim_n syrus_n of_o these_o two_o 110._o gregorius_n nyssenus_n episcop_n frater_fw-la basilii_fw-la magni_fw-la all_o we_o who_o be_v join_v to_o one_o body_n
the_o ordinance_n and_o if_o the_o gospel_n be_v there_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o profess_v it_o as_o he_o be_v to_o confess_v and_o not_o deny_v christ_n before_o man_n 2._o if_o any_o of_o israel_n goodwell_n in_o another_o city_n or_o town_n where_o another_o priest_n shall_v teach_v be_v it_o in_o his_o choice_n to_o be_v teach_v by_o that_o priest_n or_o not_o or_o be_v there_o no_o freedom_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o there_o be_v freedom_n now_o prove_v this_o difference_n from_o the_o word_n 4._o the_o donââ¦_n in_o that_o contr_n pââ¦_n l._n 11._o c._n 14._o a_o wicked_a minister_n can_v no_o more_o convert_v quam_fw-la vivificare_fw-la quenquam_fw-la mortuus_fw-la potest_fw-la than_o a_o dead_a man_n can_v give_v life_n so_o our_o brethren_n they_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v edify_a matter_n who_o shall_v destroy_v the_o church_n 5._o august_n lib._n retract_v 2._o c._n 18._o ubicunqus_fw-la autem_fw-la in_o ãâã_d libris_fw-la commemoravi_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la habentem_fw-la maculam_fw-la aââ¦_n rugam_fw-la non_fw-la sic_fw-la accipiendum_fw-la quasi_fw-la jam_fw-la sââ_n sed_fw-la quâ_n praeparatur_fw-la ut_fw-la sis_fw-la augustine_n own_v no_o church_n that_o in_o the_o esteem_n of_o saint_n be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n 6._o augustine_n condââ¦_n the_o donatist_n aug._n contr_n litter_n petil._n episc._n donatist_n l._n 1._o ãâã_d 1._o they_o be_v break_v off_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n ab_fw-la or_o bis_fw-la ãâã_d sancta_fw-la communiono_fw-la that_o be_v sure_a no_o congregation_n for_o they_o set_v up_o congregation_n of_o their_o own_o but_o they_o say_v with_o themselves_o only_a be_v the_o true_a church_n 7._o petilianus_n say_v what_o have_v righteousness_n to_o do_v with_o unrighteousness_n augustine_n say_v it_o be_v not_o righteousness_n take_v 6._o part_n with_o unrighteousness_n si_fw-mi judas_n &_o petruâ_n paritor_n sacramenta_fw-la communiââ¦_n 8._o petilianus_n apply_v the_o scripture_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o real_a nutriantur_fw-la saint_n as_o psal._n 1_o bless_a be_v the_o man_n and_o psal._n 23._o the_o lord_n be_v my_o shepherd_n he_o lead_v i_o etc._n etc._n to_o their_o only_a member_n of_o separate_a church_n so_o do_v our_o brethreu_n mr._n cotton_n mr._n hooker_n so_o mr._n robinson_n augustine_n answer_v these_o word_n belong_v not_o to_o baptize_v simon_n magus_n they_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o tare_n of_o the_o chaff_n but_o of_o the_o wheat_n 9_o petilian_n say_v the_o catholic_n admit_v all_o to_o be_v just_a and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n qui_fw-fr verba_fw-la legis_fw-la noverunt_fw-la that_o know_v word_n of_o scripture_n and_o satan_n know_v scripture_n the_o same_o mr._n h._n object_n to_o we_o see_v aug._n 49._o 10._o the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o the_o donatist_n be_v where_o be_v this_o body_n visible_a for_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o think_v the_o question_n be_v touch_v the_o invisible_a church_n where_o it_o be_v where_o the_o church_n be_v what_o then_o shall_v we_o do_v shall_v we_o seek_v it_o in_o our_o word_n or_o in_o the_o word_n of_o her_o head_n the_o lord_n jesus_n see_v 2._o august_n it_o be_v know_v augustine_n acknowledge_v in_o all_o these_o write_n a_o catholic_n church_n from_o sea_n to_o sea_n to_o which_o man_n shall_v join_v themselves_o as_o to_o the_o visible_a society_n of_o christ._n 11._o our_o brethren_n will_v have_v none_o to_o be_v baptize_v except_o they_o be_v baptize_v into_o a_o particular_a congregation_n and_o acceptetur_fw-la aug._n condemn_v the_o donatist_n who_o will_v have_v it_o no_o baptism_n which_o be_v administer_v without_o the_o church_n 12._o our_o brethren_n will_v have_v so_o many_o condition_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n 1._o that_o the_o matter_n be_v fit_a visible_a saint_n 2._o that_o the_o form_n be_v a_o church_n covenant_n 3._o that_o they_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n etc._n etc._n augustine_n abrahae_fw-la follow_v the_o word_n say_v all_o of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n in_o covenant_n be_v the_o visible_a church_n 13._o this_o or_o that_o congregation_n or_o believer_n may_v fall_v off_o the_o rock_n defecit_fw-la ex_fw-la omnibus_fw-la gentibus_fw-la christiana_n religio_fw-la excepta_fw-la parte_fw-la donati_n except_o some_o follow_a donatus_n and_o some_o in_o america_n aut_fw-la alibi_fw-la see_v aug._n 9_o 14._o they_o who_o say_v 10._o augustine_n teach_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v to_o take_v its_o beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v not_o that_o visible_a city_n but_o by_o a_o figure_n be_v the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n may_v say_v that_o also_o be_v speak_v by_o a_o figure_n it_o behove_v christ_n to_o die_v and_o to_o rise_v the_o three_o day_n then_o augustine_n think_v the_o church_n of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n all_o the_o world_n over_o to_o be_v one_o visible_a city_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o our_o brethren_n catholic_n as_o august_n 213._o teach_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o cyprian_a that_o the_o tare_n be_v in_o the_o church_n not_o lurk_v but_o see_v to_o which_o the_o donatist_n dare_v answer_v nothing_o they_o be_v so_o move_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o cyprian_a cyprian_n 220._o clear_o say_v the_o lord_n give_v first_o to_o peter_n upon_o who_o he_o build_v his_o church_n nor_o do_v he_o then_o build_v the_o church_n upon_o the_o confess_v church_n power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v as_o also_o he_o say_v after_o the_o resurrection_n to_o the_o apostle_n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o to_o cyprian_a then_o one_o place_n in_o joh._n 20._o expound_v matth_n 16._o now_o cyprian_n never_o think_v that_o christ_n send_v the_o people_n as_o the_o father_n send_v he_o and_o cyprian_a 240._o soli_fw-la petro_n dixit_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la ligaverâs_fw-la quando_fw-la in_o solos_fw-la apostolos_fw-la insuâââvit_fw-la christus_fw-la dicens_fw-la accipite_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la si_fw-la eujus_fw-la remiseritis_fw-la pâocata_fw-la 246._o cyprian_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o and_o baptism_n one_o what_o talk_v they_o then_o of_o multiply_v visible_a congregation_n and_o multiply_v baptism_n and_o see_v 297._o cyprian_a et_fw-la quamvis_fw-la apostolis_n omnibus_fw-la post_fw-la resurrectionem_fw-la dicat_fw-la sicut_fw-la âifit_n i_o pater_fw-la etc._n etc._n tamen_fw-la ut_fw-la unitatem_fw-la manifestaret_fw-la unam_fw-la cathedram_fw-la petri_n constituit_fw-la etc._n etc._n 62._o cyprian_n expound_v matth._n 16._o 18._o and_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o thou_o âât_v peter_n etc._n etc._n the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o bishop_n and_o every_o act_n of_o the_o church_n by_o these_o overseer_n be_v guide_v and_o therefore_o the_o lapsi_fw-la shall_v not_o have_v peace_n but_o by_o satisfy_a church-discipline_n finis_fw-la isa._n 15._o 6_o 7._o the_o adequate_a subject_n of_o church_n discipline_n be_v not_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o m._n h._n take_v ãâã_d it_o a_o church_n without_o officer_n may_v not_o do_v what_o a_o civil_a corporation_n without_o ruler_n may_v do_v pag._n 13_o 14._o what_o influence_n habitation_n have_v to_o make_v church-member_n survey_v p._n 1._o c._n 2._o pag._n 14_o 15._o m._n h._n his_o visible_a saint_n be_v not_o the_o only_a fit_a matter_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n nor_o be_v it_o prove_v but_o by_o conjecture_n pag._n 15._o m._n h._n 1._o arg._n christ_n be_v two_o way_n a_o head_n by_o m._n h._n his_o way_n or_o where_o christ_n be_v in_o scripture_n call_v the_o head_n of_o magus_n m._n r._n desire_v to_o know_v man_n be_v the_o confederate_a people_n of_o god_n visible_o without_o any_o man_n pass_v his_o judgement_n thereupon_o m._n h._n his_o second_o arg._n part_n 1._o pag._n 16_o 17._o m._n h._n 2._o arg._n that_o real_a saint_n only_o be_v member_n and_o subject_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n the_o place_n isai._n 33._o 22._o do_v not_o prove_v that_o m._n h._n his_o visible_a saint_n be_v the_o only_a matter_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n marlorat_n comment_n in_o isai._n c._n 3â_n 20._o tentorium_fw-la firmum_fw-la adeo_fw-la ut_fw-la ne_fw-la porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la adversus_fw-la eam_fw-la praevaleant_fw-la matth._n 16._o 18._o joan._n piscator_fw-la v_o 20._o adhuc_fw-la alloquitur_fw-la pios_fw-la judaeos_fw-la calvin_n in_o locum_fw-la quin_fw-la dominus_fw-la in_o medio_fw-la ejus_fw-la ideo_fw-la non_fw-la commovetur_fw-la muscul._n 16._o oves_fw-la meas_fw-la nemo_fw-la rapiet_fw-la è_fw-la manu_fw-la mea_fw-la calv._n in_o vers_fw-la 22._o notandum_fw-la hic_fw-la quae_fw-la vera_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la scil_n deum_fw-la logislatorem_fw-la &_o regem_fw-la agnoscit_fw-la bullinger_n in_o locum_fw-la ita_fw-la instruct_v à _fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la ut_fw-la malis_fw-la nec_fw-la cedat_fw-la nec_fw-la frangatur_fw-la sed_fw-la semper_fw-la permaneat_fw-la firma_fw-la calvin_n vers_fw-la 24._o notatâ_fw-la dignum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la soli_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cives_fw-la hoc_fw-la privilegio_fw-la remissionis_fw-la ornantur_fw-la gualther_n in_o loc_n ad_fw-la solam_fw-la ergo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o âujus_fw-la cives_fw-la illa_fw-la
pertinent_a lutherus_n in_o loc_n quia_fw-la habet_fw-la pius_fw-la populus_fw-la propitium_fw-la deum_fw-la condonabuntur_fw-la ejus_fw-la peccata_fw-la so_o the_o donatist_n augustin_n contra_fw-la epist._n parme._n l._n 11._o c._n 3._o manua_fw-la nim_fw-mi vestrae_fw-la sanguine_fw-la coinquinatae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ââ¦mo_fw-la loquor_fw-la juââa_fw-la &c_n &c_n respo_n austin_n quos_fw-la isto_fw-la loco_fw-la scriptura_fw-la describit_fw-la ubicunque_fw-la fuorint_fw-la inter_fw-la bonos_fw-es non_fw-la obsunt_fw-la bonâ_n sic_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la obest_fw-la palca_fw-la frumentis_fw-la etc._n etc._n sec_n augustin_n de_fw-fr unitat_fw-la eccles._n m._n h._n his_o contradiction_n of_o visible_a saint_n membere_v and_o non-visible_a saint_n member_n be_v naught_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d l._n 1._o aristot._n de_fw-fr reprehend_v sophist_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o church_n pass_v no_o judgement_n upon_o magus_n when_o he_o be_v a_o member_n admit_v and_o baptize_v that_o either_o he_o be_v a_o real_a choose_v or_o a_o real_a conuââ¦_n ãâã_d real_a non-chosen_a or_o a_o real_a non_fw-la convert_v but_o their_o judgement_n abstract_v from_o both_o the_o same_o in_o a_o other_o dress_n the_o donatists_n object_n to_o augustin_n contra_fw-la epist._n parmenian_n l._n c._n 2._o 9_o objiciunt_fw-la ut_fw-la quid_fw-la exponis_fw-la justificationes_fw-la meas_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o naughty_a consequence_n hypocrite_n be_v sinful_o unfit_a to_o be_v member_n without_o the_o church_n knowledge_n ergo_fw-la the_o church_n sin_n in_o admit_v of_o they_o m._n h._n must_v make_v all_o israel_n savoury_a professor_n and_o real_a convert_n in_o the_o judgement_n one_o of_o another_o before_o ever_o the_o lord_n of_o free_a grace_n call_v they_o to_o be_v his_o people_n m._n can_v necessity_n of_o separate_a sect._n 3._o 176_o 177._o a_o 1642._o object_v the_o same_o and_o m._n h._n do_v but_o a_o 1648._o repeat_v the_o same_o and_o m._n ball_n answer_v it_o pag._n 30._o 71._o the_o wicked_a be_v forbid_v to_o meddle_v with_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n do_v david_n say_v they_o be_v fobidden_v only_o at_o their_o first_o admission_n to_o be_v member_n to_o bâeak_v the_o three_o commandment_n in_o take_v the_o covenant_n in_o their_o mouth_n while_n as_o they_o be_v wicked_a and_o if_o so_o jezabel_n continue_v a_o member_n be_v not_o forbid_v to_o meddle_v wâth_o the_o covenant_n yea_o the_o scandalous_a member_n which_o as_o m._n h._n must_v be_v tolerate_v for_o a_o time_n aâe_o fit_a member_n and_o may_v take_v the_o covenant_n in_o their_o mouth_n how_o ehe_fw-ge preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o how_o not_o there_o may_v be_v a_o church_n and_o church-member_n before_o there_o be_v any_o seal_n a_o hear_n and_o church-profession_n may_v be_v in_o person_n and_o society_n before_o they_o be_v baptize_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v a_o society_n daily_o more_o and_o more_o inchurch_v our_o brethren_n and_o the_o sociâiâââ_n give_v we_o a_o very_a uncertain_a way_n of_o know_v the_o church_n remonst_z in_o apolog_n c._n 22_o doctrinae_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la est_fw-la anterius_fw-la quid_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la quid_fw-la absurdius_fw-la erge_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la aliquando_fw-la prius_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la eâdem_fw-la posterius_fw-la erit_fw-la nota_fw-la enim_fw-la notate_fw-la svo_fw-la posterior_n est_fw-la idciââ¦Ã²_fw-la quiâ_n p_o aedicatiâ_n est_fw-fr aliquande_fw-fr instrumeââ¦um_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la colligââ¦_n non_fw-la poââ¦sse_fw-la cert_n atque_fw-la infell_n thiââs_fw-la nota_fw-la eââ¦_n ollââ¦_n vide_fw-la fol_n 241._o 2â2_n socinianus_n voshelius_fw-la de_fw-la vera_fw-la religione_fw-la lib._n 6._o c._n 16._o primò_fw-la igitur_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la consequendam_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la necessarium_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la ubi_fw-la christâ_n ecclesia_fw-la sit_fw-la perquirere_fw-la minimè_fw-la consequens_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la quia_fw-la christus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la adire_fw-la &_o audire_fw-la jubet_fw-la âdeirco_fw-mi ubi_fw-la existat_fw-la ea_fw-la inquirendum_fw-la nobis_fw-la omnino_fw-la sitz_fw-fr loquor_fw-la iis_fw-la qui_fw-la jam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la agnoverunt_fw-la ait_fw-fr ibidem_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la aeternam_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la requiri_fw-la quam_fw-la sidem_fw-la peâ_n sidem_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la per_fw-la christum_fw-la collatam_fw-la cujus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la atque_fw-la animaest_n obedientia_fw-la how_o excommunicate_v person_n be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n how_o not_o the_o place_n 2_o thess._n 3._o 14._o mistake_v by_o m._n r._n and_o our_o brethren_n how_o preach_v many_o year_n to_o infidel_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n how_o not_o what_o sort_n of_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v of_o a_o lecturer_n that_o preach_v constant_o to_o many_o of_o diverse_a congregation_n see_v for_o these_o lecturer_n in_o prelatical_a time_n m._n can_v his_o il-grounded_n challenge_v of_o lecturer_n necess_n of_o separate_a pag._n 49._o 50._o and_o learned_a m._n bull_n answer_n to_o m._n can_n c._n 5._o sect._n 1._o pag._n 84_o 85_o 86._o that_o settle_a preach_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n though_o scandalous_a man_n as_o adulterer_n aught_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o yet_o m._n h._n loose_o infer_v ergo_fw-la they_o have_v never_o right_a to_o be_v admit_v member_n m_o r_o yield_v not_o the_o cause_n because_o he_o give_v two_o answer_n to_o the_o same_o argument_n one_o to_o the_o rigid_a separatist_n another_o to_o our_o brethren_n false_a matter_n make_v a_o church_n to_o be_v no_o church_n by_o our_o brethren_n way_n m._n can._n necess_n of_o separ_fw-la sect._n 3._o pag._n 176._o 177._o that_o which_o destroy_v a_o church_n and_o make_v it_o either_o become_v a_o false_a church_n or_o no_o church_n at_o all_o can_v be_v a_o true_a church_n nor_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o new_a england_n chap._n 3._o sect_n 3._o pag._n 56_o 17_o 58._o print_a london_n ann_n 1645._o m._n h._n his_o conjecture_n of_o visible_a saint_n the_o argument_n such_o as_o be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n corinth_n such_o shall_v the_o member_n of_o our_o church_n visible_a be_v scan_v and_o foundfaulty_a m_o h_n contradict_v the_o book_n of_o discipline_n of_o new_a england_n hooker_n survey_v par_fw-fr 1._o c._n 2._o the_o place_n cite_v by_o our_o brethren_n for_o visible_a membership_n prove_v that_o they_o be_v read_v convert_n and_o predestinate_a to_o glory_v who_o be_v right_a member_n visible_a christ_n deal_v not_o with_o judas_n in_o a_o churchway_n it_o be_v a_o dream_n void_a of_o the_o word_n this_o visible_a saintship_n destrove_v the_o faith_n hope_n joy_n thanksgiving_n of_o saint_n chap._n 3._o sect._n 3._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o the_o place_n much_o mistake_v concili_fw-la teldent_a sess_v 6._o c._n 6._o bellarmi_fw-fr gregori_n de_fw-fr uâââ_n our_o brethren_n argue_v from_o a_o grow_v up_o church_n to_o a_o unplanted_a church_n this_o be_v a_o high_a tall-tree_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o high_a tall-tree_n when_o it_o be_v first_o plant_v way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o n._n england_n ch_z 1._o sect_n 1._o by_o our_o brethren_n way_n there_o must_v be_v son_n and_o a_o feed_a flock_n before_o there_o be_v father_n and_o shepherd_n to_o feed_v they_o by_o our_o brethren_n way_n none_o be_v convert_v by_o a_o visible_a ministry_n and_o by_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n 5_o cor._n 3._o 15._o by_o m._n h._n his_o way_n no_o pastor_n as_o a_o pastor_n have_v any_o command_n of_o christ_n to_o intend_v to_o convert_v his_o ââ¦k_n or_o any_o âember_v thereof_o m._n h_n leave_v out_o that_o word_n wherein_o the_o strength_n of_o m._n r_o argument_n stand_v and_o utter_o mistake_v he_o there_o must_v be_v two_o contrary_a intention_n in_o god_n by_o our_o brethren_n way_n m._n hooker_n ibid._n 2._o inference_n see_v answer_n to_o 32_o question_n answer_v to_o sect_n 9_o q._n 10._o q._n 1._o q._n 2_o see_v m_n bailiff_n vindicat_fw-la of_o dissuasive_a a_o 1655._o pag._n 1._o c._n 16._o pag._n 38._o 39_o answer_v to_o 32._o quest._n sect_n 1._o pag._n 7._o 8._o 9_o pag._n 25._o 26._o 27._o ans_fw-fr to_o q._n 10._o p._n 29._o both_o mr_n hooââr_n and_o m_o robinson_n and_o the_o sepaparatist_n teach_v that_o there_o can_v be_v none_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o only_o real_a convert_n and_o such_o as_o be_v choose_v to_o life_n and_o so_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o this_o be_v no_o calumny_n which_o m._n h._n charge_v on_o they_o so_o m._n robinson_n who_o m._n h._n desend_v justification_n of_o separation_n against_o mr._n r._n rernard_n propos_fw-fr 3._o pag._n 112._o so_o have_v every_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n direct_v and_o immediate_a interest_n in_o christ_n and_o title_n to_o christ_n himself_o and_o the_o whole_a nâw_a testament_n see_v pag._n 113_o 114_o 115._o ans._n why_o say_v he_o not_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n have_v direct_a and_o immediate_a interest_n in_o christ_n etc._n etc._n in_o
the_o judgement_n of_o charity_n which_o be_v sometime_o mr_n hooker_n addition_n and_o so_o he_o know_v that_o magus_n judas_n and_o such_o have_v neither_o direct_v nor_o indirect_a mediate_v nor_o immediate_a interest_n in_o christ_n but_o be_v jeprous_a member_n see_v pag._n 95._o the_o scripture_n never_o ascribe_v holiness_n to_o a_o people_n for_o some_o fews_n sake_n if_o the_o rest_n be_v unholy_a and_o profane_a answ._n the_o man_n have_v not_o read_v of_o israel_n holy_a to_o the_o lord_n of_o sardis_n with_o who_o christ_n be_v where_o there_o be_v a_o remnant_n and_o some_o few_o name_n only_o save_v see_v robinson_n pag._n 96_o 97_o 98_o 253_o 258._o mistake_v the_o matter_n the_o same_o way_n petilianus_n the_o donatist_n also_o do_v allege_v the_o scripture_n due_a to_o the_o real_o sanctfied_a member_n for_o their_o church_n of_o which_o simon_n magus_n be_v a_o member_n aug._n cont_n lib._n petilian_n l._n 2._o c._n 45._o c._n 44._o c._n 45._o psal._n 1_o beatus_fw-la vir_fw-la &_o 46._o dominus_fw-la pascit_fw-la mâ_n etc._n etc._n aug._n resp_n non_fw-la enim_fw-la verba_fw-la ista_fw-la etiam_fw-la ad_fw-la sim._n magum_fw-la pertinent_a qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la eundem_fw-la sanctum_fw-la baptismum_fw-la suscepit_fw-la see_v l._n 4._o c._n 13._o p._n 764_o see_v aug._n cont_n l._n petil._n l._n 2._o c._n 49._o justif._n of_o separate_a m._n robinson_n &_o his_o maintain_n that_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o touch_v its_o essential_a constitution_n shall_v consist_v of_o only_a real_a convert_n as_o the_o church_n in_o paradise_n and_o m._n hooker_n defend_v they_o in_o this_o see_v mr._n caâ_n weak_o object_v the_o very_a same_o neces_fw-la of_o separ_fw-la pag._n 174._o and_o learned_a m._n ball_n ans._n sect_n 2._o p._n 51_o 52._o when_o you_o speak_v of_o visible_a church_n &_o visible_a and_o external_a holiness_n so_o far_o as_o man_n judge_v it_o be_v to_o small_a purpose_n to_o mention_v the_o church_n of_o angel_n etc._n etc._n m._n robinson_n &_o m._n hooker_n wild_o mistake_v the_o decree_a &_o approve_v will_n of_o god_n so_o armin._n antiperken_fw-mi p._n 60._o corvinus_n ex_fw-la ad_fw-la wallach_n p._n 19_o remonst_z in_o scrip._n synod_n be_v 2_o p._n 256._o remonst_z apol_n c._n 9_o fol._n 109._o sociâ_n contra_fw-la puttin_n cap._n 10._o sol_fw-la 325._o the_o same_o also_o petilian_n the_o donatist_n object_v to_o the_o catholic_n that_o they_o own_v all_o as_o just_a and_o church-member_n who_o know_v some_o word_n of_o scripture_n though_o they_o live_v as_o satan_n aug._n cont_n lit_fw-fr petil._n l._n 2._o c._n 49._o sic_fw-la enim_fw-la conatus_fw-la es_fw-la ostendere_fw-la diabolum_fw-la legisperitum_fw-la quasi_fw-la nos_fw-la dicamus_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la verbâ_n legis_fw-la noverant_fw-la justos_fw-la esse_fw-la sect._n 51._o 1._o 52._o sect._n 53._o whether_o fitness_n to_o be_v baptize_v be_v the_o visible_a conversion_n regeneratiââ_n which_o m._n h._n require_v whether_o they_o be_v all_o to_o john_n real_a convert_n who_o john_n baptize_v see_v m._n can._n separa_fw-la p._n 174._o and_o the_o ans._n of_o m._n ball_n sect_n 2._o p._n 56_o 57_o answer_v to_o the_o 32_o quest_n p._n 20._o m._n h._n ascribe_v to_o all_o who_o john_n baptize_v and_o who_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v visible_a member_n a_o confession_n of_o sin_n such_o as_o amount_v to_o the_o real_a repentance_n which_o john_n command_v mat._n 3._o see_v anton._n wal._n to_o 2._o de_fw-fr baptis_n infan_n p._n 491._o daniel_n chamiez_fw-fr loc._n com._n l._n 7._o o._n 13._o p._n 210._o none_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v by_o m._n h._n his_o argue_v while_o they_o die_v and_o consummate_v their_o course_n of_o repentance_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o john_n baptist_n have_v no_o such_o judgement_n of_o charity_n that_o all_o the_o multitude_n which_o he_o baptize_v be_v real_a convert_n way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o n._n e._n cap._n 3._o sect._n 3._o p._n 58._o the_o text_n be_v not_o clear_a mat._n 3._o mark_v 1_o luk._n 3._o that_o john_n repel_v from_o his_o baptism_n saducee_v and_o pharisee_n calvin_n come_v hoc_fw-la modo_fw-la omnes_fw-la ad_fw-la interius_fw-la conscientiae_fw-la examen_fw-la citat_fw-la ut_fw-la se_fw-la penitùs_fw-la exentiant_fw-la m._n h._n comply_v with_o papist_n for_o a_o particular_a confession_n mat._n 3._o beza_n in_o mat._n 3._o hinc_fw-la igitur_fw-la apparet_fw-la johannem_fw-la non_fw-la alios_fw-la admisisse_fw-la ad_fw-la suum_fw-la baptismum_fw-la quam_fw-la qui_fw-la gratuitae_fw-la remissionis_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ãâã_d seriò_fw-la amplecti_fw-la testarentur_fw-la pareus_n ân_fw-fr loc_fw-fr nec_fw-la ad_fw-la baptismum_fw-la indignos_fw-la admisit_fw-la piscat_fw-la mat._n 3._o docu_fw-la 6_o ex_fw-la v_o 6._o baptismus_fw-la nulli_fw-la adulto_fw-la conferendus_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la ediderit_fw-la confessionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la ac_fw-la propterea_fw-la promissionem_fw-la sanctae_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la ex_fw-la v._n 6._o piscator_fw-la in_o mark_n 1._o v_o 5._o imo_fw-la nequi_fw-la quam_fw-la probabile_fw-la est_fw-la joannem_fw-la ex_fw-la gisse_o confessionem_fw-la publicam_fw-la talem_fw-la enim_fw-la edebant_fw-la scelerum_fw-la ocultorum_fw-la belarm_n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la penitent_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o rhemist_n on_o mat._n 3._o v._n 6._o annot._n 3_o jac._n canteri_fw-la jesuita_fw-la in_o tabul_n chronograph_n sacr_n ad_fw-la a_o 100_o p._n 133._o sect._n 11._o annot._fw-la 4._o d._n fulks_n ans_fw-fr to_o to_o the_o rhemist_n mat._n 3._o 6._o if_o general_a confession_n be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o every_o man_n must_v utter_v all_o his_o sin_n in_o particular_a john_n have_v shrive_v work_n enough_o for_o seven_o year_n to_o hear_v the_o confession_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o jury_n and_o all_o the_o country_n about_o jerusalem_n o_o papist_n blush_v cartwright_n against_o rhemist_n on_o the_o place_n pag._n 13._o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o n._n e._n ch_n 1._o sect._n 2._o part_n 7._o ans._n to_o the_o 32._o question_n quest_n 8._o part_n 23._o the_o place_n for_o baptise_v luk._n 7._o 27._o and_o act._n 8._o clear_v of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o of_o the_o eunuch_n par._n 1._o p._n 26._o what_o ignorance_n exclude_v from_o church-membership_a calvin_n com._n act._n 8._o ans._n to_o 32_o quest_n q._n 20._o par._n 1._o pag._n 26527._o m._n r._n never_o say_v that_o profession_n must_v notify_v to_o the_o church_n the_o person_n be_v a_o true_a believer_n before_o he_o can_v be_v admit_v a_o church-member_n as_o m._n h._n will_v impute_v to_o he_o m._n h._n must_v be_v to_o near_o to_o that_o all_o infant_n bear_v of_o their_o visible_a saint_n must_v be_v real_a convert_n part._n 1._o c._n 2._o p._n 27._o our_o brethren_n can_v admit_v visible_a convert_n upon_o these_o formal_a reason_n as_o visible_a convert_n our_o brethren_n must_v say_v that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v casten_z out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o as_o visible_a non-converts_a god_n intention_n or_o dispensation_n be_v not_o the_o church_n rule_n of_o dispense_n consure_n but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n what_o m._n h._n require_v in_o member_n before_o they_o be_v admit_v m._n h._n neither_o prove_v nor_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v habitual_a experience_n in_o so_o few_o hour_n all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o 3000._o act._n 2._o give_v evidence_n of_o real_a conversion_n to_o the_o apostle_n no_o ground_n there_o be_v to_o say_v that_o philip_n and_o the_o church_n of_o samaria_n smell_v the_o savourinesse_n of_o save_a grace_n in_o magus_n before_o he_o be_v admit_v a_o member_n three_o considerable_a case_n in_o frame_v of_o visible_a church_n quest_n 5_o 6._o p._n 20._o our_o brethren_n cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n these_o who_o be_v baptize_v in_o their_o infancy_n and_o member_n thereof_o because_o visible_o non-regenerated_n what_o warrant_v for_o this_o censure_n these_o be_v groundless_a conjecture_n when_o the_o apostle_n first_o preach_v to_o the_o heathen_a that_o 1._o they_o preach_v not_o as_o pastor_n 2._o that_o they_o wait_v until_o in_o the_o apostle_n judgement_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o one_o another_o they_o be_v real_a convert_n 3._o than_o the_o apostle_n and_o themselves_o judicial_o inchurchââ¦_n they_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o n._n e._n ch_n 1._o sect._n 2._o pag._n 7._o mr._n tho._n hooker_n survey_n of_o discipline_n part_n ãâã_d c._n 2._o p._n 14_o 15._o upon_o profession_n of_o faith_n present_o follow_v baptise_v mr._n rich._n baxter_n for_o infant-baptism_n it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o the_o apostle_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la err_v in_o put_v in_o chalk_n stone_n in_o the_o first_o sampler_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n more_o than_o in_o the_o first_o sampler_n of_o synod_n act._n 15._o the_o place_n act._n 2._o plead_v for_o real_a repentance_n of_o all_o the_o 3000._o before_o they_o be_v inchurch_v as_o m._n h._n expound_v it_o magus_n be_v no_o such_o a_o visible_a convert_n before_o he_o be_v baptize_v caly._n inter_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o meram_fw-la simulationem_fw-la est_fw-la
visible_a before_o they_o be_v admit_v member_n to_o be_v ingraff_v in_o the_o body_n be_v not_o to_o be_v ingraff_v into_o a_o single_a congregation_n page_n 76_o 77._o the_o text_n act_n 2._o and_o 5._o concern_v add_v to_o the_o lord_n &_o to_o the_o church_n be_v vindicate_v from_o the_o gloss_n of_o m._n h._n and_o have_v no_o shadow_n of_o a_o church_n covenant_n calv._n gualth_n erant_fw-la medii_fw-la homines_fw-la occumenius_n virtus_fw-la verè_fw-la evangelica_n idonea_fw-la erat_fw-la quae_fw-la plurimum_fw-la collaâdaretur_fw-la chrysost_fw-la nec_fw-la convertentes_fw-la se_fw-la ad_fw-la risumâ_n non_fw-la ad_fw-la âinas_fw-la sed_fw-la valde_fw-la humani_fw-la erant_fw-la &_o pâae_fw-la aliis_fw-la soliciti_fw-la m._n h._n strengthen_v anabaptist_n by_o his_o so_o reason_v from_o the_o place_n act_v 5._o ans._n to_o 32_o qu._n 4._o p._n 12._o of_o the_o bind_n &_o lose_v on_o earth_n &_o in_o heaven_n mar._n 18._o calv._n resp._n non_fw-la ad_fw-la alios_fw-la dirigi_fw-la sermonem_fw-la quam_fw-la qui_fw-la rectè_fw-la ac_fw-la sincerè_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la se_fw-la reconciliant_fw-la mat._n 18._o be_v nota_fw-la rule_n for_o comfort_v hypocrite_n as_o if_o their_o sin_n be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n the_o lord_n ratify_v in_o heaven_n what_o the_o church_n do_v on_o earth_n though_o the_o hypocrite_n be_v not_o pardon_v can._n poenir_fw-fr council_n ancyâan_n can._n nic._n council_n see_v chemnit_fw-la exam_fw-la de_fw-fr indul._n pag_n 727_o 728._o pââ¦r_o in_o mat._n 18._o dâcu_fw-la 11._o v._n 18_o 19_o cum_fw-la ãâã_d exââ¦_n onââ_n lâgiââmè_fw-la peractae_fw-la rata_fw-la sit_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la eâveant_fw-la exâommunicati_fw-la ne_fw-la illam_fw-la contemnant_fw-la recepti_fw-la firmam_fw-la fiduciam_fw-la gratiae_fw-la concipiant_fw-la calvin_n ergo_fw-la quisquis_fw-la admisso_fw-la delicto_fw-la suppliciter_fw-la culpam_fw-la agnoscit_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la veniam_fw-la impetret_fw-la be_v absolvitur_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la sâd_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la deo_fw-la si_fw-la ludibrio_fw-la habet_fw-la neque_fw-la illi_fw-la cum_fw-la hominibus_fw-la jam_fw-la erit_fw-la negotium_fw-la sed_fw-la deus_fw-la erit_fw-la vindex_fw-la pareus_n sit_fw-la tibi_fw-la judicium_fw-la gitur_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la adversus_fw-la contumacâs_fw-la divinam_fw-la habebit_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la ligaveritis_fw-la hilarius_n ad_fw-la terrorem_fw-la metus_fw-la maximi_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la ligaveritis_fw-la hieronymus_n quia_fw-la poterit_fw-la contemptoris_fw-la fratris_fw-la haec_fw-la esse_fw-la responsio_fw-la vel_fw-la tacita_fw-la cogitatio_fw-la si_fw-la i_o despicis_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la âed_fw-la spicio_fw-la potestatem_fw-la tribuit_fw-la apostolis_n ut_fw-la sciant_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la condemnantur_fw-la hominum_fw-la sententiam_fw-la divinâ_fw-la sententiâ_fw-la roborari_fw-la ita_fw-la cyprian_n de_fw-fr un_fw-fr t._n eccles._n c._n 3._o ita_fw-la chrysostomus_n ita_fw-la augustinus_n in_fw-la loc_n what_o you_o shall_v bind_v diodati_n proceed_v in_o knowledge_n uprightness_n and_o wisdom_n english_fw-fr divine_n an._n in_o loc_n 18._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v joh._n 20_o 23._o 1_o cor._n 5._o 4._o by_o convince_a man_n of_o sin_n against_o god_n or_o of_o wrong_n do_v to_o you_o the_o sentence_n of_o absolution_n to_o the_o penitent_a be_v concional_a and_o so_o conditional_a to_o the_o church_n right_a proceed_n be_v absolute_a and_o juridical_a there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a measure_n of_o visible_a saintship_n require_v of_o one_o at_o his_o first_o admission_n and_o at_o his_o readmission_n after_o excommunication_n par._n 1._o p._n 77._o mr._n r._n 3._o arg._n mr._n h._n make_v infant_n to_o be_v no_o actual_a covenanter_n m._n r._n arg._n 4._o par._n 1._o p._n 78_o 79_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n solemn_o enter_v in_o baptism_n tie_v we_o to_o all_o church-duty_n in_o all_o congregation_n without_o any_o special_a covenant-engagement_n make_v i_o a_o special_a church-brother_n to_o these_o of_o this_o congregation_n only_o and_o that_o by_o divine_a command_n of_o a_o new_a covenant_n different_a from_o the_o gospel-covenant_n it_o be_v vain_a doctrine_n that_o none_o can_v be_v my_o church-brother_n who_o i_o be_o to_o gain_v but_o one_o under_o the_o same_o only_a congregational_a covenant_n with_o i_o way_n of_o the_o church_n c._n 6._o sect_n 6._o pag._n 103_o sect_n 7._o cotton_n of_o the_o key_n c._n 4._o pag._n 17._o mr._n hooker_n survey_v a_o pastor_n be_v not_o as_o a_o husband_n to_o his_o own_o congregation_n only_o for_o he_o may_v perform_v pastoral_a duty_n to_o other_o member_n and_o congregation_n see_v mr._n robinson_n justific_n of_o separate_a 317_o 318._o in_o the_o the_o same_o mistake_n with_o mr._n h._n but_o dispute_v more_o nervous_o than_o mr._n hooker_n epaphras_n though_o at_o rome_n be_v a_o minister_n at_o coloss._n answ._n a_o fix_a minister_n labour_v among_o they_o in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o vineyard_n true_a but_o he_o be_v actu_fw-la primo_fw-la habitu_fw-la all_o the_o world_n over_o a_o minister_n wheresoever_o he_o open_v his_o mouth_n and_o tender_v the_o seal_n page_n 80._o page_n 81._o one_o must_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n though_o no_o member_n of_o a_o congregation_n before_o he_o can_v be_v a_o pastor_n of_o a_o congregation_n a_o pastor_n be_v make_v a_o pastor_n by_o only_a ordination_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o ergo_fw-la he_o be_v now_o lawful_o make_v a_o pastor_n by_o ordination_n separate_v for_o any_o design_v and_o certain_a flock_n consent_v and_o choose_v he_o to_o be_v their_o pastor_n when_o augustine_n confess_v that_o the_o donatist_n who_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n do_v beget_v son_n to_o the_o church_n and_o have_v the_o true_a sacrament_n he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n though_o member_n of_o a_o separate_a church_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatist_n lib._n 1._o c._n 10._o certain_o quidem_fw-la nati_fw-la erant_fw-la nec_fw-la tamen_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la de_fw-la quâ_fw-la nati_fw-la erant_fw-la per_fw-la pacis_fw-la vaitatis_fw-la vinculum_fw-la pertinerent_fw-la ergo_fw-la ipsa_fw-la generate_fw-la &_o per_fw-la uterum_fw-la suââ_n &_o per_fw-la uteros_fw-la ancillarum_fw-la ex_fw-la eisdem_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la tanquam_fw-la ex_fw-la viri_fw-la svi_fw-la semine_fw-la the_o woeful_a absurdity_n which_o follow_v from_o the_o membership_n of_o pastor_n and_o saint_n confine_v to_o one_o only_a congregation_n church_n and_o member_n of_o associate_n church_n be_v visible_a professor_n and_o member_n no_o less_o than_o single_a congregation_n a_o sort_n of_o covenant_n be_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o question_n be_v mis-stated_n par._n 1._o p._n 82._o survey_v par_fw-fr 4._o cap._n 1._o concl_n 1._o pag._n 1_o 2._o mr._n h._n survey_v ibid._n the_o blaspheme_v we_o comparison_n make_v the_o pastor_n the_o husband_n and_o the_o congregation_n his_o marry_a wife_n until_o death_n be_v refute_v due_a right_n of_o presbyt_fw-la l._n 1._o p._n 127._o enarist_n ep._n 2._o council_n carthag_n 3._o cap._n 38._o council_n sard._n cen._n 1._o council_n antioch_n c._n 21._o enarist_n de_fw-fr epist._n ejectis_fw-la sicut_fw-la vir_fw-la non_fw-la debet_fw-la adulterare_fw-la svam_fw-la vxorem_fw-la ita_fw-la neque_fw-la episcopus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la fuam_fw-la ut_fw-la eam_fw-la dimittat_fw-la innocen_n iii_o omnipotens_fw-la deus_fw-la conjugium_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la inter_fw-la episcopum_fw-la &_o ecclesiam_fw-la svo_fw-la tantum_fw-la judicio_fw-la reservavit_fw-la dissolvendum_fw-la calv._n com._n in_o isa._n 54._o v._n 5._o ecclesia_fw-la agnoscat_fw-la qualem_fw-la maritum_fw-la habere_fw-la ac_fw-la revereri_fw-la debeat_fw-la ãâã_d deum_fw-la luther_n com._n in_o loc_n habetis_fw-la maritum_fw-la non_fw-la mosem_fw-la non_fw-la petrum_fw-la non_fw-la paulum_fw-la bullinger_n musculus_fw-la gualther_n com._n in_o isa._n 14._o v._n 5._o nor_o do_v our_o divine_n acknowledge_v that_o council_n gener._n par_fw-fr 1._o epistola_fw-la papae_fw-la calixti_fw-la secunda_fw-la pag._n 136._o allegata_fw-la est_fw-la uxor_fw-la legi_fw-la quamdiu_fw-la vir_fw-la ejus_fw-la vivit_fw-la rom._n 7_o etc._n etc._n similiter_fw-la &_o sponsa_fw-la episcopi_fw-la quia_fw-la sponsa_fw-la uxorque_fw-la ejus_fw-la dicitur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la mr._n cotton_n keys_n c._n 6._o p._n 25._o mr._n h._n survey_v par_fw-fr 4._o c._n 1._o concl_n 4_o 5._o the_o brethren_n make_v the_o pastor_n a_o marry_a husband_n and_o head_n of_o the_o congregational_a church_n as_o papist_n make_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n christum_fw-la caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la universae_fw-la libentissime_fw-la confitemuratqui_fw-la sub_fw-la christo_fw-la summâ_n capite_fw-la vicarius_fw-la ejus_fw-la iâ_n terris_fw-la caput_fw-la ut_fw-la sic_fw-la dicam_fw-la ministerialò_n non_fw-la principale_v rectò_fw-la nominetur_fw-la nâgari_fw-la nullo_n modo_fw-la potest_fw-la ita_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr sum._n pontif._n to_o 1._o c._n 24._o col_fw-fr 1._o l._n d._n &_o the_o pontiff_a rom._n l._n 1._o c._n 9_o so_o the_o jesuit_n of_o rheims_n on_o eph._n ãâã_d v_o 5._o though_o christ_n in_o a_o more_o divine_a ample_a absolute_a excellent_a and_o transcendent_a sort_n be_v severaign_a head_n in_o regard_n of_o motion_n life_n spirit_n grace_n ââsuing_v from_o he_o to_o the_o member_n yet_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v ministerial_a head_n way_n
college_n of_o prophet_n pastor_n and_o elder_n of_o many_o congregation_n at_o the_o ordination_n of_o officer_n menochius_fw-la in_o loc_n presbyt_fw-la majorum_fw-la i._n e._n episcoporum_fw-la bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr cler._n c._n 15._o nobis_fw-la verior_fw-la videtur_fw-la graecorum_n expositio_fw-la qui_fw-la nomine_fw-la presbyterii_fw-la intelligunt_fw-la chorum_fw-la sive_fw-la coetus_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o lyran._n cajetan_n com._n in_o loc_n manuum_fw-la impositione_n add_v significandum_fw-la pâurium_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la concursum_fw-la vatablus_n in_o loc_n intelligit_fw-la electionem_fw-la qua_fw-la à _fw-la presbyteris_fw-la i._n e._n senioribus_fw-la christianis_fw-la timoââaus_fw-la est_fw-la electus_fw-la maldonatus_n in_o manusc_fw-la citato_fw-la à _fw-la cor_fw-la à _fw-la lapide_fw-la notat_fw-la per_fw-la presbyterium_fw-la ordinem_fw-la sacerdotalem_fw-la cor._n à _fw-fr lap._n in_o loc_n verba_fw-la vatabli_fw-la sapient_a haeresin_fw-la estius_fw-la com._n in_o loc_n an_fw-mi soli_fw-la episcopi_fw-la a_o etiam_fw-la simplices_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la concurrant_fw-la etc._n etc._n res._n modum_fw-la hunc_fw-la ordinationis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la presbyteris_fw-la esse_fw-la communem_fw-la constat_fw-la ex_fw-la can._n 3._o concilii_fw-la 4_o carthaginensis_n quod_fw-la &_o palam_fw-la significat_fw-la synodius_fw-la tridentina_n sess._n 14._o c._n 3._o vide_fw-la bellarm._n de_fw-fr cler._n l._n 1._o c._n 15._o tilen_v in_o paraene_n ad_fw-la scotos_o calderwod_n altar_n damasc._n c._n 4._o p._n 159._o there_o be_v not_o a_o contradiction_n between_o a_o mediate_a and_o immediate_a call_n park_n de_fw-fr polit_fw-la eccles._n l._n 3._o m_o gillââ¦_n miscel_n quaest_n c._n 8._o page_n 103._o suru._n par_fw-fr 2._o c_o 2._o page_n 63._o greg._n tom._n 3._o disp_n 1._o q._n 1._o puncto_fw-la 7._o sect_n 41._o rob._n baron_n in_o appendic_n troth_n 5._o de_fw-la authorit_fw-la eccles._n c._n 15._o par._n 2._o pag._n 66._o the_o relation_n ãâã_d a_o fix_a pastor_n to_o his_o own_o single_a congregation_n prove_v not_o at_o all_o that_o their_o choice_n make_v he_o a_o pastor_n key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n c._n 6._o pag._n 15._o amesius_n theo._n medul_a l._n 1._o c._n 39_o the_o 23._o par._n 1._o p._n 95_o 96_o it_o be_v bad_a logic_n à _fw-la genere_fw-la ad_fw-la speciem_fw-la imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v use_v in_o many_o other_o thing_n ergo_fw-la this_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o ordination_n of_o officer_n calvin_n nulla_fw-la hic_fw-la electionis_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la mentio_fw-la quia_fw-la vocatio_fw-la prorsus_fw-la divina_fw-la erat_fw-la stapleton_n in_o antidote_n page_n 409._o suarez_n tom._n 3._o in_o 3._o par_fw-fr disp_n 34._o sect_n 1._o non_fw-la esse_fw-la tune_n saulum_fw-la vel_fw-la barnabam_fw-la ordinatos_fw-la vel_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la vel_fw-la episcopos_fw-la &_o impositionem_fw-la manuum_fw-la esse_fw-la tantum_fw-la deprecantium_fw-la calvin_n in_o loc_n solenni_n ecclesiae_fw-la subscription_n obsignari_fw-la jubet_fw-la gual_n in_o loc_n consecrationis_fw-la symbolum_n fuisse_fw-la so_o diodati_n d._n willet_n controu._n gener_fw-la 16_o q._n 1._o august_n de_fw-fr baptism_n l._n 3._o c._n 16._o confess_v bohem._n c._n 14._o confess_v wittenberg_n c._n 35._o book_n of_o discipl_n of_o scotland_n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o synops._n pour_fw-fr theol._n disp_n 42._o the_o 31._o mr._n seaman_n treat_v of_o ordination_n page_n 71_o 7â_n diodati_n english_a divine_v annotation_n separate_a i_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n to_o be_v hold_v in_o equal_a degree_n and_o intallible_a authority_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n be_v not_o call_v to_o be_v a_o apostle_n act_v 9_o nay_o not_o until_o act_v 13._o that_o be_v the_o error_n of_o mr._n robinson_n justific_n of_o separar_n page_n 296._o survey_v par_fw-fr 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 65._o mr._n h._n make_v many_o pastor_n many_o congregation_n many_o preach_v christ_n and_o gospel_n and_o seal_n to_o be_v different_a in_o species_n &_o nature_n this_o or_o this_o flock_n be_v extrinsical_a to_o the_o essence_n &_o nature_n of_o a_o pastor_n yet_o be_v it_o naughty_a logic_n ergo_fw-la the_o prelate_n do_v right_a and_o the_o church_n ordinary_o do_v lawful_o create_v pastor_n without_o flock_n a_o synod_n of_o n._n e_o aught_o to_o ordain_v so_o many_o pastor_n lay_v hand_n on_o they_o and_o pray_v and_o make_v they_o pastor_n to_o the_o american_n for_o plant_v church_n there_o so_o the_o american_n profess_v their_o willingness_n to_o hear_v a_o pastor_n be_v the_o only_o fix_v and_o appropriate_v pastor_n of_o his_o own_o flock_n so_o as_o he_o be_v a_o pastor_n to_o all_o congregation_n on_o earth_n where_o by_o divine_a providence_n he_o shall_v be_v m._n h._n destroy_v the_o communion_n of_o church_n as_o church_n &_o destroy_v his_o own_o &_o his_o brethren_n principle_n way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o n._n e._n c._n 6._o sect_n 1._o p._n 103._o we_o admit_v member_n of_o other_o congregation_n to_o the_o lord_n supper_n with_o we_o for_o we_o look_v at_o the_o lord_n supper_n not_o only_o as_o a_o seal_n of_o our_o communion_n with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o also_o of_o communion_n with_o his_o member_n and_o that_o not_o only_o with_o the_o member_n of_o our_o own_o church_n but_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n a_o pastor_n as_o a_o pastor_n preach_v to_o his_o own_o flock_n may_v convert_v some_o of_o his_o own_o &_o of_o other_o congregation_n &_o administer_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o both_o both_o way_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ch._n in_o n._n e._n c._n 6._o sec._n 1._o p._n 103._o mr._n h._n survey_v pa._n 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 65._o what_o sort_n of_o preacher_n the_o scatter_a disciple_n act._n 8._o be_v ãâã_d gualth_n in_o act._n 18._o homil_n dioda_n an._n act._n 18._o 27._o through_o grace_n this_o may_v have_v relation_n to_o apollo_n who_o by_o his_o authentical_a ministry_n call_v grace_n rom._n 1._o do_v much_o advance_v the_o christian_a faith_n calvin_n com._n in_o act._n potens_fw-la in_o scripture_n docet_fw-la hic_fw-la locus_fw-la debere_fw-la potentes_fw-la eos_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o scripture_n quibus_fw-la docendum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la page_n 64._o church-power_n be_v broad_a and_o large_a than_o juridical_a power_n pag._n 64._o mat._n 28._o 19_o though_o one_o be_v a_o complete_a pastor_n to_o all_o church_n actu_fw-la primo_fw-la yet_o the_o call_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o hic_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la pag._n 66_o 67._o whoever_o have_v a_o pastoral_a power_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n have_v not_o a_o juridical_a power_n to_o censure_v they_o pag_n 68_o 69._o mr._n h._n his_o logic_n be_v we_o be_v to_o beware_v of_o false_a teacher_n ergo_fw-la the_o congregation_n may_v depose_v their_o officer_n if_o heretical_a and_o scandalous_a to_o be_v a_o pastor_n to_o all_o congregation_n by_o mr._n h._n be_v most_o mistake_o make_v a_o genus_fw-la and_o for_o the_o same_o man_n to_o be_v a_o fix_a pastor_n to_o he_o a_o species_n to_o be_v a_o fix_a pastor_n to_o this_o or_o that_o flock_n be_v a_o mere_a accident_n not_o a_o species_n or_o kind_n of_o a_o pastor_n not_o to_o be_v a_o pastor_n habitu_fw-la to_o all_o congregation_n can_v be_v genus_fw-la to_o such_o a_o pastor_n as_o mr._n h._n say_v par._n 2._o p._n 70_o 71._o presbyter_n may_v delegate_v messenger_n of_o the_o church_n see_v and_o beware_v of_o d._n bââson_n of_o perper_n government_n c._n 12._o pag._n 208._o he_o abuse_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n tilenus_n jam_fw-la deficiens_fw-la paraene_n ad_fw-la scotos_fw-gr page_n 10._o dunam_fw-la conc._n in_o apoc._n 2._o beza_n in_o apo._n 2._o reynaldus_n lib._n apocryph_n praelect_v 62._o see_v tilen_v syntag._n disp_n 26_o â7_n bucan_n loc_n 43._o q._n 39_o professor_n leydens_n in_o synopsi_fw-la purioris_fw-la theologiae_n disp_n 42._o thes_n 31._o jus_fw-la pastoris_fw-la eligendi_fw-la est_fw-la penes_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ausim_fw-la dicere_fw-la non_fw-la marium_fw-la solum_fw-la ac_fw-la proinde_fw-la plebi_fw-la communâ_n cum_fw-la presbyterio_n jus_o ordinandi_fw-la soli_fw-la presbytetio_fw-la proprium_fw-la cyprian_a ep._n 68_o videmus_fw-la de_fw-la divinâ_fw-la authoritate_fw-la descendere_fw-la ut_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la plebe_fw-la praesente_fw-la sub_fw-la omnium_fw-la oculis_fw-la deligatur_fw-la &_o dignus_fw-la atque_fw-la idoneus_fw-la publico_fw-la judicio_fw-la ac_fw-la testâmonio_fw-la comprobetur_fw-la mr._n h._n suru._n pa._n 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 72_o 73._o that_o these_o in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v that_o any_o shall_v rule_v over_o they_o or_o no_o from_o their_o voluntary_a subjection_n it_o be_v that_o the_o party_n choose_v have_v right_a &_o stand_v in_o possession_n of_o rule_n and_o authority_n over_o they_o be_v most_o false_a yet_o a_o principle_n to_o mr._n h._n yea_o there_o be_v a_o voluntary_a subjection_n to_o the_o ministry_n send_v in_o general_a isa._n 52_o 7._o rom._n 10._o 14_o 14._o matth._n 10._o 14_o 40_o 41._o act._n 2_o 37._o act._n 16._o 30._o and_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o god_n in_o convert_n act_n 9_o 6._o act._n 10._o 32_o 33._o matth._n 9_o 9_o